\ II \ LIBRARY OF CONGRESS. + \3Q\ /■' i UNITED STATES OF AMERICA. m^ ;e«*ff,' /• r\ ^ PREFACE. This volume owes its existence to the desire of the Boston school authorities for a collection of produc- tions from American authors of distinction, especially suitable for use in the most advanced class of the grammar schools. Its contents are taken mostly from the Riverside Literature Series. At the request of the committee on text-books, the board of supervisors, after conferring with the pub- lishers, planned the book and approved every selec- tion. Their action was reported to the committee on text-books, and upon the recommendation of this committee the school board, by a unanimous vote, adopted the proposed book, Masterpieces of Amer- ican Literature, as a text -book for reading in the first class of the grammar schools. The considerations that guided in the make-up of the book were that the various authors should be represented by characteristic and noted productions ; that these productions, though generally above the present range of the thought and experience of the students, should yet be within their reach ; that they should be inspiring and uplifting in their influence upon life and character, and fitted to serve the great IV PREFACE. purpose of developing a sense of what real literature is, both in form and in spirit. While holding to these considerations, it was also kept in mind that the book must be a reading-book, in the school sense. It is to be used for improvement in the art of oral reading as well as for studies in literature. Therefore, a variety of styles in both prose and poetry is needed. This will explain why, in some instances, a particular selection is made from an author rather than some other selection. The more mechanical part of oral reading — the devel- opment and management of the voice, the rendering flexible the organs of speech and securing precision in their action — may receive due attention without much regard to the meaning of the exercises used in practice. But to gain the ability to read well orally — to convey exact thought and quicken feeling by the utterance, in appropriate tones, of what another has written — requires extended practice upon pieces rich in thought and various in style and sentiment. The brief biographical sketches of the thirteen au- thors represented here, while helpful for the infor- mation which they contain, will, it is hoped, inspire the reader to a further study of the authors and their works. As this book has been especially prepared for the advanced class in the grammar schools of Boston to meet an acknowledged want, there can be no doubt that it will render the same good service in classes of similar grade elsewhere. PREFACE. V The selections from the following named authors are used by permission of, and by arrangement with, the authorized publishers of their works : — Washington Irving, . . Messrs. G. P. Putnam's Sons. W. C. Bryant, .... Messrs. D. Appleton & Co. J. B. O'Reilly, .... The Cassell Publishing Company. Daniel Webster and Edward Everett, . . . Messrs. Little, Brown & Co. CONTENTS. IRVING. - ^""^^ Biographical Sketch 1 Rip Van Winkle 7 BRYANT. Biographical Sketch 33 Thanatopsis ^'^ To a Waterfowl 39 FRANKLIN. Biographical Sketch ^1 Poor Richard's Almanac 46 Letter to Samuel Mather 60 Letter to the Rev. Dr. Lathrop, Boston . . . 61 Letter to Benjamin Webb . . . . . • 64 HOLMES. Biographical Sketch 65 Grandmother's Story of Bunker Hill Battle . . 68 The Ploughman ^^ The Chambered Nautilus 82 The Iron Gate ^^ HAWTHORNE. Biographical Sketch 87 The Great Stone Face 92 My Visit to Niagara 117 WHITTIER. Biographical Sketch 127 Snow-Bound 130 The Ship-Builders 1^6 The Worship of Nature 1^9 THOREAU. Biographical Sketch 161 Wild Apples 1^^ vui CONTENTS. O'REILLY. Biographical Sketch 199 The Pilgrim Fathers 203 LOWELL. Biographical Sketch 213 Books and Libraries 217 Essay on Lincoln [with Lincoln's Gettysburg Speech] 238 The Vision of Sir Launtal 270 EMERSON. Biographical Sketch 285 Behavior 288 Boston Hymn 309 WEBSTER. Biographical Sketch 313 Address Delivered at the Laying of the Corner- stone OF Bunker Hill Monument, June 17, 1825 317 EVERETT. Biographical Sketch 347 From "The Character of Washington" . . . 351 LONGFELLOW. Biographical Sketch 363 Evangeline 366 WASHINGTON IRVING. BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. Irving may be named as the first author in the United States whose writings made a place for themselves in gen- eral literature. Franklin, indeed, had preceded him with his autobiography, but Franklin belongs rather to the colo- nial period. It was under the influences of that time that his mind and taste were formed, and there was a marked difference between the Boston and Philadelphia of Frank- lin's youth and the New York of Irving's time. Politics, commerce, and the rise of industries were rapidly changing social relations and manners, while the country was still dependent on England for its higher literature. It had hardly begun to find materials for literature in its own past or in its aspects of nature, yet there was a very positive ele- ment in life which resented foreign interference. There were thus two currents crossing each other : the common life which was narrowly American, and the cultivated taste which was English, or imitative of England. Irving's first ventures, in company with his brothers and Paulding, were in the attempt to represent New York in literature upon the model of contemporary or recent presentations of London. " The town " in the minds of these young writers was that portion of New York society which might be construed into a miniature reflection of London wit and amusement. His associates never advanced beyond this stage, but with Wash- ington Irving the sketches which he wrote under the signa- 2 WASHINGTON IRVING. ture of Jonathan Old Style and in the medley of Sal- magundi were only the first experiments of a mind capa- ble of larger things. After five or six years of trifling with his pen, he wrote and published, in 1809, A History of New York, hy Diedrich K7iickerbocker, which he be- gan in company with his brother Peter as a mere jeu d' es- prit, but turned into a more determined work of humor, as the capabilities of the subject disclosed themselves. Grave historians had paid little attention to the record of New York under the Dutch; Irving, who saw the humorous contrast between the traditional Dutch society of his day and the pushing new democracy, seized upon the early history and made it the occasion for a good-natured burlesque. He shocked the old families about him, but he amused everybody else, and the book, going to England, made his name at once known to those who had the making there of literary reputations. Irvmg himself was born of a Scottish father and English mother, who had come to this country only twenty years before. He was but little removed, therefore, from the tra- ditions of Great Britain, and his brothers and he carried on a trading business with the old country. His own tastes were not mercantile, and he was only silent partner in the house ; he wrote occasionally and was for a time the editor of a mag- azine, but his pleasure was chiefly in travel, good literature, and good society. It was while he was in England, in 1818, that the house in which he was a partner failed, and he was thrown on his own resources. Necessity gave the slight spur which was wanting to his inclination, and he began with deliberation the career of an author. He had found himself at home in England. His family origin and his taste for the best literature had made him English in his sympathies and tastes, and his residence and travels there, the society which he entered and the friends he made, confirmed him in English habits. Nevertheless he was sturdily American in his principles ; he was strongly attached to New York and BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. 3 his American friends, and was always a looker-on in Eng- land. His foreign birth and education gave him significant advantages as an observer of English life, and he at once began the writing of those papers, stories, and sketches which appeared in the separate numbers of The Sketch Book, in Bracebridge Hall, and in Tales of a Traveller, They were chiefly drawn from material accumulated abroad, but an occasional American subject was taken. Irving in- stinctively felt that by the circumstances of the tnne and the bent of his genius he could pursue his calling more safely abroad than at home. He remained in Europe seventeen years, sending home his books for publication, and securing also the profitable results of publication in London. During that time, besides the books above named, he wrote the History of the Life and Voyages of Christopher Columbus ; the Voyages and Discoveries of the Companions of Colum- bus ; A Chronicle of the Conquest of Grayiada ; and Th& Alhambra. The Spanish material was obtained while residing in Spain, whither he went at the suggestion of the American minister to make translations of documents relat- ing to the voyages of Columbus which had recently been collected. Irving's training and tastes led him rather into the construction of popular narrative than into the work of a scientific historian, and, with his strong American affections, he was quick to see the interest and value which lay in the history of Spain as connected with America. He was emi- nently a raconteur, very skilful and graceful in the shaping of old material ; his humor played freely over the surface of his writing, and, with little power to create characters or plots, he had an unfailing perception of the literary capabil- ities of scenes and persons which came under his observation. He came back to America in 1832 with an established reputation, and was welcomed enthusiastically by his friends and countrymen. He travelled into the new parts of Amer- ica, and spent ten years at home, industriously working at the material which had accumulated in his hands when 4 WASHINGTON IRVING. abroad, and had been increased during his travels in the West. In this period he published Legends of the Con- quest of Spain ; The Grmjon Miscellany^ including his Tour on the Prairies, Ahhotsford and Newstead Abbey ; Astoria ; a number of papers in the Knickerbocker Maga- zine, afterwards published under the title of Wolferfs Boost ; and edited the Adventures of Captain Bonneville, U. S. A., in the Rocky Mountains a7id the Far West, In 1842 he went back to Spain as American minister, holding the office for four years, when he returned to AmerT ica, established himself at his home, Sunnyside on the banks of the Hudson, and remained there until his death in 1859. The fruits of this final period were Mahomet and his Suc- cessors, which, with a volume of posthumous publication, Spanish Papers and other Miscellanies, completed the series of Spanish and Moorish subjects which form a distinct part of his writings ; Oliver Goldsmith, a Biography ; and finally a Life of Washington, which occupied the closing years of his life, — years which were not free from physical suffering. In this book Irving embodied his strong admira- tion for the subject, whose name he bore and whose blessing he had received as a child ; he employed, too, a pen which had been trained by its labors on the Spanish material, and, like that series, the work is marked by good taste, artistic sense of proportion, faithfulness, and candor, rather than by the severer work of the historian. It is a popular and a fair life of Washington and account of the war for independence. Irving's personal and literary history is recorded in The Life and Letters of Washington Irving, by his nephew, Pierre M. Irving. His death was the occasion of many affectionate and graceful eulogies and addresses, a number of which were gathered into Irving iana : a Memorial of Washingto7i Irving. Rip Van Winkle is from The Sketch Book, INTRODUCTION TO RIP VAN WINKLE. The story of Rip Van Winkle purported to have been written by Diedricli Knickerbocker, who was a humorous in- vention of Irving's, and whose name was familiar to the pub- lic as the author of A History of New York. The History was published in 1809, but it was ten years more before the first number of The Sketch Book of Geoffrey Crayon, Gent., was published. This number, which contained Rip Van Winkle, was, like succeeding numbers, written by Ir- ving in England and sent home to America for publication. He laid the scene of the story in the Kaatskills, but he drew upon his imagination and the reports of others for the scen- ery, not visiting the spot until 1833. The story is not ab- solutely new ; the fairy tale of The Sleeping Beauty in the Wood has the same theme ; so has the story of Epimenides of Crete, who lived in the sixth or seventh century before Christ. He was said to have fallen asleep in a cave when a boy, and to have awaked at the end of fifty-seven years, his soul, meanwhile, having been growing in stature. There is the legend also of the Seven Sleepers of Ephesus, Chris- tian martyrs who were walled into a cave to which they had fled for refuge, and there were miraculously preserved for two centuries. Among the stories in which the Harz Moun- tains of Germany are so prolific is one of Peter Klaus, a goatherd who was accosted one day by a young man who silently beckoned him to follow, and led him to a secluded spot, where he found twelve knights playing, voiceless, at skittles. He saw a can of wine which was very fragrant, and, drinking of it, was thrown into a deep sleep, from which he did not wake for twenty years. The story gives 6 WASHINGTON IRVING. incidents of his awaking and of the changes which he found in the village to which he returned. This story, which was published with others in 1800, may very likely have been the immediate suggestion to Irving, who has taken nearly the same framework. The humorous additions which he has made, and the grace with which he has invested the tale, have caused his story to supplant earlier ones in the popular mind, so that Rip Van Winkle has passed into familiar speech, and allusions to him are clearly understood by thousands who have never read Irving' s story. The recent dramatizing of the story, though following the out- line only, has done much to fix the conception of the char- acter. The story appeals very directly to a common senti- ment of curiosity as to the future, which is not far removed from what some have regarded as an instinct of the liuman mind pointing to personal immortality. The name Van Winkle was happily chosen by Irving, but not invented by him. The printer of the Sketch Book, for one, bore the name. The name Knickerbocker, also, is among the Dutch names, but Irving's use of it has made it representative. In The AtUhor's Apology, which he prefixed to a new edition of the History of Neiv York, he says : "I find its very name become a ' household word,' and used to give the home stamp to everything recommended for popular accep- tation, such as Knickerbocker societies ; Knickerbocker in- surance companies ; Knickerbocker steamboats ; Knicker- bocker omnibuses, Knickerbocker bread, and Knickerbocker ice ; and . . . New Yorkers of Dutch descent priding them- selves upon being ' genuine Knickerbockers.' " RIP VAN WINKLE. A POSTHUMOUS WRITING OF DIEDRICH KNICKERBOCKER. By Woden, God of Saxons, From whence comes Wensday, that is Wodensday. Truth is a thing that ever I will keep Unto thylke day in which I creep into My sepulchre. Caetweight.i The following tale was found among the papers of the late Diedrich Knickerbocker, an old gentleman of New York, who was very curious in the Dutch history of the province, and the manners of the descendants from its primitive settlers. His his- torical researches, however, did not lie so much among books as among men ; for the former are lamentably scanty ou his favorite topics ; whereas he found the old burghers, and still more their wives, rich in that legendary lore so invaluable to true history. Whenever, therefore, he happened upon a genuine Dutch family, snugly shut up in its low-roofed farmhouse under a spreading sycamore, he looked upon it as a little clasped vol- ume of black-letter, and studied it with the zeal of a book-worm. The result of all these researches was a history of the province during the reign of the Dutch governors, which he published some years since. There have been various opinions as to the literary character of his work, and, to tell the truth, it is not a whit better than it should be. Its chief mej'it is its scrupulous accuracy, which indeed was a little questioned on its first appear- ance, but has since been completely established ; and it is now admitted into all historical collections, as a book of unquestion- able authority. The old gentleman died shortly after the publication of his work, and now that he is dead and gone, it cannot do much harm ^ William Cartwright, 1611-1643, was a friend and disciple of Ben Jonson. 8 WASHINGTON IRVING. to his memory ^ to say that his time might have been much bet- ter employed in weightier labors. He, however, was apt to ride his hobby his own way ; and though it did now and then kick up the dust a little in the eyes of his neighbors, and grieve the spirit of some friends, for whom he felt the truest deference and affec- tion ; yet his errors and follies are remembered " more in sorrow than in anger," and it begins to be suspected that he never in- tended to injure or offend. But however his memory may be appreciated by critics, it is still held dear by many folk, whose good opinion is worth having ; particularly by certain biscuit- bakers, who have gone so far as to imprint his likeness on their new-year cakes ; ^ and have thus given him a chance for immor- tality, almost equal to the being stamped on a Waterloo Medal, or a Queen Anne's Farthing.^ 1 The History of Neiu York had given offence to many old New Yorkers because of its saucy treatment of names which were held in veneration as those of founders of families, and its general burlesque of Dutch character. Among the critics was a warm friend of Irving, Gulian C. Verplanck, who in a discourse before the New York Historical Society plainly said : " It is painful to see a mind, as admirable for its exquisite perception of the beautiful as it is for its quick sense of the ridiculous, wast- ing the richness of its fancy on an ungrateful theme, and its exuberant humor in a coarse caricature." Irving took the cen- sure good-naturedly, and as he read Verplanck's words just as he was finishing the story of Rip Van Winkle, he gave them this playful notice in the introduction. 2 An oblong seed-cake, still made in New York at New Year's time, and of Dutch origin. 3 There was a popular story that only three farthings were struck in Queen Anne's reign ; that two were in public keeping, and that the third was no one knew where, but that its lucky finder would be able to hold it at an enormous price. As a mat- ter of fact there were eight coinings of farthings in the reign of Queen Anne, and numismatists do not set a high value on the piece. RIP VAN WINKLE. 9 Whoever has made a voyage up the Hudson must remember the Kaatskill Mountains. They are a dis- membered branch of the great Appalachian family, and are seen away to the west of the river, swelling up to a noble height, and lording it over the surround- ing country. Every change of season, every change of weather, indeed, every hour of the day, produces some change in the magical hues and shapes of these mountains, and they are regarded by all the good wives, far and near, as perfect barometers. When the weather is fair and settled, they are clothed in blue and purple, and print their bold outlines on the clear evening sky ; but sometimes when the rest of the land- scape is cloudless they will gather a hood of gray vapors about their summits, which, in the last rays of the setting sun, will glow and light up like a crown of glory. At the foot of these fairy ^ mountains, the voyager may have descried the light smoke curling up from a village, whose shingle-roofs gleam among the trees, just where the blue tints of the upland melt away into the fresh green of the nearer landscape. It is a little village of great antiquity, having been founded by some of the Dutch colonists in the early time of the province, just about the beginning of the government of the good Peter Stuyvesant,^ (ii^^y ^le rest in peace !) and there were some of the houses of the original set- tlers standing within a few years, built of small yellow ^ A light touch to help the reader into a proper spirit for re- ceiving the tale. 2 Stuyvesant was governor of New Netherlands from 1647 to 1664. He plays an important part in Knickerbocker's History of New York, as he did in actual life. Until quite recently a pear tree was shown on the Bowery, said to have been planted by him. 10 WASHINGTON IRVING. bricks brought from Holland, having latticed windows and gable fronts, surmounted with weathercocks. In that same village, and in one of these very houses (which, to tell the precise truth, was sadly time-worn and weather-beaten), there lived many years since, while the country was yet a province of Great Britain, a simple, good-natured fellow, of the name of Rip Van Winkle. He was a descendant of the Van Winkles who figured so gallantly in the chivalrous days of Peter Stuyvesant, and accompanied him to the siege of Fort Christina.^ He inherited, however, but little of the martial character of his ancestors. I have observed that he was a simple, good-natured man ; he was, moreover, a kind neighbor, and an obedient hen- pecked husband. Indeed, to the latter circumstance might be owing that meekness of spirit which gained him such universal popularity; for those men are most apt to be obsequious and conciliating abroad, who are under the discipline of shrews at home. Their tempers, doubtless, are rendered pliant and mal- leable in the fiery furnace of domestic tribulation ; and a curtain lecture is worth all the sermons in the world for teaching the virtues of patience and long-suffering. A termagant wife may, therefore, in some respects be considered a tolerable blessing, and if so. Rip Van Winkle was thrice blessed. Certain it is, that he was a great favorite among all the good wives of the village, who, as usual with the amiable sex, took his part in all family squabbles ; and never failed, whenever they talked those matters 1 The Van Winkles appear in the illustrious catalogue of heroes who accompanied Stuyvesant to Fort Christina, and were " Brimful of wrath and cabbage." See History of New York, book VI. chap. viii. RIP VAN WINKLE. 11 over in their evening gossipings, to lay all the blame on Dame Van Winkle. The children of the village, too, would shout with joy whenever he approached. He assisted at their sports, made their playthings, taught them to fly kites and shoot marbles, and told them long stories of ghosts, witches, and Indians. Whenever he went dodging about the village, he was surrounded by a troop of them, hanging on his skirts, clambering on his back, and playing a thousand tricks on him with impunity ; and not a dog would bark at him throughout the neighborhood. The great error in Rip's composition was an insu- perable aversion to all kinds of profitable labor. It could not be from the want of assiduity or persever- ance ; for he would sit on a wet rock, with a rod as long and heavy as a Tartar's lance, and fish all day without a murmur, even though he should not be en- couraged by a single nibble. He would carry a fowl- ing-piece on his shoulder for hours together, trudging through woods and swamps, and up hill and down dale, to shoot a few squirrels or wild pigeons. He would never refuse to assist a neighbor, even in the roughest toil, and was a foremost man at all country frolics for husking Indian corn, or building stone- fences ; the women of the village, too, used to employ him to run their errands, and to do such little odd jobs as their less obliging husbands would not do for them. In a word, Eip was ready to attend to any- body's business but his own ; but as to doing family duty, and keeping his farm in order, he found it im- possible. In fact, he declared it was of no use to work on his farm ; it was the most pestilent little piece of ground in the whole country ; everything about it went wrong. 12 WASHINGTON IRVING. and would go wrong, in spite of him. His fences were continually falling to pieces ; his cow would either go astray or get among the cabbages ; weeds were sure to grow quicker in his fields than anywhere else ; the rain always made a point of setting in just as he had some out-door work to do ; so that though his patri- monial estate had dwindled away under his manage- ment, acre by acre, until there was little more left than a mere patch of Indian corn and potatoes, yet it was the worst -conditioned farm in the neighborhood. His children, too, were as ragged and wild as if they belonged to nobody. His son Rip, an urchin be- gotten in his own likeness, promised to inherit the habits, with the old clothes of his father. He was generally seen trooping like a colt at his mother's heels, equi]3ped in a pair of his father's cast-off galli- gaskins, which he had much ado to hold up with one hand, as a fine lady does her train in bad weather. Rip Van Winkle, however, was one of those happy mortals, of foolish, well-oiled dispositions, who take the world easy, eat white bread or brown, whichever can be got with least thought or trouble, and would rather starve on a penny than work for a pound. If left to himself, he would have whistled life away in perfect contentment ; but his wife kept continually dinning in his ears about his idleness, his carelessness, and the ruin he was bringing on his family. Morning, noon, and night her tongue was incessantly going, and every- thing he said or did was sure to produce a torrent of household eloquence. Rip had but one way of reply- ing to all lectures of the kind, and that, by frequent use, had grown into a habit. He shrugged his shoul- ders, shook his head, cast up his eyes, but said no- thing. This, however, always provoked a fresh volley RIP VAN WINKLE. 13 from his wife ; so that he was fain to draw off his forces, and take to the outside of the house — the only side which, in truth, belongs to a henpecked husband. Kip's sole domestic adherent was his dog Wolf, who was as much henpecked as his master ; for Dame Van Winkle regarded them as companions in idleness, and even looked upon Wolf with an evil eye, as the cause of his master's going so often astray. True it is, in all points of spirit befitting an honorable dog, he was as courageous an animal as ever scoured the woods — but what courage can withstand the ever-during and all-besetting terrors of a woman's tongue ? The mo- ment Wolf entered the house his crest fell, his tail drooped to the ground, or curled between his legs, he sneaked about with a gallows air, casting many a side- long glance at Dame Van Winkle, and at the least flourish of a broomstick or ladle he would fly to the door with yelping precipitation. Times grew worse and worse with Rip Van Winkle as years of matrimony rolled on ; a tart temper never mellows with age, and a sharp tongue is the only edged tool that grows keener with constant use. For a long while he used to console himself, when driven from home, by frequenting a kind of perpetual club of the sages, philosophers, and other idle personages of the village ; which held its sessions on a bench before a small inn, designated by a rubicund portrait of His Majesty George the Third. Here they used to sit in the shade through a long lazy summer's day, talking listlessly over village gossip, or telling endless sleepy stories about nothing. But it would have been w^orth any statesman's money to have heard the profound dis- cussions that sometimes took place, when by chance an old newspaper fell into their hands from some passing 14 WASHINGTON IRVING. traveller. How solemnly they would listen to the con- tents, as drawled out by Derrick Van Bummel, the school-master, a dapper learned little man, who was not to be daunted by the most gigantic word in the dictionary ; and how sagely they would deliberate upon public events some months after they had taken place. The opinions of this junto were completely con- trolled by Nicholas Vedder, a patriarch of the village, and landlord of the inn, at the door of which he took his seat from morning till night, just moving suf- ficiently to avoid the sun and keep in the shade of a large tree ; so that the neighbors could tell the hour by his movements as accurately as by a sun-dial. It is true he was rarely heard to speak, but smoked his pipe incessantly. His adherents, however (for every great man has his adherents), perfectly understood him, and knew how to gather his opinions. When anything that was read or related displeased him, he was ob- served to smoke his pipe vehemently, and to send forth short, frequent and angry puffs ; but when pleased, he would inhale the smoke slowly and tranquilly, and emit it in light and placid clouds ; and sometimes, tak- ing the pipe from his mouth, and letting the fragrant vapor curl about his nose, would gravely nod his head in token of perfect approbation. From even this stronghold the unlucky Eip was at length routed by his termagant wife, who would sud- denly break in upon the tranquillity of the assemblage and call the members all to naught ; nor was that august personage, Nicholas Vedder himself, sacred from the daring tongue of this terrible virago, who charged him outright with encouraging her husband in habits of idleness. Poor Rip was at last reduced almost to despair; RIP VAN WINKLE. 16 and his only alternative, to escape from the labor of the farm and clamor of his wife, was to take gun in hand and stroll away into the woods. Here he would sometimes seat himself at the foot of a tree, and share the contents of his wallet with Wolf, with whom he sympathized as a fellow-sufferer in persecution. " Poor Wolf," he would say, " thy mistress leads the dog's life of it ; but never mind, my lad, whilst I live thou shalt never want a friend to stand by thee ! " Wolf would wag his tail, look wistfully in his master's face, and if dogs can feel pity I verily believe he recipro- cated the sentiment with all his heart. In a long ramble of the kind on a fine autumnal day. Rip had unconsciously scrambled to one of the highest parts of the Kaatskill Mountains. He was after his favorite sport of squirrel shooting, and the still solitudes had echoed and reechoed with the re- ports of his gun. Panting and fatigued, he threw himself, late in the afternoon, on a green knoll, cov- ered with mountain herbage, that crowned the brow of a precipice. From an opening between the trees he could overlook all the lower country for many a mile of rich woodland. He saw at a distance the lordly Hudson, far, far below him, moving on its silent but majestic course, with the reflection of a purple cloud, or the sail of a lagging bark, here and there sleeping on its glassy bosom, and at last losing itself in the blue highlands. On the other side he looked down into a deep moun- tain glen, wild, lonely, and shagged, the bottom filled with fragments from the impending cliffs, and scarcely lighted by the reflected rays of the setting sun. For some time Eip lay musing on this scene ; evening was gradually advanced; the mountains began to throw 16 WASHINGTON IRVING. their long blue shadows over the valleys ; he saw that it would be dark long before he could reach the village, and he heaved a heavy sigh when he thought of en- countering the terrors of Dame Van Winkle. As he was about to descend, he heard a voice from a distance, hallooing, " Kip Van Winkle ! Kip Van Winkle ! " He looked round, but could see nothing but a crow winging its solitary flight across the moun- tain. He thought his fancy must have deceived him, and turned again to descend, when he heard the same cry ring through the still evening air: "Kip Van Winkle ! Kip Van Winkle ! " — at the same time Wolf bristled \v^ his back, and giving a low growl, skulked to his master's side, lookingly fearfully down into the glen. Kip now felt a vague apprehension stealing- over him ; he looked anxiously in the same direction, and perceived a strange figure slowly toiling up the rocks, and bending under the weight of something he carried on his back. He was surprised to see any human being in this lonely and unfrequented place ; but supposing it to be some one of the neighborhood in need of his assistance, he hastened down to yield it. On nearer approach he was still more surprised at the singularity of the stranger's appearance. He was a short, square-built old fellow, with thick bushy hair, and a grizzled beard. His dress was of the antique Dutch fashion : a cloth jerkin strapped round the waist, several pair of breeches, the outer one of ample volume, decorated with rows of buttons down the sides, and bunches at the knees. He bore on his shoulder a stout keg, that seemed full of liquor, and made signs for Kip to approach and assist him with the load. Though rather shy and distrustful of this new acquaintance, Kip complied with his usual alac- RIP VAN WINKLE. 17 rity ; and mutually relieving one another, they clam- bered up a narrow gully, apparently the dry bed of a mountain torrent. As they ascended. Rip every now and then heard long rolling peals like distant thunder, that seemed to issue out of a deep ravine, or rather cleft, between lofty rocks, toward which their rugged path conducted. He paused for a moment, but sup- posing it to be the muttering of one of those transient thunder-showers whitih often take place in mountain heights, he proceeded. Passing through the ravine, they came to a hollow, like a small amphitheatre, sur- rounded by perpendicular precipices, over the brinks of which impending trees shot their branches, so that you only caught glimpses of the azure sky and the bright evening cloud. During the whole time Rip and his companion had labored on in silence ; for though the former marvelled greatly what could be the object of carrying a keg of liquor up this wild mountain, yet there was something strange and incomprehensible about the unknown, that inspired awe and checked familiarity. On entering the amphitheatre, new objects of wonder presented themselves. On a level spot in the centre was a company of odd-looking personages playing at ninepins. They were dressed in a quaint outlandish fashion ; some wore short doublets, others jerkins, with long knives in their belts, and most of them had enor- mous breeches of similar style with that of the guide's. Their visages, too, were peculiar; one had a large beard, broad face, and small piggish eyes ; the face of another seemed to consist entirely of nose, and was surmounted by a white sugar-loaf hat, set off with a little red cock's tail. They all had beards, of various shapes and colors. There was one "who seemed to be 18 WASHINGTON IRVING. the commander. He was a stout old gentleman, with a weather-beaten countenance ; he wore a laced doub- let, broad belt and hanger, high-crowned hat and feather, red stockings, and high-heeled shoes, with roses in them. The whole group reminded Kip of the figures in an old Flemish painting in the parlor of Dominie Van Shaick, the village parson, which had been brought over from Holland at the time of the settlement. What seemed particularly odd to Rip was, that though these folks were evidently amusing themselves, yet they maintained the gravest faces, the most mys- terious silence, and were, withal, the most melancholy party of pleasure he had ever witnessed. Nothing interrupted the stillness of the scene but the noise of the balls, which, whenever they were rolled, echoed along the mountains like rumbling peals of thunder. As Rip and his companion approached them, they suddenly desisted from their play, and stared at him with such fixed, statue-like gaze, and such strange, un- couth, lack-lustre countenances, that his heart turned within him, and his knees smote together. His com- panion now emptied the contents of the keg into large flagons, and made signs to him to wait upon the com- pany. He obeyed with fear and trembling; they quaffed the liquor in profound silence, and then re- turned to their game. By degrees Rip's awe and apprehension subsided. He even ventured, when no eye was fixed upon him, to taste the beverage, which he found had mucli of the flavor of excellent Hollands. He was naturally a thirsty soul, and was soon tempted to repeat the draught. One taste provoked another ; and he reiter- ated his visits to the flagon so often that at length his RIP VAN WINKLE. 19 senses were overpowered, liis eyes swam in his head, his head gradually declined, and he fell into a deep sleep. On waking, he found himself on the green knoll whence he had first seen the old man of the glen. He rubbed his eyes — it was a bright, sunny morning. The birds were hopping and twittering among the bushes, and the eagle was wheeling aloft, and breast- ing the pure mountain breeze. " Surely," thought Rip, " I have not slept here all night." He recalled the occurrences before he fell asleep. The strange man with a keg of liquor — the mountain ravine — the wild retreat among the rocks — the woe-begone party at nine-pins — the flagon — " Oh ! that flagon ! that wicked flagon ! " thought Rip — " what excuse shall I make to Dame Van Winkle ? " He looked round for his gun, but in place of the clean, well-oiled fowling-piece, he found an old fire- lock lying by him, the barrel incrusted with rust, the lock falling off, and the stock worm-eaten. He now suspected that the grave roisters of the mountain had put a trick upon him, and, having dosed him with li- quor, had robbed him of his gun. Wolf, too, had dis- appeared, but he might have strayed away after a squirrel or partridge. He whistled after him, and shouted his name, but all in vain ; the echoes repeated his whistle and shout, but no dog was to be seen. He determined to revisit the scene of the last even- ing's gambol, and if he met with any of the party, to demand his dog and gun. As he rose to walk, he found himself stiff in the joints, and wanting in his usual activity. " These mountain beds do not agree with me," thought Rip, " and if this frolic should lay me up with a fit of the rheumatism, I shall have a 20 WASHINGTON IRVING. blessed time with Dame Van Winkle." With some difficulty he got down into the glen ; he found the gully up which he and his companion had ascended the preceding evening ; but to his astonishment a mountain stream was now foaming down it, leaping from rock to rock, and filling the glen with babbling murmurs. He, however, made shift to scramble up its sides, working his toilsome way through thickets of birch, sassafras, and witch-hazel, and sometimes tripped up or entangled by the wild grapevines that twisted their coils or tendrils from tree to tree, and spread a kind of network in his path. At length he reached to where the ravine had opened through the cliffs to the amphitheatre ; but no traces of such opening remained. The rocks presented a high, impenetrable wall, over which the torrent came tumbling in a sheet of feathery foam, and fell into a broad, deep basin, black from the shadows of the sur- rounding forest. Here, then, poor Eip was brought to a stand. He again called and whistled after his dog ; he was only answered by the cawing of a flock of idle crows, sporting high in air about a dry tree that overhung a sunny precipice ; and who, secure in their elevation, seemed to look down and scoff at the poor man's perplexities. What was to be done ? the morning was passing away, and Eip felt famished for want of his breakfast. He grieved to give up his dog and gun ; he dreaded to meet his wife ; but it would not do to starve among the mountains. He shook his head, shouldered the rusty firelock, and, with a heart full of trouble and anxiety, turned his stej)s home- ward. As he approached the village he met a number of people, but none whom he knew, which somewhat sur- RIP VAN WINKLE. 21 prised him, for lie had thought himself acquainted with every one in the country round. Their dress, too, was of a different fashion from that to which he was accustomed. They all stared at him with equal marks of surprise, and whenever they cast their eyes upon him, invariably stroked their chins. The con- stant recurrence of this gesture induced Rip, involun- tarily, to do the same, when, to his astonishment, he found his beard had grown a foot long ! He had now entered the skirts of the village. A troop of strange children ran at his heels, hooting after him, and pointing at his gray beard. The dogs, too, not one of which he recognized for an old ac- quaintance, barked at him as he passed. The very village was altered ; it was larger and more populous. There were rows of houses which he had never seen before, and those which had been his familiar haunts had disappeared. Strange names were over the doors — strange faces at the windows, — everything was strange. His mind now misgave him; he began to doubt whether both he and the world around him were not bewitched. Surely this was his native vil- lage, which he had left but the day before. There stood the Kaatskill Mountains — there ran the silver Hudson at a distance — there was every hill and dale precisely as it had always been — Rip was sorely per- plexed — " That flagon last night," thought he, " has addled my poor head sadly ! " It was with some difficulty that he found the way to his own house, which he approached with silent awe, expecting every moment to hear the shrill voice of Dame Van Winkle. He found the house gone to decay — the roof fallen in, the windows shattered, and the doors off the hinges. A half-starved dog that 22 WASHINGTON IRVING. looked like Wolf was skulking about it. Kip called him by name, but the cur snarled, showed his teeth, and passed on. This was an unkind cut indeed — "My very dog," sighed poor Rip, "has forgotten me!" He entered the house, which, to tell the truth. Dame Van Winkle had always kept in neat order. It was empty, forlorn, and apparently abandoned. This deso- lateness overcame all his connubial fears — he called loudly for his wife and children — the lonely cham- bers rang for a moment with his voice, and then again all was silence. He now hurried forth, and hastened to his old re- sort, the village inn — but it, too, was gone. A large, rickety wooden building stood in its place, with great gaping windows, some of them broken and mended with old hats and petticoats, and over the door was painted, " The Union Hotel, by Jonathan Doolittle." Instead of the great tree that used to shelter the quiet little Dutch inn of yore, there now was reared a tall naked pole, with something on the top that looked like a red night-cap, and from it was fluttering a flag, on which was a singular assemblage of stars and stripes — all this was strange and incomprehensible. He recognized on the sign, however, the ruby face of King George, under which he had smoked so many a peaceful pipe ; but even this was singularly metamor- phosed. The red coat was changed for one of blue and buff, a sword was held in the hand instead of a sceptre, the head was decorated with a cocked hat, and underneath was painted in large characters. Gen- eral Washington. There was, as usual, a crowd of folk about the door, but none that Rip recollected. The very character of RIP VAN WINKLE. 23 the people seemed changed. There was a busy, bus- tling, disputatious tone about it, instead of the accus- tomed phlegm and drowsy tranquillity. He looked in vain for the sage Nicholas Vedder, with his broad face, double chin, and fair long pipe, uttering clouds of tobacco-smoke instead of idle speeches ; or Van Bunmiel, the school-master, doling forth the contents of an ancient newspaper. In place of these, a lean, bilious-looking fellow, with his pockets full of hand- bills, was haranguing vehemently about rights of citi- zens — elections — members of congress — liberty — Bunker's Hill — heroes of seventy-six — and other words, which were a perfect Babylonish jargon to the bewildered Van Winkle. The appearance of Rip, with his long grizzled beard, his rusty fowling-piece, his uncouth dress, and an army of women and children at his heels, soon attracted the attention of the tavern-politicians. They crowded round him, eying him from head to foot with great curiosity. The orator bustled up to him, and, draw- ing him partly aside, inquired " on which side he voted ? " Rip started in vacant stupidity. Another short but busy little fellow pulled him by the arm, and, rising on tiptoe, inquired in his ear, " Whether he was Federal or Democrat ? " Rip was equally at a loss to comprehend the question ; when a knowing, self-important old gentleman, in a sharp cocked hat, made his way through the crowd, putting them to the right and left with his elbows as he passed, and plant- ing himself before Van Winkle, with one arm akimbo, the other resting on his cane, his keen eyes and sharp hat penetrating, as it were, into his very soul, de- manded in an austere tone, " what brought him to the election with a gun on his shoulder, and a mob at his 24 WASHINGTON IRVING. heels, and whether he meant to breed a riot in the village ? " — " Alas ! gentlemen," cried Kip, somewhat dismayed, " I am a poor quiet man, a native of the place, and a loyal subject of the king, God bless him ! " Here a general shout burst from the bystanders — " A tory ! a tory ! a spy ! a refugee ! hustle him ! away with him ! " It was with great difficulty that the self-important man in the cocked hat restored order; and, having assumed a tenfold austerity of brow, demanded again of the unknown culprit what he came there for, and whom he was seeking ? The poor man humbly assured him that he meant no harm, but merely came there in search of some of his neigh- bors, who used to keep about the tavern. " Well — who are they ? — name them." Eip bethought himself a moment, and inquired, " Where 's Nicholas Vedder ? " There was a silence for a little while, when an old man replied, in a thin, piping voice : " Nicholas Ved- der ! why, he is dead and gone these eighteen years ! There was a wooden tombstone in the churchyard that used to tell all about him, but that 's rotten and gone too." " Where 's Brom Dutcher ? " " Oh, he went off to the army in the beginning of the war ; some say he was killed at the storming of Stony Point ^ — others say he was drowned in a squall at the foot of Antony's Nose.^ I don't know — he never came back again." 1 On the Hudson. The place is famous for the daring assault made by Mad Anthony Wayne, July 15, 1779. 2 A few miles above Stony Point is the promontory of An- tony's Nose. If we are to believe Diedrich Knickerbocker, it RIP VAN WINKLE. 25 " "Where 's Van Bummel, the school-master ? " " He went off to the wars too, was a great militia general, and is now in Congress." Rip's heart died away at hearing of these sad changes in his home and friends, and finding himself thus alone in the world. Every answer puzzled him too, by treating of such enormous lapses of time, and of matters which he could not understand : war — Congress — Stony Point; he had no courage to ask after any more friends, but cried out in despair, " Does nobody here know Rip Van Winkle ? " " Oh, Rip Van Winkle ! " exclaimed two or three, " Oh, to be sure ! that 's Rip Van Winkle yonder, lean- ing against the tree." Rip looked, and beheld a precise counterpart of himself, as he went up the mountain : apparently as lazy, and certainly as ragged. The poor fellow was now completely confounded. He doubted his own identity, and whether he was himself or another man. was named after Antony Van Corlear, Stuyvesant's trumpeter. " It must be known, then, that the nose of Antony the trum- peter was of a very histy size, strutting boldly from his counte- nance like a mountain of Golconda. . . . Now thus it happened, that bright and early in the morning the good Antony, having washed his burly visage, was leaning over the quarter railing of the galley, contemplating it in the glassy wave below. Just at this moment the illustrious sun, breaking in all his splendor from behind a high bluff, of the highlands, did dart one of his most potent beams full upon the refulgent nose of the sounder of brass — the reflection of which shot straightway down, hissing hot, into the water and killed a mighty sturgeon that was sport- ing beside the vessel ! . . . When this astonishing miracle came to be made known to Peter Stuyvesant he . . . marvelled ex- ceedingly ; and as a monument thereof, he gave the name of Antonyms Nose to a stout promontory in the neighborhood, and it has continued to be called Antony's Nose ever since that time." History of New York, book VI. chap. iv. 26 WASHINGTON IRVING. In the midst of his bewilderment, the man in the cocked hat demanded who he was, and what was his name? " God knows," exclaimed he, at his wit's end ; " I 'm not myself — I 'm somebody else — that 's me yonder — no — that 's somebody else got into my shoes — I was myself last night, but I fell asleep on the moun- tain, and they 've changed my gun, and everything's changed, and I 'm changed, and I can't tell what 's my name, or who I am ! " The bystanders began now to look at each other, nod, wink significantly, and tap their fingers against their foreheads. There was a whisper, also, about securing the gun, and keeping the old fellow from doing mischief, at the very suggestion of which the self-important man in the cocked hat retired with some precipitation. At this critical moment a fresh, comely woman pressed through the throng to get a peep at the gray-bearded man. She had a chubby child in her arms, which, frightened at his looks, began to cry. " Hush, Rip," cried she, " hush, you little fool ; the old man won't hurt you." The name of the child, the air of the mother, the tone of her voice, all awakened a train of recollections in his mind. " What is your name, my good woman?" asked he. " Judith Gardenier." " And your father's name ? " " Ah, poor man. Rip Van Winkle was his name, but it 's twenty years since he went away from home with his gun, and never has been heard of since, — his dog came home without him ; but whether he shot himself, or was carried away by the Indians, nobody can tell. I was then but a little girl." Rip had but one question more to ask ; and he put it with a faltering voice : — RIP VAN WINKLE. 27 " Where 's your mother ? " " Oh, she too had died but a short time since ; she broke a blood-vessel in a fit of passion at a New Eng- land peddler," There was a drop of comfort at least, in this intel- ligence. The honest man could contain himself no longer. He caught his daughter and her child in his arms. " I am your father ! " cried he — " Young Eip Van Winkle once — old Rip Van Winkle now ! Does nobody know poor Rip Van Winkle ? " All stood amazed, until an old woman tottering out from among the crowd, put her hand to her brow, and peering under it in his face for a moment, exclaimed, " Sure enough it is Rip Van Winkle — it is himself ! Welcome home again, old neighbor — Why, where have you been these twenty long years?" Rip's story was soon told, for the whole twenty years had been to him but as one night. The neigh- bors stared when they heard it; some were seen to wink at each other, and put their tongues in their cheeks ; and the self-important man in the cocked hat, who when the alarm was over, had returned to tiie field, screwed down the corners of his mouth, and shook his head — upon which there was a general shaking of the head throughout the assemblage » It was determined, however, to take the opinion of old Peter Vanderdonk, who was seen slowly advan- cing up the road. He was a descendant of the histo- rian of that name,^ who wrote one of the earliest accounts of the province. Peter was the most ancient inhabitant of the village, and well versed in all the wonderful events and traditions of the neighborhood. He recollected Rip at once, and corroborated his story 1 Adrian Vanderdonk. 28 WASHINGTON IMVING. in the most satisfactory manner. He assured the company that it was a fact, handed down from his ancestor the historian, that the Kaatskill Mountains had always been haunted by strange beings. That it was affirmed that the great Hendrick Hudson, the first discoverer of the river aud country, kept a kind of vigil there every twenty years, with his crew of the Half -moon ; being permitted in this way to revisit the scenes of his enterprise, and keep a guardian eye upon the river and the great city called by his name. That his father had once seen them in their old Dutch dresses playing at ninepins in a hollow of the moun- tain; and that he himself had heard, one summer afternoon, the sound of their balls like distant peals of thunder. To make a long story short, the company broke up, and returned to the more important concerns of the election. Rip's daughter took him home to live with her ; she had a snug well-furnished house, and a stout cheery farmer for a husband, whom Rip recollected for one of the urchins that used to climb upon his back. As to Rip's son and heir, who was the ditto of himself, seen leaning against the tree, he was employed to work on the farm ; but evinced an hereditary dis- position to attend to anything else but his business. Rip now resumed his old walks and habits ; he soon found many of his former cronies, though all rather the worse for the wear and tear of time ; and preferred making friends among the rising generation, with whom he soon grew into great favor. Having nothing to do at home, and being arrived at that happy age when a man can be idle with impu- nity, he took his place once more on the bench at the inn door, and was reverenced as one of the patriarchs RIP VAN WINKLE. 29 of the village, and a chronicle of the old times " before the war." It was some time before he could get into the regular track of gossip, or could be made to com- prehend the strange events that had taken place dur- ing his torpor. How that there had been a revolu- tionary war — that the country had thrown off the yoke of old England — and that, instead of being a subject of his Majesty George the Third, he was now a free citizen of the United States. Rip, in fact, was no politician ; the changes of states and empires made but little impression on him ; but there was one spe- cies of despotism under which he had long groaned, and that was — petticoat government. Happily that was at an end ; he had got his neck out of the yoke of matrimony, and could go in and out whenever he pleased, without dreading the tyranny of Dame Van Winkle. Whenever her name was mentioned, how- ever, he shook his head, shrugged his shoulders, and cast up his eyes, which might pass either for an ex- pression of resignation to his fate, or joy at his deliv- erance. He used to tell his story to every stranger that ar- rived at Mr. Doolittle's hotel. He was observed, at first, to vary on some points every time he told it, which was, doubtless, owing to his having so recently awaked. It at last settled down precisely to the tale I have related, and not a man, woman, or child in the neighborhood but knew it by heart. Some always pretended to doubt the reality of it, and insisted that Rip had been out of his head, and that this was one point on which he always remained flighty. The old Dutch inhabitants, however, almost universally gave it full credit. Even to this day they never hear a thunder-storm of a summer afternoon about the Kaats- 30 WASHINGTON IRVING. kill, but they say Hendrick Hudson and his crew are at their game of ninepins ; and it is a common wish of all henpecked husbands in the neighborhood, when life hangs heavy on their hands, that they might have a quieting draught out of Rip Van Winkle's flagon. NOTE. The foregoing Tale, one would suspect, had been suggested to Mr. Knickerbocker by a little German superstition about the Emperor Frederick der Rothhart,^ and the Kypphaiiser moun- tain ; the subjoined note, however, which he had appended to the tale, shows that it is an absolute fact, narrated with his usual fidelity. " The story of Rip Van Winkle may seem incredible to many, but nevertheless I give it my full belief, for I know the vicinity of our old Dutch settlements to have been very subject to mar- vellous events and appearances. Indeed, I have heard many stranger stories than this, in the villages along the Hudson ; all of which were too well authenticated to admit of a doubt. I have even talked with Rip Van Winkle myself, who, when last I saw him, was a very old venerable man, and so perfectly rational and consistent on every other point, that I think no conscientious person could refuse to take this into the bargain ; nay, I have seen a certificate on the subject taken before a country justice and signed with a cross, in the justice's own handwriting. The story therefore, is beyond the possibility of doubt. "D. K." POSTSCRIPT. The following are travelling notes from a memorandum-book of Mr. Knickerbocker : — The Kaatsberg, or Catskill Mountains, have always been a re- gion full of fable. The Indians considered them the abode of spirits, who influenced the weather, spreading sunshine or clouds 1 Frederick I. of Germany, 1121-1190, called Barbarossa, der Rothhart (Redbeard or Rufus), was fabled not to have died but to have gone into a long sleep, from which he would awake when Germany should need him. The same legend was told by the Danes of their Holger. RIP VAN WINKLE. 31 over the landscape, and sending good or bad hunting seasons. They were ruled by an old squaw spirit, said to be their mother. She dwelt on the highest peak of the Catskills, and had charge of the doors of day and night to open and shut them at the proper hour. She hung up the new moons in the skies, and cut up the old ones into stars. In tunes of drought, if properly propitiated, she would spin light summer clouds out of cobwebs and morning dew, and send them off from the crest of the moun- tain, flake after flake, like flakes of carded cotton, to float in the air ; until, dissolved by the heat of the sun, they would fall in gentle showers, causing the grass to spring, the fruits to ripen, and the corn to grow an inch an hour. If displeased, however, she would brew up clouds black as ink, sitting in the midst of them like a bottle-bellied spider in the midst of its web ; and when these clouds broke, woe betide the valleys ! In old times, say the Indian traditions, there was a kind of Manitou or Spirit, who kept about the wildest recesses of the Catskill Mountains, and took a mischievous pleasure in wreaking all kinds of evils and vexations upon the red men. Sometimes he would assume the form of a bear, a panther, or a deer, lead the bewildered hunter a weary chase through tangled forest and among ragged rocks ; and then spring off with a loud ho ! ho ! leaving him aghast on the brink of a beetling precipice or raging torrent. The favorite abode of this Manitou is still shown. It is a great rock or cliff on the loneliest part of the mountains, and from the flowering vines which clamber about it, and the wild flowers which abound in its neighborhood, is known by the name of the Garden Rock. Near the foot of it is a small lake, the haunt of the solitary bittern, with water-snakes basking in the sun on the leaves of the pond-lilies which lie on the surface. This place was held in great awe by the Indians, insomuch that the boldest hunter would not pursue his game within its pre- cincts. Once upon a time, however, a hunter, who had lost his way, penetrated to the Garden Rock, where he beheld a number of gourds placed in the crotches of trees. One of these he seized and made off with it, but in the hurry of his retreat he let it fall among the rocks, when a great stream gushed forth, which washed him away and swept him down precipices, where he was dashed to pieces, and the stream made its way to the Hudson, and continues to flow to the present day ; being the identical stream known by the name of the Kaaters-kill. WILLIAM CULLEN BRYANT. BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. William Cullen Bryant was born at Cummington, Massachusetts, November 3, 1794 ; he died in New York, June 12, 1878. His first poem. The Embargo, was pub- lished in Boston in 1809, and was written when he was but thirteen years old ; his last poem, Our Fellow Worshippers, was published in 1878. His long life thus was a long career as a writer, and his first published poem prefigured the twofold character of his literary life, for while it was in poetic form it was more distinctly a political article. He showed very early a taste for poetry, and was encouraged to read and write verse by his father, Dr. Peter Bryant, a country physician of strong character and cultivated tastes. He was sent to Williams College in the fall of 1810, where he remained two terms, when he decided to leave and enter Yale College; but pecuniary troubles interfered with his plans, and he never completed his college course. He pur- sued his literary studies at home, then began the study of law and was admitted to the bar in 1815. Meantime he had been continuing to write, and during this period wrote with many corrections and changes the poem by which he is still perhaps best known, Thanatopsis. It was published in the North American Hevieiv for September, 1817, and the same periodical published a few months afterward his lines To a Waterfowl, one of the most characteristic and lovely of Bryant's poems. Literature divided his attention with law, but evidently had his heart. In 1821 he was 34 WILLIAM CULLEN BRYANT. invited to read a poem before the Phi Beta Kappa Society of Harvard College, and he read The Ages, a stately grave poem which shows his own poetic power, his familiarity with the great masters of literature, and his lofty, philoso- phic nature. Shortly after this he issued a small volume of poems, and his name began to be known as that of the first American who had written poetry that could take its place in universal literature. His own decided preference for lit- erature, and the encouragement of friends, led to his aban- donment of the law in 1825, and his removal to New York, where he undertook the associate editorship of The New York Review and Athenceuin Magazi7ie. Poetic genius is not caused or controlled by circumstance, but a purely liter- ary life in a country not yet educated in literature was impossible to a man of no other means of support, and in a few months, after the Revieiv had vainly tried to maintain life by a frequent change of name, Bryant accepted an appointment as assistant editor of the Evening Post. From 1826, then, until his death, Bryant was a journalist by pro- fession. One effect of this change in his life was to elimi- nate from his poetry that political character which was dis- played in his first published poem and had several times since shown itself. Thenceafter he threw into his journalistic occupation all those thoughts and experiences which niade him by nature a patriot and political thinker ; he reserved for poetry the calm reflection, love of nature, and purity of aspiration which made him a poet. His editorial writing was made strong and pure by his cultivated taste and lofty ideals, but he presented the rare combination of a poet who never sacrificed his love of high literature and his devotion to art, and of a publicist who retained a sound judgment and pursued the most practical ends. His life outwardly was uneventful. He made four jour- neys to Europe, in 1834, 1845, 1852, 1857, and he made frequent tours in his own country. His observations on his travels were published in Letters from a Traveller, Letters BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. 36 from the East, and Letters from Spain and other Coun- tries. He never held public ofl&ce, except that in 1860 he was a presidential elector, but he was connected intimately with important movements in society, literature, and politics, and was rej^eatedly called upon to deliver addresses com- memorative of eminent citizens, as of Washington Irving, and James Fenimore Cooper, and at the unveiling of the bust of Mazzini in the Central Park. His Orations and Addresses have been gathered into a volume. The bulk of his poetry apart from his poetic translations is not considerable, and is made up almost wholly* of short poems which are chiefly inspired by liis love of nature. R. H. Dana in his preface to The Idle Man says : "I shall never forget with what feeling my friend Bryant some years ago ^ described to me the effect produced upon him by his meeting for the first time with Wordsworth's Ballads. He lived, when quite young, where but few works of poetry were to be had ; at a period, too, when Pope was still the great idol of the Temple of Art. He said that upon open- ing Wordsworth a thousand springs seemed to gush up at once in his heart, and the face of nature of a sudden to change into a strange freshness and life." This was the interpreting power of Wordsworth suddenly disclosing to Bryant, not the secrets of nature, but his own powers of perception and interpretation. Bryant is in no sense an imitator of Wordsworth, but a comparison of the two poets would be of great interest as showing how indi- vidually each pursued the same general poetic end. Words- worth's Three Years She Grew in Sun and Shower and Bryant's Fairest of the Rural Maids offer an admirable opportunity for disclosing the separate treatment of similar subjects. In Bryant's lines, musical and full of a gentle rev- ery, the poet seems to go deeper and deeper into the forest, almost forgetful of the " fairest of the rural maids ; " in Wordsworth's lines, with what simple yet profound feeling 1 This was written in 1833. 36 WILLIAM CULLEN BRYANT. the poet, after delicately disclosing the interchange of nature and human life, returns into those depths of human sympa- thy where nature must forever remain as a remote shadow. Bryant translated many short poems from the Spanish, but his largest literary undertaking was the translation of the Iliad and Odyssey of Homer. He brought to this task great requisite powers, and if there is any failure it is in the absence of Homer's lightness and rapidity, qualities which the elasticity of the Greek language especially favored. A pleasant touch of a simple humor appeared in some of his social addresses, and occasionally is found in his poems, as in Robert of Lincoln. Suggestions of personal experi- ence will be read in such poems as The Cloud on the Way, The Life that Is, and in the half-autobiographic poem, A Lifetime, THANATOPSIS. To him who in the love of Nature holds Communion with her visible forms, she speaks A various language ; for his gayer hours She has a voice of gladness, and a smile And eloquence of beauty, and she glides 5 Into his darker musings, with a mild And healing sympathy, that steals away Their sharpness, ere he is aware. When thoughts Of the last bitter hour come like a blight Over the spirit, and sad images 10 Of the stern agony, and shroud, and pall. And breathless darkness, and the narrow house, Make thee to shudder, and grow sick at heart ; — Go forth, under the open sky, and list To Nature's teachings, while from all around — 15 Earth and her waters, and the depths of air — Comes a still voice — Yet a few days, and thee The all-beholding sun shall see no more In all his course ; nor yet in the cold ground, Where thy pale form was laid, with many tears, 20 Nor in the embrace of ocean, shall exist Thy image. Earth, that nourished thee, shall claim Thy growth, to be resolved to earth again. And, lost each human trace, surrendering up Thine individual being, shalt thou go 25 To mix for ever with the elements. To be a brother to the insensible rock 38 WILLIAM CULLEN BRYANT. And to tlie sluggish clod, which the rude swain Turns with his share, and treads upon. The oak Shall send his roots abroad, and pierce thy mould, so Yet not to thine eternal resting-place Shalt thou retire alone, nor could st thou wish Couch more magnificent. Thou shalt lie down With patriarchs of the infant world — with kings, The powerful of the earth — the wise, the good, 35 Fair forms, and hoary seers of ages past. All in one mighty sepulchre. The hills Rock-ribbed and ancient as the sun, — the vales Stretching in pensive quietness between ; The venerable woods — rivers that move 40 In majesty, and the complaining brooks That make the meadows green; and, poured round all. Old Ocean's gray and melancholy waste, — Are but the solemn decorations all Of the great tomb of man. The golden sun, 45 The planets, all the infinite host of heaven. Are shining on the sad abodes of death, Through the still lapse of ages. All that tread The globe are but a handful to the tribes That slumber in its bosom. — Take the winp-s 50 Of morning, pierce the Barcan wilderness. Or lose thyself in the continuous woods Where rolls the Oregon, and hears no sound. Save his own dashings — yet the dead are there : And millions in those solitudes, since first 55 The flight of years began, have laid them down In their last sleep — the dead reign there alone. So shalt thou rest, and what if thou withdraw In silence from the living, and no friend TO A WATERFOWL. 39 Take note of thy departure ? All that breathe eo Will share thy destiny. The gay will laugh When thou art gone, the solemn brood of care Plod on, and each one as before will chase His favorite phantom ; yet all these shall leave Their mirth and their employments, and shall come 65 And make their bed with thee. As the long train Of ages glide away, the sons of men. The youth in life's green spring, and he who goes In the full strength of years, matron and maid, The speechless babe, and the gray-headed man — to Shall one by one be gathered to thy side, By those, who in their turn shall follow them. So live, that when thy summons comes to join The innumerable caravan, which moves To that mysterious realm, where each shall take 75 His chamber in the silent halls of death. Thou go not, like the quarry-slave at night. Scourged to his dungeon, but, sustained and soothed By an unfaltering trust, approach thy grave, Like one who wraps the drapery of his couch so About him, and lies down to pleasant dreams. TO A WATERFOWL. Whither, midst falling dew, While glow the heavens with the last steps of day, Far, through their rosy depths, dost thou pursue Thy solitary way ? Vainly the fowler's eye Might mark thy distant flight to do thee wrong, 40 WILLIAM CULLEN BRYANT. As, darkly seen against the crimson sky, Tliy figure floats along. Seek'st thou the plashy brink Of weedy lake, or marge of river wide, lo Or where the rocking billows rise and sink Oh the chafed ocean-side ? There is a Power whose care Teaches thy way along that pathless coast — The desert and illimitable air — - 15 Lone wandering, but not lost. All day thy wings have fanned, At that far height, the cold, thin atmosphere, Yet stoop not, weary, to the welcome land. Though the dark night is near. 20 And soon that toil shall end ; Soon shalt thou find a summer home, and rest. And scream among thy fellows ; reeds shall bend, Soon, o'er thy sheltered nest. Thou 'rt gone, the abyss of heaven 25 Hath swallowed up thy form ; yet, on my heart Deeply hath sunk the lesson thou hast given. And shall not soon depart. He who, from zone to zone, Guides through the boundless sky thy certain flight, so In the long way that I must tread alone. Will lead my steps aright. BENJAMIN FRANKLIN. BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. In reading the life of Franklin we are constantly sur- prised at the versatility of his powers. He achieved an un- dying reputation as a man of business, as a scientist, as a writer, as a statesman, and as a dij^lomatist. It is impossi- ble to give here an adequate idea of his greatness or of the debt of gratitude which we all owe him for the help he ren- dered our nation in times of sore need. For the events of his life the reader is referred to his Autobiography ^ — a classic masterpiece with which every American should be familiar. What follows is a review of Franklin's character by John T. Morse, Jr., at the end of his admirable bio- graphy of Franklin, in the American Statesmen Series : — "Among illustrious Americans Franklin stands preemi- nent in the interest which is aroused by a study of his char- acter, his mind and his career. One becomes attached to him, bids him farewell with regret, and feels that for such as he the longest span of life is all too short. Even though dead, he attracts a personal regard which renders easily intelligible the profound affection which so many men felt for him while living. It may be doubted whether any one man ever had so many, such constant, and such firm friends as in three different nations formed about him a veritable host. In the States and in France he was loved, and as he grew into old age he was revered, not by those who heard 1 See Riverside Literature Series, Nos. 19 and 20. 42 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN. of him only, but most warmly by those who best knew him. Even in England, where for years he was the arch rebel of all America, he was generally held in respect and esteem, and had many constant friends whose confidence no events could shake. . . . Moral, intellectual, and material boons he conferred in such abundance that few such benefactors of the race can be named, though one should survey all the ages. A man of a greater humanity never lived : and the quality which stood Abou Ben Adhem in good stead should suffice to save Franklin from human criticism. He not only loved his kind, but he also trusted them with an implicit confidence, reassuring if not extraordinary in an observer of his shrewdness and experience. . . . '' Franklin's inborn ambition was the noblest of all ambi- tions : to be of practical use to the multitude of men. The chief motive of his life was to promote the welfare of man- kind. Every moment which he could snatch from enforced occupations was devoted to doing, devising, or suggesting something advantageous more or less generally to men. . . . His desire was to see the community prosperous, comfortable, happy, advancing in the accumulation of money and of all physical goods, but not to the point of luxury ; it was by no means the pile of dollars which was his end, and he did not care to see many men rich, but rather to see all men well to do. He was perfectly right in thinking that virtuous liv- ing has the best prospects in a well-to-do society. He gave liberally of his own means and induced others to give, and promoted in proportion to the ability of the community a surprising number of public and quasi-T^vihlic enterprises; and always the fireside of the poor man was as much in his thought as the benefit of the richer circle. Fair dealing and kindliness, prudence and economy in order to procure the comforts and simpler luxuries of life, reading and knowledge for those uses which wisdom subserves, constituted the real essence of his teaching. His inventive genius was ever at work devising methods of making daily life more agreeable, BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. 43 comfortable, and wholesome for all who have to live. In a word, the service of his fellow-men was his constant aim ; and he so served them that those public official functions which are euphemistically called ' public services ' seemed in his case almost an interruption of the more direct and far-reaching services which he was intent upon rendering to all civilized peoples. . . . " As a patriot none surpassed him. Again it was the love of the people that induced this feeling, which grew from no theory as to forms of government, no abstractions and doctrines about ' the rights of man.' . . . During the strug- gle of the States no man was more hearty in the cause than Franklin; and the depth of feeling shown in his letters, simple and unrhetorical as they are, is impressive. All that he had he gave. What also strikes the reader of his writ- ings is the broad national spirit which he manifested. He had an immense respect for the dignity of America ; he was perhaps fortunately saved from disillusionment by his dis- tance from home. But be this as it may, the way in which he felt and therefore genuinely talked about his nation and his country was not without its moral effect in Europe. " Intellectually there are few men who are Franklin's peers in all the ages and nations. He covered, and covered well, vast ground. The rejDutation of doing and knowing various unrelated things is wont to bring suspicion of perfunctori- ness ; but the ideal of the human intellect is an under- standing to which all knowledge and all activity are ger- mane. There have been a few, very few minds which have approximated toward this ideal, and among them Franklin's is prominent. He was one of the most distinguished scien- tists who have ever lived. Bancroft calls him ' the greatest diplomatist of his century.' ^ His ingenious and useful de- vices and inventions were very numerous. He possessed a masterly shrewdness in business and practical affairs. He was a profound thinker and preacher in morals and on the 1 Bancroft, History of the United States, ix. 134. 44 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN. conduct of life ; so that with the exception of the founders of great religions it would be difficult to name any persons who have more extensively influenced the ideas, motives, and habits of life of men. He was one of the most, perhaps the most agreeable conversationist of his age. He was a rare wit and humorist, and in an age when * American humor ' was still unborn, amid contemporaries who have left no trace of a jest, still less of the faintest appreciation of humor, all which he said and wrote was brilliant with both the most charming qualities of the human mind. . . . He was a man who impressed his ability upon all who met him ; so that the abler the man and the more experienced in judging men, the higher did he rate Franklin when brought into direct contact with him ; politicians and states- men of Europe, distrustful and sagacious, trained readers and valuers of men, gave him the rare honor of placing con- fidence not only in his personal sincerity, but in his broad fairmindedness, a mental quite as much as a moral trait. " It is hard indeed to give full expression to a man of such scope in morals, in mind, and in affairs. He illustrates humanity in an astonishing multiplicity of ways at an infi- nite number of points. He, more than any other, seems to show us how many-sided our human nature is. No individ- ual, of course, fills the entire circle ; but if we can imagine a circumference which shall express humanity, we can place within it no one man who will reach out to apjDroach it and to touch it at so many points as will Franklin. A man of active as well as universal good will, of perfect trustfulness towards all dwellers on the earth, of supreme wisdom expanding over all the interests of the race, none has earned a more kindly loyalty. By the instruction which he gave, by his discoveries, by his inventions, and by his achieve- ments in public life he earns the distinction of having ren- dered to men varied and useful services excelled by no other one man ; and thus he has established a claim upon the gratitude of mankind so broad that history holds few who can be his rivals." BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. 45 CHRONOLOGICAL LIST OF THE PRINCIPAL EVENTS IN THE LIFE OF FRANKLIN. Born in Boston, Massachusetts .... January 17, 1*706 Is apprenticed to his brother, a printer ..... 1718 Begins to write for the " New England Courant " . . , 1719 Runs away to New York, and finally to Philadelphia . . 1723 Goes to England and works at his trade as a journeyman printer in London ........ 1725 Returns to Philadelphia . 1726 Marries 1730 Establishes the " Philadelphia Gazette " .... 1730 First publishes " Poor Richard s Almanac " . . . . 1732 Is appointed Postmaster of Philadelphia .... 1737 Establishes the Philadelphia Public Library .... 1742 Establishes the American Philosophical Society and the Uni- versity of Philadelphia 1744 Carries on the investigations by which he proves the identity of lightning- with electricity 1746-52 Assists in founding a hospital . . . . . . 1751 Is appointed Postmaster-General for the Colonies . . . 1753 Is sent by the Assembly of the Province of Pennsylvania as an emissary to England in behalf of the colonists . . 1757 Receives the degree of LL. D. from St. Andrews, Oxford, and Edinburgh 1764 Procures a repeal of the Stamp Act 1766 Is elected F. R. S., and receives the Copley Gold Medal for his papers on the nature of lightning ..... 1775 Is elected to the Continental Congress 1775 Signs the Declaration of Independence (having been one of the committee to draft it) ...... • 1776 Is employed in the diplomatic service of the United States, chiefly at Paris 1776-85 Is President of the Pennsylvania Supreme Council . . 1785-88 Is a delegate to the convention to draw up the United States Constitution ........ 1787 Dies at Philadelphia ....... April 17, 1791 POOR RICHARD'S ALMANAC. [In Franklin's lifetime the almanac was the most popular form of literature in America. A few people read newspapers, but every farmer who could read at all had an almanac hanging by the fireplace. Besides the monthly calendar and movements of the heavenly bodies, the almanac contained anecdotes, scraps of useful information, and odds and ends of literature. Franklin began the publication of such an almanac in 1732, pretending that it was written by one Richard Saunders. It was pub- lished annually for twenty-five years. " I endeavored," says Franklin, " to make it both entertaining and useful ; and it ac- cordingly came to be in such demand, that I reaped considerable profit from it, vending annually near ten thousand. And observ- ing that it was generally read, scarce any neighborhood in the province being without it, I considered it as a proper vehicle for conveying instruction among the common people, who bought scarcely any other books ; I therefore filled all the little spaces that occurred between the remarkable days in the calendar with proverbial sentences, chiefly such as inculcated industry and frugality as the means of procuring wealth, and thereby securing virtue ; it being more difficult for a man in want to act always honestly, as, to use here one of those proverbs, ' it is hard for an empty sack to stand upright.' " In the almanac Franklin in- troduced his proverbs by the phrase Poor Richard says, as if he were quoting from Richard Saunders, and so the almanac came to be called Poor Richard's Almanac. " These proverbs," he continues, " which contain the wisdom of many ages and nations, I assembled and formed into a con- nected discourse, prefixed to the almanac of 1757, as the harangue of a wise old man to the people attending an auction. The bringing all these scattered counsels thus into a focus enabled them to make greater impression. The piece, being universally approved, was copied in all the newspapers of the continent [that is, the American continent] ; reprinted in Britain on a POOR RICHARD'S ALMANAC. 47 broadside, to be stuck up in houses ; two translations were made of it in French, and great numbers bought by the clergy and gentry, to distribute gratis among their poor parishioners and tenants. In Pennsylvania, as it discouraged useless expense in foreign superfluities, some thought it had its share of influence in producing that growing plenty of money which was observable for several years after its publication." Franklin's example was followed by other writers, — Noah Webster, the maker of dictionaries, among them ; and one can see in the popular almanacs of to-day, such as The Old Farmer's Almanac, the effect of Franklin's style. When the king of France gave Captain John PaulJones a ship with which to make attacks upon British merchantmen in the war for independence, it was named, out of compliment to Franklin, the Bon Homme Richard, which might be translated Clever Richard. The pages which follow are the connected discourse prefixed to the almanac of 1757.] Courteous Keader : — I have heard that nothing gives an author so great pleasure as to find his works respectfully quoted by other learned authors. This pleasure I have seldom enjoyed. For though I have been, if I may say it without vanity, an eminent author of Almanacs annu- ally, now for a full quarter of a century, my brother authors in the same way, for what reason I know not, have ever been very sparing in their applauses ; and no other author has taken the least notice of me ; so that did not my writings produce me some solid pud- ding, the great deficiency of praise would have quite discouraged me. I concluded at length, that the people were the best judges of my merit ; for they buy my works ; and besides, in my rambles, where I am not personally known, I have frequently heard one or other of my adages repeated, with as Poor Richard says at the end of it. This gave me some satisfaction, as it 48 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN, showed, not only that my instructions were regarded, but discovered likewise some respect for my authority ; and I own, that to encourage the practice of remem- bering and repeating those sentences, I have some- times quoted myself with great gravity. Judge, then, how much I must have been gratified by an incident I am going to relate to you. I stopped my horse lately where a great number of people were collected at a vendue of merchant's goods. The hour of sale not being come, they were conversing on the badness of the times ; and one of the company called to a plain, clean old man with white locks, " Pray, Father Abraham, what think you of the times ? Won't these heavy taxes quite ruin the country? How shall we ever be able to pay them? What would you advise us to?" Father Abraham stood up and replied ; " If you would have my advice, I will give it you in short ; for A word to the tvise is enough, and Many words wonH fill a hushel, as Poor Kichard says." They all joined, desiring him to speak his mind, and gathering round him, he proceeded as follows: — Friends, says he, and neighbors, the taxes are in- deed very heavy, and if those laid on by the govern- ment were the only ones we had to pay, we might the more easily discharge them ; but we have many others, and much more grievous to some of us. We are taxed twice as much by our idleness, three times as much by our pride, and four times as much by our folly ; and from these taxes the commissioners cannot ease or deliver us, by allowing an abatement. However, let us hearken to good advice, and something may be done for us; God helps them that helps themselves, as Poor Richard says in his Almanac of 1733. It would be thought a hard government that should POOR RICHARD'S ALMANAC. 49 tax its peoj^le one tenth part of their time, to be em- ployed in its service, but idleness taxes many of us much more, if we reckon all that is spent in absolute sloth, or doing of nothing ; with that which is spent in idle employments or amusements that amount to nothing. Sloth, by bringing on diseases, absolutely shortens life. Sloth, like rust, consumes faster than labor tvears ; ichile the used key is ahcays bright, as Poor Richard says. But dost thou love life f then do not squander time, for that 's the stuff life is made of, as Poor Richard says. How much more that is necessary do we spend in sleep? forgetting, that the sleeping fox catches no poultry, and that there will be sleejnng enough in the grave, as Poor Richard says. If time be of all things the most precious, icastiiig of time must be, as Poor Richard says, the g7'eatest prodigality ; since, as he elsewhere tells us, lost time is never found again ; and what we call time enough ! ahoays proves little enough. Let us then up and be doing, and doing to the purpose ; so, by diligence, shall we do more with less perplexity. Sloth makes all things dAfficidt, but industry all things easy, as Poor Richard says ; and He that riseth late must trot all day, and shall scarce overtake his business at night ; while laziness travels so slowly that Poverty soon overtakes him, as we read in Poor Richard ; who adds. Drive thy business ! let not that drive thee ! and — Early to bed and early to rise Makes a man healthy, wealthy and wise. So what signifies wishing and hojnng for better times ? We may make these times better, if we bestir ourselves. Industry need not wish, as Poor Richard says, and He that lives on hope ivill die fasting. 60 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN. There are no gains without pains ; then help^ hands! for I have no lands ; or, if I have, they are smartly taxed. And, as Poor Kichard likewise observes, He that hath a trade hath an estate^ and he that hath a calling hath an office of profit and honor ; but then the trade must be worked at, and the calling well fol- lowed, or neither the estate nor the office will enable us to pay our taxes. If we are industrious we shall never starve ; for, as Poor Richard says. At the worh- ing-man^s house hunger looks in, hut dares not enter. Nor will the bailiff or the constable enter, for Industry/ pays debts, while despair increaseth them. What though you have found no treasure, nor has any rich relation left you a legacy. Diligence is the mother of good luch, as Poor Richard says, and God gives all things to industry. Then plough deep lohile sluggards sleep, Atid you shall have corn to sell and to keep, says Poor Dick. Work while it is called to-day, for you know not how much you may be hindered to- morrow ; which makes Poor Richard say, 07ie to-day is worth two to-morrows ; and farther, Have you somewhat to do to-morrow f Do it to-day 1 If you were a servant, would you not be ashamed that a good master should catch you idle ? Are you then your own master ? Be ashamed to catch your- self idle, as Poor Dick says. When there is so much to be done for yourself, your family, your country, and your gracious king, be up by peep of day ! Let not the sun looh down and say, " Inglorious here he lies 1 " Handle your tools without mittens ! remem- ber that The cat in gloves catches no mice I as Poor Richard says. POOR RICHARD'S ALMANAC. 51 'T is true there is much to be done, and perhaps you are weak-handed ; but stick *to it steadily, and you will see great effects ; for Constant dropping wears aumy stones ; and By diligence and patience the mouse ate in two the cable ; and Little strokes fell great oaks ; as Poor Kichard says in his Almanac, the year I cannot just now remember. Methinks I hear some of you say, " Must a man afford himself no leisure ? " I will tell thee, my friend, what Poor Eichard says. Employ thy time well, if thou mealiest to gain leisure ; and Since thou art not sure of a minute, throw not away an hour ! Leisure is time for doing something useful ; this lei- sure the diligent man will obtain, but the lazy man never ; so that, as Poor Richard says, A life of leisure and a life of laziness are two things. Do you im- agine that sloth will afford you more comfort than labor? No! for, as Poor Richard says, Trouble springs from idleness, and grievous toil from needless ease. Many, without labor, woidd live by their tvits only, but they HI break for want of stock [i. e. capi- tal] ; whereas industry gives comfort, and plenty, and respect. Fly pleasures, and they HI follow you. The diligent spinner has a large shift ; and — Noiv I have a sheep and a cow, Everybody bids me good morroiv. All which is well said by Poor Richard. But with our industry we must likewise be steady, settled, and careful, and oversee our own affairs with our own eyes, and not trust too much to others ; for, as Poor Richard says, — / never saw an oft-removed tree Nor yet an oft-removed family That throve so well as those that settled he. 52 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN. And again, Three removes are as had as a fire ; and again, Keejp thy shop^ and thy shop will keep thee ; and again, If you would have your business done, go ; if not, send. And again, — He that by the plough would thrive, Himself must either hold or drive. And again, The eye of the master will do more work than hoth his hands ; and again, Wa?it of care does us more damage than want of knowledge ; and again, JVot to oversee workmen is to leave them your purse open. Trusting too much to others' care is the ruin of many ; for, as the Almanac says, In the affairs of this world men are saved, not by faith, but by the want of it ; but a man's own care is profitable ; for saith Poor Dick, Learning is to the studious, and Riches to the careful ; as well as. Power to the bold, and Heaven to the virtuous. And further, If you would have a faithful servant, and one that you like, serve yourself. And again, he adviseth to circumspection and care, even in the smallest matters; because sometimes, A little neglect may breed great mischief ; adding, /br want of a nail the shoe was lost ; for want of a shoe the horse was lost ; and for want of a horse the rider was lost ; being overtaken and slain by the enemy ; all for want of a little care about a horse-shoe nail ! So much for industry, my friends, and attention to one's own business ; but to these we must add frugal- ity, if we would make our industry more certainly suc- cessful. A man may, if he knows not how to save as he gets, keep his nose all his life to the grindstone, and die not worth a groat at last. A fat kitchen makes a lean will, as Poor Richard says ; and — POOR RICHARD'S ALMANAC. 53 Many estates are spent in the getting, Since women for tea '^forsook spinning and knitting, And men for punch forsook hewing and splitting. If you would be wealthy, says lie in another Al- manac, Think of saving as well as of gettiyig. The Indies have not made Spain rich ; because her out- goes are greater than her incomes. Away, then, with your expensive follies, and you will not have so much cause to complain of hard times, heavy taxes, and chargeable families ; for, as Poor Dick says, — Women and wine, game and deceit. Make the wealth small and the wants great. And farther, WTiat maintains one vice would bring up two children. You may think, perhaps, that a little tea, or a little punch now and then ; a diet a little more costly ; clothes a little more finer ; and a little more entertainment now and then, can be no great matter ; but remember what Poor Richard says. Many a little makes a mickle ; and further. Beware of little expenses; A small leak will sink a great ship ; and again, — Who dainties love, shall beggars prove ; and moreover. Fools make feasts^ and wise men eat them. Here are you all got together at this vendue of fineries and knick-knacks. You call them goods ; but if' you do not take care, they will prove evils to some of you. You expect they will be sold cheap, and perhaps they may for less than they cost ; but, if you have no occasion for them, they must be dear to ^ Tea at this time was a costly drink, and was regarded as a luxury. 54 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN. you. Remember what Poor Richard says : Buy what thou hast no need of^ and ere long thou shalt sell thy necessaries. And again, At a great i^ennyworth j)ause a while. He means, that perhaps the cheapness is apparent only, and not real ; or the bargain by strait- ening thee in thy business, may do thee more harm than good. For in another place he says, Many have heen ruined hy buying good pennyworths. Again, Poor Richard says, ^T is foolish to lay out money in a purchase of repentance ; and yet this folly is practised every day at vendues for want of minding the Almanac. Wise me7i, as Poor Richard says, learii hy others^ harms ; Fools scarcely hy their own ; but Felix quemfaciunt aliena pericula cautum.^ Many a one, for the sake of finery on the back, has gone with a hungry belly, and half -starved their families. Silks and satins^ scarlets and velvets, as Poor Richard sa.js, put oiit the hitchen fire. These are not the ne- cessaries of life ; they can scarcely be called the con- veniences ; and yet, only because they look pretty, how many want to have them! The artificial wants of mankind thus become more numerous than the nat- ural ; and, as Poor Dick says. For one poor jjerson there are a hundred indigent. By these, and other extravagances, the genteel are reduced to poverty, and forced to borrow of those whom they formerly despised, but who, through in- dustry and frugality, have maintained their standing ; in which case it appears plainly, that A ploughman on his legs is higher than a gentleman on his knees, as Poor Richard says. Perhaps they have had a 1 He 's a lucky fellow who is made prudent by other men's perils. POOR RICHARD'S ALMANAC, 55 small estate left them, which they knew not the get- ting of; they think, ' T is day^ and will never he night ; that a little to he sj^ent out of so much is not worth minding ; (J. child and a fool ^ as Poor Rich- ard says, imagine twenty shillings and twenty years can never be spent,) but Always taking out of the meal-tuh^ and never jmtting in^ soon comes to the hottom. Then, as Poor Dick says, When the well 's dry^ they know the worth of water. But this they might have known before, if they had taken his ad- vice. If you would know the value of money^ go and try to horrow some ; for He that goes a horrow- ing, goes a sorrowing, and indeed so does he that lends to such people, when he goes to get it in again. Poor Dick further advises, and says — JFond pride of dress is, sure a very curse ; Ere fancy you consult, consult your purse. And again. Pride is as loud a heggar as Want, and a great deal more saucy. When you have bought one fine thing, you must buy ten more, that your ap- pearance may be all of a piece ; but Poor Dick says, ^T is easier to suppress the first desire, than to sat- isfy cdl that follow it. And 't is as truly folly for the poor to ape the rich, as for the frog to swell in order to equal the ox. Great estates may venture more, But little boats should keep near sTiore. *T is, however, a folly soon punished ; for, Pride that dines on vanity sups on contempt, as Poor Rich- ard says. And in another place. Pride hreakfasted with Plenty, dined with Poverty, and supped with Infamy. And after all, of what use is this pride of appear- 56 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN. ance, for which so much is risked, so much is suffered ? It cannot promote health or ease pain ; it makes no increase of merit in the person ; it creates envy ; it hastens misfortune. What is a butterfly ? At best He 's but a caterpillar drest, ^ The gaudy fop's his j^icture Just, as Poor Kichard says. But what madness must it be to run into debt for these superfluities ! We are offered, by the terms of this vendue, six months' credit ; and that, perhaps, has induced some of us to attend it, because we cannot spare the ready money, and hope now to be fine with- out it. But, ah ! think what you do when you run in debt : Yoic give to another power over your liberty. If you cannot pay at the time, you will be ashamed to see your creditor ; you will be in fear when you speak to him ; you will make poor, pitiful, sneaking excuses, and by degrees come to lose your veracity, and sink into base, downright lying ; for, as Poor Richard says. The second vice is lying, the first is running into debt; and again, to the same purpose, lying rides upon debfs back ; whereas a free-born Englishman ought not to be ashamed or afraid to see or speak to any man living. But poverty often deprives a man of all spirit and virtue. ^ Tis hard for an emptty bag to stand upright 1 as Poor Richard truly says. What would you think of that prince, or the government, who should issue an edict forbidding you to dress like a gentleman or gentlewoman, on pain of imprisonment or servitude ? Would you not say that you are free, have a right to dress as you please, and that such an edict would be a breach of your privileges, and such a government tyrannical? And yet you are about to POOR RICHARD'S ALMANAC. 57 put yourself under such tyranny, when you run in debt for such dress ! Your creditor has authority, at his pleasure, to deprive you of your liberty, by con- fining you in jail for life, or to sell you for a servant, if you should not be able to pay him.^ When you have got your bargain, you may, perhaps, think little of payment ; but Creditors (Poor Richard tells us) have better memories than debtors ; and in another place says, Creditors are a siqjerstitious set, great ob- servers of set days and times. The day comes round before you are aware, and the demand is made before you are prepared to satisfy it ; or, if you bear your debt in mind, the term which at first seemed so long, will, as it lessens, appear extremely short. Time will seem to have added wings to his heels as well as his shoulders. Those have a short Lent, saith Poor Richard, who oice money to be paid at Easter. Then since, as he says. The borrower is a slave to the lender, and the debtor to the creditor, disdain the chain, preserve your freedom, and maintain your in- dependency. Be industrious and free ; be frugal and free. At present, perhaps, you may think your- self in thriving circumstances, and that you can bear a little extravagance without injury ; but — For age and ivant, save while you may, No morning sun lasts a ivhole day. As Poor Richard says, gain may be temporary and uncertain ; but ever, while you live, expense is con- stant and certain ; and ' Tis easier to build two chim- neys than to heep one in fuel, as Poor Richard says ; so, Rather go to bed supperless than rise in debt. ^ At the time when this was written, and for many years af- terward, the laws against bankrupts and poor debtors were ex- tremely severe. 68 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN. Get what you can and what you get hold; ' T is the stone that will turn all your lead into gold,^ as Poor Richard says ; and, when you have got the Philosopher's stone, sure, you will no longer complain of bad times or the difficulty of paying taxes. This doctrine, my friends, is reason and wisdom ; but, after all, do not depend too much upon your own industry and frugality and prudence, though excel- lent things ; for they may all be blasted without the blessing of Heaven ; and therefore, ask that blessing humbly, and be not uncharitable to those that at pres- ent seem to want it, but comfort and help them. Re- member Job suffered, and was afterwards prosperous. And now, to conclude. Experience keeps a dear school^ hut fools will learn in no other, and scarce in that ; for it is true. We may give advice, hit we can- not give conduct, as poor Richard says. However, remember this. They that wonH he counselled, canH he helped, as Poor Richard says ; and further, that, 7j^ you will not hear reason, she ^11 surely rap your hnuchles. Thus the old gentleman ended his harangue. The people heard it, and approved the doctrine ; and im- mediately practised the contrary, just as if it had been a common sermon. For the vendue opened, and they began to buy extravagantly, notwithstanding all his cautions, and their own fear of taxes. I found the good man had thoroughly studied my Almanacs, and digested all I had dropped on those topics during the course of five-and-twenty years. The frequent men- 1 In the Middle Ages there was a great search made for the philosopher's stone, as it was called, a mineral which should have the power of turning base metals into gold. POOR RICHARD'S ALMANAC. 59 tion he made of me must have tired any one else ; but my vanity was wonderfully delighted with it, though I was conscious that not a tenth part of the wisdom was my own which he ascribed to me, but rather the gleanings that I had made of the sense of all ages and nations. However, I resolved to be the better for the echo of it ; and, though I had at first determined to buy stuff for a new coat, I went away resolved to wear my old one a little longer. Reader, if thou wilt do the same, thy profit will be as great as mine. I am, as ever, thine to serve thee, Richard Saunders. July 7, 1757. From " Poor Richard's Almanac," 1756. PLAN FOR SAVING ONE HUNDRED THOUSAND POUNDS. As I spent some weeks last winter in visiting my old acquaintance in the Jerseys, great complaints I heard for want of money, and that leave to make more paper bills could not be obtained. Friends and countrymen, my advice on this head shall cost you nothing ; and, if you will not be angry with me for giving it, I promise you not to be offended if you do not take it. You spend yearly at least two hundred thousand pounds^ it is said, in European, East-Indian, and West-Indian commodities. Suppose one half of this expense to be in things absolutely necessary^ the other half may be called superfluities^ or, at best, conven- iencies, which, however, you might live without for one little year, and not suffer exceedingly. Now, to save this half, observe these few directions : — 60 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN. 1. When you incline to have new clothes, look first well over the old ones, and see if you cannot shift with them another year, either by scouring, mending, or even patching if necessary. Remember, a patch on your coat, and money in your pocket, is better and more creditable than a writ on your back, and no money to take it off. 2. When you are inclined to buy China ware, chintzes, India silks, or any other of their flimsy, slight manufactures, I would not be so bad with you as to in- sist on your absolutely resolving against it; all I ad- vise is, to 2^ut it off (as you do your repentance) till another year ; and this, in some respects, may prevent an occasion of repentance. TO SAMUEL MATHER. Passy, May 12, 1784. I received your kind letter, with your excellent ad- vice to the people of the United States, which I read with great pleasure, and hope it will be duly regarded. Such writings, though they may be lightly passed over by many readers, yet, if they make a deep impression on one active mind in a hundred, the effects may be considerable. Permit me to mention one little in- stance, which, though it relates to myself, will not be quite miinteresting to you. When I was a boy, I met with a book entitled, " Essays to do Good," which I think was written by your father. ^ It had been so little regarded by a former possessor, that several leaves of it were torn out ; but the remainder gave me such a turn of thinking, as to have an influence on my conduct through life, for I have always set a greater 1 Cotton Mather. — Ed. FAMILIAR LETTERS. 61 value on the character of a doer of good than on any- other kind of reputation ; and if I have been, as you seem to think, a useful citizen, the public owes the ad- vantage of it to that book. You mention your being in your seventy-eighth year. I am in my seventy-ninth year ; we are growing old to- gether. It is now more than sixty years since I left Boston, but I remember well both your father and grandfather, having heard them both in the pulpit and seen them in their houses. The last time I saw your father was in the beginning of 1724, when I visited him after my first trip to Pennsylvania. He received me in his library, and on my taking leave showed me a shorter way out of the house through a narrow passage, which was crossed by a beam over- head. We were still talking as I withdrew, he accom- panying me behind, and I turning partly towards him, when he said hastily, " Stoop, stoop ! " I did not un- derstand him till I felt my head hit against the beam. He was a man that never missed any occasion of giv- ing instruction, and upon this he said to me, " You are young ^ and have the ujorld before you; stoop as you go through it^ and you will miss many hard thumj)sr This advice, thus beat into my head, has frequently been of use to me ; and I often think of it when I see pride mortified, and misfortunes brought upon people by their carrying their heads too high. TO THE REV. DR. LATHROP, BOSTON. Philadelphia, 31 May, 1788. Reverend Sir : I received your obliging favor of the 6th instant by Mr. Hillard, with whose conver- sation I was much pleased, and would have been glad to have had more of it if he would have spared it to 62 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN. me ; but the short time of his stay has prevented. You need make no apology for introducing any of your friends to me. I consider it as doing me honor, as well as giving me pleasure. I thank you for the pamphlet of the Humane Society. In return, please to accept one of the same kind, which was published while I resided in France. If your Society have not hitherto seen it, it may possibly afford them useful hints. It would certainly, as you observe, be a very great pleasure to me if I could once again visit my native town, and walk over the grounds I used to frequent when a boy, and where I enjoyed many of the inno- cent pleasures of youth, which would be so brought to my remembrance, and where I might find some of my old acquaintance to converse with. But when I con- sider how well I am situated here, with everything about me that I can call either necessary or conven- ient ; the fatigues and bad accommodations to be met with and suffered in a land journey, and the unpleas- antness of sea voyages to one who, although he has crossed the Atlantic eight times and made many smaller trips, does not recollect his having ever been at sea without taking a firm resolution never to go to sea again ; and that, if I were arrived in Boston, I should see but little of it, as I could neither bear walking nor riding in a carriage over its pebbled streets; and, above all, that I should find very few indeed of my old friends living, it being now sixty-five years since I left it to settle here, — all this considered, I say, it seems probable, though not certain, that I shall hardly again visit that beloved place. But I enjoy the company and conversation of its inhabitants, when any of them are so good as to visit me ; for, besides their general FAMILIAR LETTERS. 63 good sense, which I value, the Boston manner, turn of phrase, and even tone of voice and accent in pronun- ciation, all please, and seem to refresh and revive me. I have been long impressed with the same sentiments you so well express of the growing felicity of man- kind, from the improvements in philosophy, morals, politics, and even the conveniences of common living, and the invention and acquisition of new and useful utensils and instruments, so that I have sometimes almost wished it had been my destiny to be born two or three centuries hence ; for invention and improve- ment are prolific, and beget more of their kind. The present progress is rapid'. Many of great importance, now unthought of, will before that period be pro- duced ; and then I might not only enjoy their advan- tages, but have my curiosity gratified in knowing what they are to be. I see a little absurdity in what I have just written ; but it is to a friend, who will wink and let it pass, while I mention one reason more for such a wish, which is, that, if the art of physic shall be im- proved in proportion to other arts, we may then be able to avoid diseases, and live as long as the patri- archs in Genesis, to which I suppose we should have little objection. I am glad my dear sister has so good and kind a neighbor. I sometimes suspect she may be backward in acquainting me with circumstances in which I might be more useful to her. If any such should occur to your observation, your mentioning them to me will be a favor I shall be thankful for. With great esteem, I have the honor to be, reverend sir, your most obedient and most humble servant, B. Franklin. 64 BENJAMIN FRANKLIN. TO BENJAMIN WEBB. Passy, 22 April, 1784. I received yours of the 15th instant, and the memo- rial it enclosed. The account they give of your sit- uation grieves me. I send you herewith a bill for ten louis d'ors. I do not pretend to give such a sum ; I only lend it to you. When you shall return to your country with a good character, you cannot fail of get- ting into some business that will in time enable you to pay all your debts. In that case, when you meet with another honest man in similar distress, you must pay me by lending this sum to him ; enjoining him to discharge the debt by a like operation when he shall be able, and shall meet with such another opportunity. I hope it may thus go through many hands before it meets with a knave that will stop its progress. This is a trick of mine for doing a deal of good with a little money. I am not rich enough to afford mucJi in good works, and so am obliged to be cunning^ and make the most of a little. With best wishes for the success of your memorial and your future prosperity, I am, dear sir, your most obedient servant, B. Franklin. OLIVER WENDELL HOLMES. BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. Oliver Wendell Holmes was born at Cambridge, Massachusetts, August 29, 1809. The house in which he was born stood between the sites now occupied by the Hem- enway Gymnasium and the Law School of Harvard Uni- versity, and was of historic interest as having been the head- quarters of General Artemas Ward, and of the Committee of Safety in the days just before the Revolution. Upon the steps of the house stood President Langdon, of Har- vard College, tradition says, and prayed for the men who, halting there a few moments, marched forward under Colo- nel Prescott's lead to throw up intrenchments on Bunker Hill on the night of June 16, 1775. Dr. Holmes's father carried forward the traditions of the old house, for he was Rev. Dr. Abiel Holmes, whose American Annals was the first careful record of American history written after the Revolution. Born and bred in the midst of historic associations. Holmes had from the first a lively interest in American his- tory and politics, and though possessed of strong humorous gifts, has often turned his song into patriotic channels, while the current of his literary life has been distinctly American. He began to write poetry when in college at Cambridge, and some of his best-known early pieces, like Evening, hy a Tailor, The Meeting of the Dryads, The Spectre Pig, were contributed to the Collegian, an undergraduate journal, while he was studying law the year after his graduation. At the QQ OLIVER WENDELL HOLMES. same time he wrote the well-known poem Old Ironsides^ a protest against the proposed breaking ujd of the frigate Con- stitution ; the poem was printed in the Boston Daily Adver- tiser, and its indignation and fervor carried it through the country, and raised such a popular feeling that the ship was saved from an ignominious destruction. Holmes shortly gave up the study of law, went abroad to study medicine, and returned to take his degree at Harvard in 1836. At the same time he delivered a poem, Poetry : a Metrical Essay, before the Phi Beta Kappa Society of Harvard, and ever since his profession of medicine and his love of litera- ture have received his united care and thought. In 1838 he was appointed Professor of Anatomy and Physiology at Dartmouth College, but remained there only a year or two, when he returned to Boston, married, and practised medi- cine. In 1847 he was made Parkman Professor of Anat- omy and Physiology in the Medical School of Harvard Col- lege, a position which he retained until the close of 1882, when he retired, to devote himself more exclusively to liter- ature. In 1857, when the Atlantic Monthly was established, Professor Lowell, who was asked to be editor, consented on condition that Dr. Holmes should be a regular contributor. Dr. Holmes at that time was known as the author of a num- ber of poems of grace, life, and wit, and he had published several professional j^apers and books, but his brilliancy as a talker gave him a strong local reputation, and Lowell shrewdly guessed that he would bring to the new magazine a singularly fresh and unusual power. He was right, for The Autocrat of the Breakfast- Table, beginning in the first number, unquestionably insured the Atlantic its early success. The readers of the day had forgotten that Holmes, twenty-five years before, had begun a series with the same title in Buckingham's New England Magazine, a periodi- cal of short life, so they did not at first understand why he should begin his first article, " I was just going to say when BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. 67 I was interrupted." From that time Dr. Holmes was a frequent contributor to the magazine, and in it appeared successively, The Autocrat of the Breakfast-Table, The Pro- fessor at the Breakfast-Tahle, The Professor's Story (after- ward called Elsie Vernier), The Guardian Angel, The Poet at the Breakfast- Tahle,The New Portfolio (afterward called A Mortal Antipathy), Our Hundred Days in Europe, and Over the Teacups, — prose papers and stories with occa- sional insertion of verse ; here also have been printed the many poems which he has so freely and happily written for festivals and public occasions, including the frequent poems at the yearly meetings of his college class. The wit and humor which have made his poetry so well known would never have given him his high rank had they not been asso- ciated with an admirable art which makes every word ne- cessary and felicitous, and a generous nature which is quick to seize upon what touches a common life. GRANDMOTHER'S STORY OF BUNKER HILL BATTLE. AS SHE SAW IT FROM THE BELFRY. [This poem was first published in 1875, in connection with the centenary of the battle of Bunker Hill. The bel- fry could hardly have been that of Christ Church, since tra- dition says that General Gage was stationed there watching the battle, and we may make it to be what was known as the New Brick Church, built in 1721, on Hanover, corner of Richmond Street, Boston, rebuilt of stone in 1845, and pulled down at the widening of Hanover Street in 1871. There are many narratives of the battle of Bunker Hill. Frothingham's History of the Siege of Boston is one of the most comprehensive accounts, and has furnished material for many pojDular narratives. The centennial celebration of the battle called out magazine and newspaper articles, which give the story with little variation. There are not many disputed points in connection with the event, the prin- cipal one being the discussion as to who was the chief officer.] 'T IS like stirring living embers when, at eighty, one remembers All the achings and the quakings of " the times tkat tried men's souls ; " 2. In December, 1776, Thomas Paine, whose Common Sense had so remarkable a popularity as the first homely expression of public opinion on Independence, began issuing a series of tracts called The Crisis, eighteen numbers of which appeared. The fa- miliar words quoted by the grandmother must often have been GRANDMOTHER'S STORY. 69 When I talk of Whig and Torij, when I tell the Rebel story, To you the words are ashes, but to me they 're burn- ing coals. I had heard the muskets' rattle of the April running battle ; 5 Lord Percy's hunted soldiers, I can see their red coats still; But a deadly chill comes o'er me, as the day looms up before me, When a thousand men lay bleeding on the slopes of Bunker's HiU. heard and used by her. They begin the first number of The Crisis : " These are the times that try men's souls : the summer soldier and the sunshine patriot will, in this crisis, shrink from the service of his country ; but he that stands it now deserves the love and thanks of man and woman." 3. The terms Whig and Tori/ were applied to the two parties in England who represented, respectively, the Whigs political and religious liberty, the Tories royal prerogative and ecclesias- tical authority. The names first came into use in 1679 in the struggles at the close of Charles II. 's reign, and continued in use until a generation or so ago, when they gave place to somewhat corresponduig terms of Liberal and Conservative. At the break- mg out of the war for Independence, the Whigs m England op- posed the measures taken by the crown in the management of the American colonies, while the Tories supported the crown. The names were naturally applied in America to the patriotic party, who were termed Whigs, and the loyalist party, termed Tories. The Tories in turn called the patriots rebels. 5. The Lexington and Concord affair of April 19, 1775, when Lord Percy's soldiers retreated in a disorderly manner to Charlestown, annoyed on the way by the Americans who fol- lowed and accompanied them. 70 OLIVER WENDELL HOLMES. 'T was a peaceful summer's morning, when the first thing gave us warning Was the booming of the cannon from the river and the shore : lo " Child," says grandma, " what 's the matter, what is all this noise and clatter ? Have those scalping Indian devils come to murder us once more ? " Poor old soul ! my sides were shaking in the midst of all my quaking, To hear her talk of Indians when the guns began to roar: She had seen the burning village, and the slaughter and the pillage, 15 When the Mohawks killed her father with their bul- lets through his door. Then I said, " Now, dear old granny, don't you fret and worry any. For I '11 soon come back and tell you whether this is work or play ; There can't be mischief in it, so I won't be gone a minute " — For a minute then I started. I was gone the livelong day. 20 No time for bodice-lacing or for looking-glass grima- cing ; 16. The Mohawks, a formidable part of the Six Nations, were held in great dread, as they were the most cruel and warlike of all the tribes. In connection with the French they fell upon the frontier settlements during Queen Anne's war, early in the eighteenth century, and committed terrible deeds, long remem- bered in New England households. GRANDMOTHER'S STORY. 71 Down my hair went as I hurried, tumbling half-way to my heels ; God forbid your ever knowing, when there 's blood around her flowing. How the lonely, helpless daughter of a quiet house- hold feels ! In the street I heard a thumping ; and I knew it was the stumping 25 Of the Corporal, our old neighbor, on the wooden leg he wore, With a knot of women round him, — it was lucky I had found him, So I followed with the others, and the Corporal marched before. They were making for the steeple, — the old soldier and his people ; The pigeons circled round us as we climbed the creak- ing stair, 30 Just across the narrow river — Oh, so close it made me shiver ! — Stood a fortress on the hill-top that but yesterday was bare. Not slow our eyes to find it ; well we know who stood behind it. Though the earthwork hid them from us, and the stub- born walls were dumb : Here were sister, wife, and mother, looking wild upon each other, ^ ^^ And their lips were white with terror as they said, THE HOUR HAS COME ! 72 OLIVER WENDELL HOLMES, The morning slowly wasted, not a morsel had we tasted, And our heads were almost splitting with the cannons' deafening thrill, When a figure tall and stately round the rampart strode sedately ; It was Prescott, one since told me ; he commanded on the hill. 40 Every woman's heart grew bigger when we saw his manly figure, With the banyan buckled round it, standing up so straight and tall ; Like a gentleman of leisure who is strolling out for pleasure. Through the storm of shells and cannon-shot he walked around the wall. At eleven the streets were swarming, for the red-coats' ranks were forming ; 45 At noon in marching order they were moving to the piers ; How the bayonets gleamed and glistened, as we looked far down, and listened To the trampling and the drum-beat of the belted grenadiers ! 40. Colonel William Prescott, who commanded the detach- ment which marched from Cambridge, June 16, 1775, to fortify Breed's Hill, was the grandfather of William Hickling Prescott, the historian. He was in the field during the entire battle of the 17th, in command of the redoubt. 42. Banyan — a flowered morning gown which Prescott is said to have worn during the hot day, a good illustration of the un- military appearance of the soldiers engaged. His nonchalant walk upon the parapets is also a historic fact, and was for the encouragement of the troops within the redoubt. GRANDMOTHER'S STORY. 73 At leiigtli tlie men have started, with a cheer (it seemed faint-hearted), In their scarlet regimentals, with their knapsacks on their backs, 50 And the reddening, rippling water, as after a sea- fight's slaughter, Kound the barges gliding onward blushed like blood along their tracks. So they crossed to the other border, and again they formed in order ; And the boats came back for soldiers, came for sol- diers, soldiers still : The time seemed everlasting to us women faint and fasting, — 55 At last they 're moving, marching, marching proudly up the hill. We can see the bright steel glancing all along the lines advancing — Now the front rank fires a volley — they have thrown away their shot ; For behind their earthwork lying, all the balls above them flying. Our people need not hurry ; so they wait and answer not. 60 Then the Corporal, our old cripple (he would swear sometimes and tipple), — He had heard the bullets whistle (in the old French war) before, — 62. Many of the officers as well as men on the American side had become familiarized with service through the old French war, which came to an end in 1763. 74 OLIVER WENDELL HOLMES. Calls out in words of jeering, just as if they all were hearing, — And his wooden leg thumps fiercely on the dusty bel- fry floor : — " Oh ! fire away, ye villains, and earn King George's shillin's, 65 But ye '11 waste a ton of powder afore a ' rebel ' falls ; You may bang the dirt and welcome, they 're as safe as Dan'l Malcolm Ten foot beneath the gravestone that you've splin- tered with your balls ! " In the hush of expectation, in the awe and trepidation Of the dread approaching moment, we are well-nigh breathless all ; 70 Though the rotten bars are failing on the rickety bel- fry railing. We are crowding up against them like the waves against a wall. 67. Dr. Holmes makes the following note to this line : " The following epitaph is still to be read on a tall gravestone, stand- ing as yet undisturbed among the transplanted monuments of the dead in Copp's Hill Burial Ground, one of the three city [Boston] cemeteries which have been desecrated and ruined within my own remembrance : — " Here lies buried in a Stone Grave 10 feet deep Capt. Daniel Malcolm Mercht Who departed this Life October 23, 1769, Aged 44 years, A true son of Liberty, A Friend to the Publick, An Enemy to oppression. And one of the foremost In opposing the Revenue Act* On America." GRANDMOTHER'S STORY. 75 Just a glimpse (tlie air is clearer), tliey are nearer, — nearer, — nearer, When a flash — a curling smoke-wreath — then a crash — the steeple shakes — The deadly truce is ended ; the tempest's shroud is rended ; 75 Like a morning mist it gathered, like a thunder-cloud it breaks! O the sight our eyes discover as the blue-black smoke blows over ! The red-coats stretched in windrows as a mower rakes his hay ; Here a scarlet heap is lying, there a headlong crowd is flying Like a billow that has broken and is shivered into spray. so Then we cried, " The troops are routed ! they are beat — it can't be doubted ! God be thanked, the fight is over ! " — Ah ! the grim old soldier's smile ! " Tell us, tell us why you look so ? " (we could hardly speak we shook so), — " Are they beaten ? Are they beaten ? Ake they beaten ? " — " Wait a while." O the trembling and the terror ! for too soon we saw our error : 85 They are bafiled, not defeated ; we have driven them back in vain ; And the columns that were scattered, round the colors that were tattered. Toward the sullen silent fortress turn their belted breasts again. 76 OLIVER WENDELL HOLMES. All at once, as we were gazing, lo ! tlie roofs of Charles- town blazing ! They have fired the harmless village ; in an hour it will be down ! 90 The Lord in Heaven confound them, rain his fire and brimstone round them, — The robbing, murdering red-coats, that would burn a peaceful town ! They are marching, stern and solemn; we can see each massive column As they near the naked earth-mound with the slanting walls so steep. Have our soldiers got faint-hearted, and in noiseless haste departed ? 95 Are they panic-struck and helpless ? Are they palsied or asleep ? Now ! the walls they 're almost under ! scarce a rod the foes asunder ! Not a firelock flashed against them ! up the earthwork they will swarm ! But the words have scarce been spoken when the ominous calm is broken, And a bellowing crash has emptied all the vengeance of the storm ! 100 So again, with murderous slaughter, pelted backwards to the water. Fly Pigot's running heroes and the frightened braves of Howe; 102. The generals on the British side were Howe, Clinton, and Pigot. GRANDMOTHER'S STORY. 77 And we shout, " At last they 're done for, it 's their barges they have run for : They are beaten, beaten, beaten ; and the battle 's over now!" And we looked, poor timid creatures, on the rough old soldier's features, los Our lips afraid to question, but he knew what we would ask : "Not sure," he said; "keep quiet, — once more, I guess, they '11 try it — Here 's damnation to the cut-throats ! " then he handed me his flask. Saying, " Gal, you 're looking shaky ; have a drop of Old Jamaiky ; I 'm afeard there '11 be more trouble afore the job is done ; " no So I took one scorching swallow ; dreadful faint I felt and hollow. Standing there from early morning when the firing was begun. All through those hours of trial I had watched a calm clock dial, As the hands kept creeping, creeping, — they were creeping round to four. When the old man said, " They 're forming with their bagonets fixed for storming : us It 's the death-grip that 's a coming, — they will try the works once more." "With brazen trumpets blaring, the flames behind them glaring. 78 OLIVER WENDELL HOLMES. The deadly wall before them, in close array they come ; Still onward, upward toiling, like a dragon's fold un- coiling, — Like the rattlesnake's shrill warning the reverberating drum ! 120 Over heaps all torn and gory — shall I tell the fearful story, How they surged above the breastwork, as a sea breaks over a deck ; How, driven, yet scarce defeated, our worn-out men retreated, With their powder-horns all emptied, like the swim- mers from a wreck ? It has all been told and painted ; as for me, they say I fainted, 125 And the wooden-legged old Corporal stumped with me down the stair : When I woke from dreams affrighted the evening lamps were lighted, — On the floor a youth was lying ; his bleeding breast was bare. And I heard through all the flurry, " Send for Wae- EEN ! hurry ! hurry ! Tell him here 's a soldier bleeding, and he '11 come and dress his wound ! " 130 Ah, we knew not till the morrow told its tale of death and sorrow, 129. Dr. Joseph Warren, of equal note at the time as a medi- cal man and a patriot. He was a volunteer in the battle, and fell there, the most serious loss on the American side. GRANDMOTHER'S STORY. 79 How the starlight found him stiffened on the dark and bloody ground. Who the youth was, what his name was, where the place from which he came was. Who had brought him from the battle, and had left him at our door. He could not speak to tell us ; but 't was one of our brave fellows, 135 As the homespun plainly showed us which the dying soldier wore. For they all thought he was dying, as they gathered round him crying, — And they said, " Oh, how they '11 miss him ! " and, " What will his mother do ? " Then, his eyelids just unclosing like a child's that has been dozing. He faintly murmured, " Mother ! " and — I saw his eyes were blue. 140 — " Why grandma, how you 're winking ! " — Ah, my child, it sets me thinking Of a story not like this one. Well, he somehow lived along ; So we came to know each other, and I nursed him like a — mother. Till at last he stood before me, tall, and rosy-cheeked, and strong. And we sometimes walked together in the pleasant summer weather ; 145 — "Please to tell us what his name was?" — Just your own, my little dear, 80 OLIVER WENDELL HOLMES. There 's his picture Copley painted : we became so well acquainted, That, — in short, that 's why I 'm grandma, and you children are all here ! THE PLOUGHMAN. ANNIVERSARY OF THE BERKSHIRE AGRICULTURAL SOCIETY, OCTOBER 4, 1849. Cleae the brown path, to meet his coulter's gleam ! Lo ! on he comes, behind his smoking team. With toil's bright dew-drops on his sunburnt brow, The lord of earth, the hero of the plough ! First in the field before the reddening sun, 5 Last in the shadows when the day is done. Line after line, along the bursting sod, Marks the broad acres where his feet have trod ; Still where he treads, the stubborn clods divide, The smooth, fresh furrow opens deep and wide ; 10 Matted and dense the tangled turf upheaves. Mellow and dark the ridgy cornfield cleaves ; Up the steep hillside, where the laboring train Slants the long track that scores the level plain ; Through the moist valley, clogged with oozing clay, is The patient convoy breaks its destined way ; At every turn the loosening chains resound, 147. John Singleton Copley was a portrait painter of cele- brity, who was born in America in 1737, and painted many famous portraits, which hang in private and public galleries in Boston and vicinity chiefly. He lived in England the latter half of his life, dying there in 1815. THE PLOUGHMAN. 81 The swinging plouglishare circles glistening round, Till the wide field one billowy waste appears, And wearied hands unbind the panting steers. 20 These are the hands whose sturdy labor brings The peasant's food, the golden pomp of kings ; This is the page whose letters shall be seen Changed by the sun to words of living green ; This is the scholar whose immortal pen 2s Spells the first lesson hunger taught to men ; These are the lines which heaven-commanded Toil Shows on his deed, — the charter of the soil ! O gracious Mother, whose benignant breast Wakes us to life, and lulls us all to rest, 3 How thy sweet features, kind to every clime, ^ Mock with their smile the wrinkled front of time ! We stain thy flowers,— they blossom o'er the dead ; We rend thy bosom, and it gives us bread ; O'er the red field that trampling strife has torn, a Waves the green plumage of thy tasselled corn ; Our maddening conflicts scar thy fairest plain, Still thy soft answer is the growing grain. Yet, O our Mother, while uncounted charms Steal round our hearts in thine embracing arms Let not our virtues in thy love decay. And thy fond sweetness waste our strength away. No ! by these hills, whose banners now displayed In blazing cohorts Autumn has arrayed ; By yon twin summits, on whose splintery crests The tossing hemlocks hold the eagles' nests ; By these fair plains the mountain circle screens. And feeds with streamlets from its dark ravines, — 82 OLIVER WENDELL HOLMES. True to their home, these faithful arms shall toil To crown with peace their own untainted soil ; And, true to God, to freedom, to mankind. If her chained bandogs Faction shall unbind, These stately forms, that bending even now Bowed their strong manhood to the humble plough, Shall rise erect, the guardians of the land, The same stern iron in the same right hand, Till o'er the hills the shouts of triumph run. The sword has rescued what the ploughshare won ! THE CHAMBERED NAUTILUS. This is the ship of pearl, which, poets feign, Sails the unshadowed main, — The venturous bark that flings On the sweet summer wind its purpled wings In gulfs enchanted, where the Siren sings, s And coral reefs lie bare, Where the cold sea-maids rise to sun their streaming hair. Its webs of living gauze no more unfurl ; Wrecked is the ship of pearl ! And every chambered cell, lo Where its dim dreaming life was wont to dwell. As the frail tenant shaped his growing shell. Before thee lies revealed, — Its irised ceiling rent, its sunless crypt unsealed ! Year after year beheld the silent toil is That spread his lustrous coil ; Still, as the spiral grew, THE IRON GATE. 83 He left the past year's dwelling for the new, Stole with soft step its shining archway through, Built up its idle door, 20 Stretched in his last-found home, and knew the old no more. Thanks for the heavenly message brought by thee, Child of the wandering sea. Cast from her lap, forlorn ! From thy dead lips a clearer note is born 25 Than ever Triton blew from wreathed horn ! While on my ear it rings. Through the deep caves of thought I hear a voice that sings : — Build thee more stately mansions, O my soul. As the swift seasons roll ! 30 Leave thy low-vaulted past ! Let each new temple, nobler than the last, Shut thee from heaven with a dome more vast. Till thou at length art free, Leaving thine outgrown shell by life's unresting sea! 35 THE IRON GATE. READ AT THE BREAKFAST GIVEN IN HONOR OF DR. HOLMES'S SEVENTIETH BIRTHDAY BY THE PUBLISHERS OF THE ATLAN- TIC MONTHLY, BOSTON, DECEMBER 3, 1879. Where is this patriarch you are kindly greeting ? Not unfamiliar to my ear his name, Nor yet unknown to many a joyous meeting In days long vanished, — is he still the same, 84 OLIVER WENDELL HOLMES. Or changed by years, forgotten, and forgetting, 5 Dull-eared, dim-siglited, slow of speech and thought, Still o'er the sad, degenerate present fretting. Where all goes wrong, and nothing as it ought ? Old age, the graybeard ! Well, indeed, I know him. Shrunk, tottering, bent, of aches and ills the prey ; lo In sermon, story, fable, picture, poem, Oft have I met him from my earliest day : In my old ^sop, toiling with his bundle, — His load of sticks, — politely asking Death Who comes when called for, — would he lug or trun- dle 15 His fagot for him ? — he was scant of breath. And sad " Ecclesiastes, or the Preacher," — Has he not stamped the image on my soul, In that last chapter, where the worn-out Teacher Sighs o'er the loosened cord, the broken bowl ? 20 Yes, long, indeed, I 've known him at a distance, And now my lifted door-latch shows him here ; I take his shrivelled hand without resistance. And find him smiling as his step draws near. What though of gilded baubles he bereaves us, 25 Dear to the heart of youth, to manhood's prime ; Think of the calm he brings, the wealth he leaves us. The hoarded spoils, the legacies of time ! Altars once flaming, still with incense fragrant, Passion's uneasy nurslings rocked asleep, so Hope's anchor faster, wild desire less vagrant, Life's flow less noisy, but the stream how deep ! THE IRON GATE. 85 Still as the silver cord gets worn and slender, Its lightened task-work tugs with lessening strain, Hands yet more helpful, voices grown more tender, 35 Soothe with their softened tones the slumberous brain. Youth longs and manhood strives, but age remembers. Sits by the raked-up ashes of the past. Spreads its thin hands above the whitening embers That warm its creeping life-blood till the last. 40 Dear to its heart is every loving token That comes unbidden ere its pulse grows cold, Ere the last lingering ties of life are broken, Its labors ended and its story told. Ah, while around us rosy youth rejoices, 45 For us the sorrow-laden breezes sigh. And through the chorus of its jocund voices Throbs the sharp note of misery's hopeless cry. As on the gauzy wings of fancy flying From some far orb I track our watery sphere, 50 Home of the struggling, suffering, doubting, dying. The silvered globule seems a glistening tear. But Nature lends her mirror of illusion To win from saddening scenes our age-dimmed eyes, And misty day-dreams blend in sweet confusion 55 The wintry landscape and the summer skies. So when the iron portal shuts behind us, And life forgets us in its noise and whirl. Visions that shunned the glaring noon-day find us. And glimmering starlight shows the gates of pearl, go 86 OLIVER WENDELL HOLMES. — I come not here your morning hour to sadden, A limping pilgrim, leaning on his staff, — I, who have never deemed it sin to gladden This vale of sorrow with a wholesome laugh. If word of mine another's gloom has brightened, 65 Through my dumb lips the heaven-sent message came ; If hand of mine another's task has lightened, It felt the guidance that it dares not claim. But, O my gentle sisters, O my brothers, These thick-sown snow-flakes hint of toil's release ; 7o These feebler pulses bid me leave to others The tasks once welcome ; evening asks for peace. Time claims his tribute ; silence now is golden ; Let me not vex the too long suffering lyre ; Though to your love untiring still beholden, 75 The curfew tells me — cover up the fire. And now with grateful smile and accents cheerful. And warmer heart than look or word can tell. In simplest phrase — these traitorous eyes are tear- ful- Thanks, Brothers, Sisters — Children — and fare- well I 80 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. It was Hawthorne's wont to keep note-books, in which he recorded his observations and reflections ; sometimes he spoke in them of himself, his plans, and his prospects. He began the practice early, and continued it through life ; and after his death selections from these note-books were pub- lished in six volumes, under the titles : Passages from the American Note-Books of Nathaniel Hawthorne, Passages froTn the English Note-Books of Nathaniel Hawthorne, and Passages from the French and Italian Note-Books of Nathaniel Hawthorne. In these books, and in prefaces which appear in the front of the volumes containing his col- lected stories, one finds many frank expressions of the interest which Hawthorne took in his work, and the author appeals very ingenuously to the reader, speaking with an almost confidential closeness of his stories and sketches. Then the Note-Books contain the un wrought material of the books which the writer put out in his lifetime. One finds there the suggestions of stories, and frequently pages of observa- tion and reflection, which were afterward transferred, almost as they stood, into the author's works. It is very interesting labor to trace Hawthorne's stories and sketches back to these records in his note-books, and to compare the finished work with the rough material. It seems, also, as if each reader was admitted into the privacy of the author's mind. That is the first impression, but a closer study reveals two 88 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. facts very clearly. One is stated by Hawthorne himself in his preface to The Snow-Image a/nd other Twice- Told Tales: "I have been especially careful [in my Introduc- tions] to make no disclosures respecting myself which the most indifferent observer might not have been acquainted with, and which I was not perfectly willing that my worst enemy should know. ... I have taken facts which relate to myself [when telling stories] because they chance to be nearest at hand, and likewise are my own property. And, as for egotism, a person who has been burrowing, to his utmost ability, into the depths of our common nature for the purposes of psychological romance — and who pursues his researches in that dusky region, as he needs must, as well by the tact of sympathy as by the light of observation — will smile at incurring such an imputation in virtue of a little preliminary talk about his external habits, his abode, his casual associates, and other matters entirely upon the sur- face. These things hide the man instead of displaying him. You must make quite another kind of inquest, and look through the whole range of his fictitious characters, good and evil, in order to detect any of his essential traits." There has rarely been a writer of fiction, then, whose per- sonality has been so absolutely separate from that of each character created by him, and at the same time has so inti- mately penetrated the whole body of his writing. Of no one of his characters, male or female, is one ever tempted to say, This is Hawthorne, except in the case of Miles Cov- erdale in The Blithedale Romance^ where the circumstances of the story tempt one into an identification ; yet all Haw- thorne's work is stamped emphatically with his mark. Hawthorne wrote it, is very simple and easy to say of all but the merest trifle in his collected works ; but the world has yet to learn who Hawthorne was, and even if he had not forbidden a biography of himself, it is scarcely likely that any Life could have disclosed more than he has chosen himself to reveal. BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. 89 The advantage of this is that it leaves the student free to concentrate his attention upon the writings rather than on the man. Hawthorne, in the passage quoted above, speaks of himself as one " who has been burrowing, to his utmost ability, into the depths of our common nature for the pur- poses of psychological romance ; " and this states, as closely as so short a sentence can, the controlling purpose and end of the author. The vitality of Hawthorne's characters is derived but little from any external description ; it resides in the truthfulness with which they respond to some perma- nent and controlling operation of the human soul. Looking into his own heart, and always, when studying others, in search of fundamental rather than occasional motives, he proceeded to develop these motives in conduct and life. Hence he had a leaning toward the allegory, where human figures are merely masks for spiritual activities, and some- times he employed the simple allegory, as in The Celestial Railroad. More often in his short stories he has a spiritual truth to illustrate, and uses the simplest, most direct means, taking no pains to conceal his purpose, yet touching his characters quietly or playfully with human sensibilities, and investing them with just so much real life as answers the purpose of the story. This is exquisitely done in The Snoiu- Image. The consequence of this "burrowing into the depths of our common nature " has been to bring much of the darker and concealed life into the movement of his stories. The fact of evil is the terrible fact of life, and its workings in the human soul had more interest for Hawthorne than the obvious physical manifestations. Since his obser- vations are less of the men and women whom everybody sees and recognizes than of the souls which are hidden from most eyes, it is not strange that his stories should often lay bare secrets of sin, and that a somewhat dusky light should seem to be the atmosphere of much of his work. Now and then, especially when dealing with childhood, a warm, sunny glow spreads over the pages of his books ; but the reader must 90 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. be prepared for the most part to read stories which lie in the shadow of life. There was one class of subjects which had a peculiar in- terest for Hawthorne, and in a measure affected his work. He had a strong taste for New England history, and he found in the scenes and characters of that history favorable material for the representation of spiritual conflict. He was himself the most New English of New Englanders, and held an extraordinary sympathy with the very soil of his section of the country. By this sympathy, rather than by any painful research, he was singularly acquainted with the historic life of New England. His stories, based directly on historic facts, are true to the spirit of the times in some- thing more than an archaeological way. One is astonished at the ease with which he seized upon characteristic fea- tures, and reproduced them in a word or phrase. Merely careful and diligent research would never be adequate to give the life-likeness of the images in Howe's Masqtiei'ade. There is, then, a second fact discovered by a study of Hawthorne, that while one finds in the Note-Books, for ex- ample, the material out of which stories and sketches seem to have been constructed, and while the facts of New Eng- land history have been used without exaggeration or distor- tion, the result in stories and romances is something far be- yond a mere report of what has been seen and read. The charm of a vivifying imagination is the crowning charm of Hawthorne's stories, and its medium is a graceful and often exquisitely apt diction. Hawthorne's sense of touch as a writer is very fine. He knows when to be light, and when to press heavily ; a very conspicuous quality is what one is likely to term quaintness, — a gentle pleasantry which seems to spring from the author's attitude toward his own work, as if he looked upon that, too, as a part of the spirit- ual universe which he was surveying. Hawthorne spent much of his life silently, and there are touching passages in his note-books regarding his sense of BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. 91 loneliness and his wish for recognition from the world. His early writings were short stories, sketches, and biographies, scattered in magazines and brought together into Tivice- Told Tales, in two volumes, published, the first in 1837, the second in 1842 ; Mosses froin an Old Manse, in 1846 ; The Snow-Image and other Twice- Told Tales, in 1851. They had a limited circle of readers. Some recognized his genius, but it was not until the publication of The Scarlet Letter, in 1850, that Hawthorne's name was fairly before the world as a great and original writer of romance. The House of the Seven Gables followed in 1851 ; The Blithe- dale Romance in 1852. He spent the years 1853-1860 in Europe, and the immediate result of his life there is in Our Old Home : A Series of English Sketches, published in 1863, and The Marble Faun, or the Romance of Monte Beni, in 1860. For young people he wrote Grandfather's Chair, a collection of stories from New England history, The Wonder-Booh and Tanglewood Tales, containing stories out of classic mythology. There are a few other scattered writings which have been collected into volumes and published in the complete series of his works. Hawthorne was born July 4, 1804, and died May 19, 1864. The student of Hawthorne will find in G. P. Lathrop's A Study of Haivthorne, and Henry James, Jr.'s Haivthorne, in the series E7iglish Men of Letters, material which will assist him. Dr. Holmes published, shortly after Haw- thorne's death, a paper of reminiscences which is included in Soundings from the Atlantic ; and Longfellow welcomed Tivice-Told Tales with a glowing article in the North American Revieiv, xlviii. 59, which is reproduced in his prose works. The reader will find it an agreeable task to discover what the poets, Longfellow, Lowell, Stedman, and others, have said of this man of genius. THE GREAT STONE FACE. One afternoon, when the sun was going down, a mother and her little boy sat at the door of their cot- tage, talking about the Great Stone Face. They had but to lift their eyes, and there it was plainly to be seen, though miles away, with the sunshine brighten- ing all its features. And what was the Great Stone Face? Embosomed amongst a family of lofty mountains there was a valley so spacious that it contained many thousand inhabitants. Some of these good people dwelt in log huts, with the black forest all around them, on the steep and difficult hillsides. Others had their homes in comfortable farm-houses, and culti- vated the rich soil on the gentle slopes or level surfaces of the valley. Others, again, were congregated into populous villages, where some wild, highland rivulet, tumbling down from its birthplace in the upper moun- tain region, had been caught and tamed by human cun- ning and compelled to turn the machinery of cotton- factories. The inhabitants of this valley, in short, were numerous, and of many modes of life. But all of them, grown people and children, had a kind of fa- miliarity with the Great Stone Face, although some possessed the gift of distinguishing this gi'and natural phenomenon more perfectly than many of their neigh- bors. The Great Stone Face, then, was a work of Nature THE GREAT STONE FACE. 93 in her mood of majestic playfulness, formed on the perpendicular side of a mountain by some immense rocks, which had been thrown together in such a posi- tion as, when viewed at a proper distance, precisely to resemble the features of the human countenance. It seemed as if an enormous giant, or a Titan, had sculp- tured his own likeness on the precipice. There was the broad arch of the forehead, a hundred feet in height ; the nose, with its long bridge ; and the vast lips, which, if they could have spoken, would have rolled their thunder accents from one end of the val- ley to the other. True it is, that if the spectator approached too near he lost the outline of the gigantic visage, and could discern only a heap of ponderous and gigantic rocks, piled in chaotic ruin one upon another. Retracing his steps, however, the wondrous features would again be seen ; and the farther he with- drew from them, the more like a human face, with all its original divinity intact, did they appear ; until, as it grew dim in the distance, with the clouds and glori- fied vapor of the mountains clustering about it, the Great Stone Face seemed positively to be alive. It was a happy lot for children to grow up to man- hood or womanhood with the Great Stone Face before their eyes, for all the features were noble, and the expression was at once grand and sweet, as if it were the glow of a vast, warm heart, that embraced all mankind in its affections, and had room for more. It was an education only to look at it. According to the belief of many people, the valley owed much of its fertility to this benign aspect that was continually beaming over it, illuminating the clouds, and infusing its tenderness into the sunshine. As we began with saying, a mother and her little 94 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. boy sat at their cottage-door, gazing at the Great Stone Face, and talking about it. The child's name was Ernest. " Mother," said he, while the Titanic visage smiled on him, " I wish that it could speak, for it looks so very kindly that its voice must needs be pleasant. If I were to see a man with such a face, I should love him dearly." " If an old prophecy should come to pass," an- swered his mother, " we may see a man, some time or other, with exactly such a face as that." " What prophecy do you mean, dear mother ? " eagerly inquired Ernest. "Pray tell me all about it!" So his mother told him a story that her own mother had told to her, when she herself was younger than little Ernest ; a story, not of things tkat were past, but of what was yet to come ; a story, nevertheless, so very old, that even the Indians, who formerly inhabited this valley, had heard it from their fore- fathers, to whom, as they affirmed, it had been mur- mured by the mountain streams, and whispered by the wind among the tree-tops. The purport was, that, at some future day, a child should be born here- abouts, who was destined to become the greatest and noblest personage of liis time, and whose countenance, in manhood, should bear an exact resemblance to the Great Stone Face. Not a few old-fashioned people, and young ones likewise, in the ardor of their hopes, still cherished an enduring faith in this old prophecy. But others, who had seen more of the world, had watched and waited till they were weary, and had beheld no man with such a face, nor any man that proved to be much greater or nobler than his neighbors, concluded THE GREAT STONE FACE. 95 it to be nothing but an idle tale. At all events, the great man of the proj^hecy had not yet appeared. " O mother, dear mother ! " cried Ernest, clapping his hands above his head, " I do hope that I shall live to see him ! " His mother was an affectionate and thoughtful woman, and felt that it was wisest not to discourage the generous hopes of her little boy. So she only said to him, " Perhaps you may." And Ernest never forgot the story that his mother told him. It was always in his mind, whenever he looked upon the Great Stone Face. He spent his childhood in the log cottage where he was born, and was dutiful to his mother, and helpful to her in many things, assisting her much with his little hands, and more with his loving heart. In this manner, from a happy yet often pensive child, he grew up to be a mild, quiet, unobtrusive boy, and sun-browned with labor in the fields, but with more intelligence bright- ening his aspect than is seen in many lads who have been taught at famous schools. Yet Ernest had had no teacher, save only that the Great Stone Face be- came one to him. When the toil of the day was over, he would gaze at it for hours, until he began to imagine that those vast features recognized him, and gave him a smile of kindness and encouragement, responsive to his own look of veneration. We must not take upon us to affirm that this was a mistake, although the face may have looked no more kindly at Ernest than at all the world besides. But the secret was, that the boy's tender and confiding simplicity discerned what other people could not see ; and thus the love, which was meant for all, became his peculiar portion. 96 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. About this time there went a rumor throughout the valley, that the great man, foretold from ages long ago, who was to bear a resemblance to the Great Stone Face, had appeared at last. It seems that, many years before, a young man had migrated from the valley and settled at a distant seaport, where, after getting together a little money, he had set up as a shopkeeper. His name — but I could never learn whether it was his real one, or a nickname that had grown out of his habits and success in life — was Gathergold. Being shrewd and active, and endowed by Providence with that inscrutable faculty which develops itself in what the world calls luck, he became an exceedingly rich merchant, and owner of a whole fleet of bulky-bottomed ships. All the countries of the globe appeared to join hands for the mere purpose of adding heap after heap to the mountainous accu- mulation of this one man's wealth. The cold regions of the north, almost within the gloom and shadow of the Arctic Circle, sent him their tribute in the shape of furs ; hot Africa sifted for him the golden sands of her rivers, and gathered up the ivory tusks of her great elephants out of the forests ; the East came bringing him the rich shawls, and spices, and teas, and the effulgence of diamonds, and the gleaming purity of large pearls. The ocean, not to be behind- hand with the earth, yielded up her mighty whales, that Mr. Gathergold might sell their oil, and make a profit on it. Be the original commodity what it might, it was gold within his grasp. It might be said of him, as of Midas in the fable, that whatever he touched with his finger immediately glistened, and grew yellow, and was changed at once into sterling metal, or, which suited him still better, into piles of THE GREAT STONE FACE. 97 coin. And, when Mr. Gathergold had become so very rich that it would have taken him a hundred years only to count his wealth, he bethought himself of his native valley, and resolved to go back thither, and end his days where he was born. With this purpose in view, he sent a skilful architect to build him such a palace as should be fit for a man of his vast wealth to live in. As I have said above, it had already been rumored in the valley that Mr. Gathergold had turned out to be the prophetic personage so long and vainly looked for, and that his visage was the perfect and undeniable similitude of the Great Stone Face. People were the more ready to believe that this must needs be the fact, when they beheld the splendid edifice that rose, as if by enchantment, on the site of his father's old weather- beaten farmhouse. The exterior was of marble, so dazzlingly white that it seemed as though the whole structure might melt away in the sunshine, like those humbler ones which Mr. Gathergold, in his young play-days, before his fingers were gifted with the touch of transmutation, had been accustomed to build of snow. It had a richly ornamented portico, supported by tall pillars, beneath which was a lofty door, studded with silver knobs, and made of a kind of variegated wood that had been brought from beyond the sea. The windows, from the floor to the ceiling of each stately apartment, were composed, respectively, of but one enormous pane of glass, so transparently pure that it was said to be a finer medium than even the vacant atmosphere. Hardly anybody had been permitted to see the interior of this palace ; but it was reported, and with good semblance of truth, to be far more gorgeous than the outside, insomuch that whatever 98 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. was iron or brass in other houses was silver or o^olcl in this ; and Mr. Gathergold's bedchamber, especially, made such a glittering appearance that no ordinary man would have been able to close his eyes there. But, on the other hand, Mr. Gathergold was now so inured to wealth, that perhaps he could not have closed his eyes unless where the gleam of it was cer- tain to find its way beneath his eyelids. In due time, the mansion was finished ; next came the upholsterers, with magnificent furniture ; then a whole troop of black and white servants, the harbin- gers of Mr. Gathergold, who, in his own majestic per- son, was expected to arrive at sunset. Our friend Ernest, meanwhile, had been deeply stirred by the idea that the great man, the noble man, the man of prophecy, after so many ages of delay, was at length to be made manifest to his native valley. He knew, boy as he was, that there were a thousand ways in which Mr. Gathergold, with his vast wealth, might transform himself into an angel of beneficence, and assume a control over human affairs as wide and be- nignant as the smile of the Great Stone Face. Full of faith and hope, Ernest doubted not that what the people said was true, and that now he was to behold the living likeness of those wondrous features on the mountain-side. While the boy was still gazing up the valley, and fancying, as he always did, that the Great Stone Face returned his gaze and looked kindly at him, the rumbling of wheels was heard, approaching swiftly along the winding road. " Here he comes ! " cried a group of people who were assembled to witness the arrival. "• Here comes the great Mr. Gathergold ! " A carriage drawn by four horses dashed round the THE GREAT STONE FACE. 99 turn of the road. Within it, thrust partly out of the window, appeared the physiognomy of a little old man, with a skin as yellow as if his own Midas-hand had transmuted it. He had a low forehead, small, sharp eyes, puckered about with innumerable wrinkles, and very thin lips, which he made still thinner by pressing them forcibly together, " The very image of the Great Stone Face ! " shouted the people. " Sure enough, the old prophecy is true; and here we have the great man come, at last!". And, what greatly perplexed Ernest, they seemed actually to believe that here was the likeness which they spoke of. By the roadside there chanced to be an old beggar-woman and two little beggar-children, stragglers from some far-off region, who, as the car- riao-e rolled onward, held out their hands and lifted up their doleful voices, most piteously beseeching charity. A yellow claw — the very same that had clawed together so much wealth — poked itself out of the coach-window, and dropped some copper coins upon the ground ; so that, though the great man's name seems to have been Gathergold, he might just as suitably have been nicknamed Scattercopper. Still, nevertheless, with an earnest shout, and evidently witli as much good faith as ever, the people bellowed, — " He is the very image of the Great Stone Face ! " But Ernest turned sadly from the wrinkled shrewd- ness of that sordid visage, and gazed up the valley, where, amid a gathering mist, gilded by the last sun- beams, he could still distinguish those glorious features which had impressed themselves into his soul. Their aspect cheered him. What did the benign lips seem to say ? 100 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. " He will come ! Fear not, Ernest ; the man will come !" The years went on, and Ernest ceased to be a boy. He had grown to be a young man now. He attracted little notice from the other inhabitants of the valley ; for they saw nothing remarkable in his way of life, save that, when the labor of the day was over, he still loved to go apart and gaze and meditate upon the Great Stone Face. According to their idea of the matter, it Avas a folly, indeed, but pardonable, inas- much as Ernest was industrious, kind, and neigh- borly, and neglected no duty for the sake of indulging this idle habit. They knew not that the Great Stone Face had become a teacher to him, and that the senti- ment which was expressed in it would enlarge the young man's heart, and fill it with wider and deeper sympathies than other hearts. They knew not that thence would come a better wisdom than could be learned from books, and a better life than could be moulded on the defaced example of other human lives. Neither did Ernest know that the thoughts and affec- tions which came to him so naturally, in the fields and at the fireside, and wherever he communed with himself, were of a higher tone than those which all men shared with him. A simple soul, — simple as when his mother first taught him the old prophecy, — he beheld the marvellous features beaming adown the valley, and still wondered that their human counter- part was so long in making his appearance. By this time poor Mr. Gathergold was dead and buried ; and the oddest part of the matter was, that his wealth, which was the body and spirit of his ex- istence, had disappeared before his death, leaving nothing of him but a living skeleton, covered over THE GREAT STONE FACE. 101 with a wrinkled, yellow skin. Since the melting away of his gold, it had been very generally conceded that there was no such striking resemblance, after all, be- twixt the ignoble features of the ruined merchant and that majestic face upon the mountain-side. So the people ceased to honor him during his lifetime, and quietly consigned him to forgetfulness after his de- cease. Once in a while, it is true, his memory was brought up in connection with the magnificent palace which he had built, and which had long ago been turned into a hotel for the accommodation of stran- gers, multitudes of whom came every summer to visit that famous natural curiosity, the Great Stone Face. Thus, Mr. Gathergold being discredited and thrown into the shade, the man of prophecy was yet to come. It so happened that a native-born son of the val- ley, many years before, had enlisted as a soldier, and, after a great deal of hard fighting, had now become an illustrious commander. Whatever he may be called in history, he was known in camps and on the battle- field under the nickname of Old Blood-and-Thunder. This war-worn veteran, being now infirm with age and wounds, and weary of the turmoil of a military life, and of the roll of the drum and the clangor of the trumpet, that had so long been ringing in his ears, had lately signified a purpose of returning to his native valley, hoping to find repose where he remem- bered to have left it. The inhabitants, his old neigh- bors and their grown-up children, were resolved to welcome the renowned warrior with a salute of can- non and a public dinner ; and all the more enthusias- ticalty, it being affirmed that now, at last, the likeness of the Great Stone Face had actually appeared. An aide-de-camp of Old Blood-and-Thunder, travelling 102 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. tlirouo'li the valley, was said to have been struck with the resemblance. Moreover the schoolmates and early acquaintances of the general were ready to testify, on oath, that to the best of their recollection, the aforesaid general had been exceedingly like the majes- tic image, even when a boy, only that the idea had never occurred to them at that period. Great, there- fore, was the excitement throughout the valley ; and many people, who had never once thought of glancing at the Great Stone Face for years before, now spent their time in gazing at it, for the sake of knowing exactly how General Blood-and-Thunder looked. On the day of the great festival, Ernest, with all the other people of the valley, left their work, and proceeded to the spot where the sylvan banquet was prepared. As he approached, the loud voice of the Rev. Dr. Battleblast was heard, beseeching a blessing on the good things set before them, and on the dis- tinguished friend of peace in whose honor they were assembled. The tables were arranged in a cleared space of the woods, shut in by the surrounding trees, except where a vista opened eastward, and afforded a distant view of the Great Stone Face. Over the general's chair, which was a relic from the home of Washington, there was an arch of verdant boughs, with the laurel profusely intermixed, and surmounted by his country's banner, beneath which he had won his victories. Our friend Ernest raised himself on his tip-toes, in hopes to get a glimpse of the celebrated guest ; but there was a mighty crowd about the tables anxious to hear the toasts and speeches, and to catch any word that might fall from the general in reply ; and a volunteer company, doing duty as a guard, pricked ruthlessly with their bayonets at any particu- THE GREAT STONE FACE. 103 larly quiet person among the throng. So Ernest, being of an unobtrusive character, was thrust quite into the background, where he couki see no more of Okl Blood-and-Thunder's physiognomy than if it had been still blazing on the battle-field. To console him- self, he turned towards the Great Stone Face, which, like a faithful and long-remembered friend, looked back and smiled upon him through the vista of the forest. Meantime, however, he could overhear the remarks of various individuals, who were comparing the features of the hero with the face on the distant mountain-side. " 'T is the same face, to a hair ! " cried one man, cutting a caper for joy. " Wonderfully like, that 's a fact ! " responded an- other. '' Like ! why, I call it Old Blood-and-Thunder him- self in a monstrous looking-glass ! " cried a third. " And why not ? He 's the greatest man of this or any other age, beyond a doubt." And then all three of the speakers gave a great shout, which communicated electricity to the crowd, and called forth a roar from a thousand voices, that went reverberating for miles among the mountains, until you might have supposed that the Great Stone Face had poured its thunder-breath into the cry. All these comments, and this vast enthusiasm, served the more to interest our friend ; nor did he think of ques- tioning that now, at length, the mountain-visage had found its human counterpart. It is true, Ernest had imagined that this long-looked-for personage would appear in the character of a man of peace, uttering wisdom, and doing good, and making people happy. But, taking an habitual breadth of view, with all his 104 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. simplicity, he contended that Providence should choose its own method of blessing mankind, and could con- ceive that this great end might be effected even by a warrior and a bloody sword, should inscrutable wis- dom see fit to order matters so. " The general ! the general ! " was now the cry. " Hush ! silence ! Old Blood-and-Thunder 's going to make a speech." Even so ; for, the cloth being removed, the general's health had been drunk amid shouts of applause, and he now stood upon his feet to thank the company. Ernest saw him. There he was, over the shoulders of the crowd, from the two glittering epaulets and embroidered collar upward, beneath the arch of green boughs with intertwined laurel, and the banner droop- ing as if to shade his brow ! And there, too, visible in the same glance, through the vista of the forest, appeared the Great Stone Face ! And was there, in- deed, such a resemblance as the crowd had testified ? Alas, Ernest could not recognize it. He beheld a war-worn and weather-beaten countenance, full of en- ergy, and expressive of an iron will ; but the gentle wisdom, the deep, broad, tender sympathies, were al- together wanting in Old Blood-and- Thunder's visage ; and even if the Great Stone Face had assumed his look of stern command, the milder traits would still have tempered it. " This is not the man of prophecy," sighed Ernest to himself, as he made his way out of the throng. '^ And must the world wait longer yet ? " The mists had congregated about the distant moun- tain-side, and there were seen the grand and awful features of the Great Stone Face, awful but benignant, as if a mighty angel were sitting among the hills and THE GREAT STONE FACE. 105 enrobing himself in a eloud-vesture of gold and pur- ple. As he looked, Ernest coald hardly believe but that a smile beamed over the whole visage, with a radiance still brightening, although without motion of the lips. It was probably the effect of the western sunshine, melting through the thinly diffused vapors that had swept between him and the object that he gazed at. But — as it always did — the aspect of his marvellous friend made Ernest as hopeful as if he had never hoped in vain. '' Fear not, Ernest," said his heart, even as if the Great Face were whispering him, — " fear not, Ernest; he will come." More years sped swiftly and tranquilly away. Ernest still dwelt in his native valley, and was now a man of middle age. By imperceptible degrees, he had become known among the people. Now, as here- tofore, he labored for his bread, and was the same simple-hearted man that he had always been. But he had thought and felt so much, he had given so many of the best hours of his life to unworldly hojjes for some great good to mankind, that it seemed as though he had been talking with the angels, and had imbibed a portion of their wisdom unawares. It was visible in the calm and well-considered beneficence of his daily life, the quiet stream of which had made a wide green margin all along its course. Not a day passed by that the world was not the better because this man, humble as he was, had lived. He never stepped aside from his own path, yet would always reach a blessing to his neighbor. Almost involuntarily, too, he had become a preacher. The pure and high simplicity of his thought, which, as one of its manifestations, took shape in the good deeds that dropped silently from his 106 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. hand, flowed also forth in speech. He nttered truths that wrought upon and moulded the lives of those who heard him. His auditors, it may be, never sus- pected that Ernest, their own neighbor and familiar friend, was more than an ordinary man ; least of all did Ernest himself suspect it ; but, inevitably as the murmur of a rivulet, came thoughts out of his mouth that no other human lijDS had spoken. When the people's minds had had a little time to cool, they were ready enough to acknowledge their mistake in imagining a similarity between General Blood-and-Thunder's truculent physiognomy and the benign visage on the mountain-side. But now, again, there were reports and many paragraphs in the news- papers, affirming that the likeness of the Great Stone Face had appeared upon the broad shoulders of a cer- tain eminent statesman. He, like Mr. Gathergold and Old Blood-and-Thunder, was a native of the val- ley, but had left it in his early days, and taken uj) the trades of law and politics. Instead of the rich man's wealth and the warrior's sword, he had but a tongue, and it was mightier tlian both together. So wonder- fully eloquent was he, that whatever he might choose to say, his auditors had no choice but to believe him^ wrong looked like right, and right like wrong ; for when it pleased him he could make a kind of illu- minated fog with his mere breath, and obscure the natural daylight with it. His tongue, indeed, was a magic instrument ; sometimes it rumbled like the thunder ; sometimes it warbled like the sweetest music. It was the blast of war, — the song of peace ; and it seemed to have a heart in it, when there was no such matter. In good truth, he was a wondrous man ; and when his tongue had acquired him all other im- THE GREAT STONE FACE. 107 aginable success, — when it had been heard in halls of state, and in the courts of princes and potentates, — ■ after it had made him known all over the world, even as a voice crying- from shore to shore, — it finally per- suaded his countiymen to select him for the Presi- dency. Before this time, — indeed, as soon as he be- gan to grow celebrated, — his admirers had found out the resemblance between him and the Great Stone Face ; and so much were they struck by it that through- out the country this distinguished gentleman was known by the name of Old Stony Phiz. The phrase was considered as giving a highly favorable aspect to his political prospects ; for, as is likewise the case with the Popedom, nobody ever becomes President without taking a name other than his own. While his friends were doing their best to make him President, Old Stony Phiz, as he was called, set out on a visit to the valley where he was born. Of course, he had no other object than to shake hands with, his fellow-citizens, and neither thought nor cared about any effect which his progress through the country might have upon the election. Magnificent prepara- tions were made to receive the illustrious statesman ; a cavalcade of horsemen set forth to meet him at the boundary line of the State, and all the people left their business and gathered along the wayside to see him pass. Among these was Ernest. Though more than once disappointed, as we have seen, he had such a hoj^eful and confiding nature, that he was always ready to believe in whatever seemed beautiful and good. He kept his heart continually open, and thus was sure to catch the blessing from on high, when it should come. So now again, as buoyantly as ever, he went forth to behold the likeness of the Great Stone Face. 108 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. The cavalcade came prancing along the road, with a great clattering of hoofs and a mighty cloud of dust, which rose up so dense and high that the visage of the mountain-side was completely hidden from Er- nest's eyes. All the great men of the neighborhood were there on horseback ; militia officers, in uniform ; the member of Congress ; the sheriff of the county ; the editors of newspapers ; and many a farmer, too, had mounted his patient steed, with his Sunday coat upon his back. It really was a very brilliant specta- cle, esj)ecially as there were numerous banners flaunt- ing over the cavalcade, on some of which were gor- geous portraits of the illustrious statesman and the Great Stone Face, smiling familiarly at one another, like two brothers. If the pictures were to be trusted, the mutual resemblance, it must be confessed, was marvellous. We must not forget to mention that there was a band of music, which made the echoes of the mountains ring and reverberate with the loud triumph of its strains ; so that airy and soul-thrilling melodies broke out among all the heights and hollows, as if every nook of his native valley had found a voice to welcome the distinguished guest. But the grandest effect was when the far-off mountain precipice flung back the music ; for then the Great Stone Face it- self seemed to be swelling the triumphant chorus, in acknowledgment that, at length, the man of prophecy was come. All this while the people were throwing up their hats and shouting, with enthusiasm so contagious that the heart of Ernest kindled up, and he likewise threw up his hat, and shouted, as loudly as the loud- est, " Huzza for the great man ! Huzza for Old Stony Phiz ! " But as yet he had not seen him. THE GREAT STONE FACE. 109 " Here he is now ! " cried those who stood near Ernest. " There ! There ! Look at Old Stony Phiz and then at the Old Man of the Mountain, and see if they are not as like as two twin-brothers ! " In the midst of all this gallant array, came an open barouche, drawn by four white horses ; and in the barouche, with his massive head uncovered, sat the ilhistrious statesman. Old Stony Phiz himself. " Confess it," said one of Ernest's neighbors to him, " the Great Stone Face has met its match at last!" Now, it must be owned that, at his first glimpse of the countenance which was bowing and smiling from the barouche, Ernest did fancy that there was a resemblance between it and the old familiar face upon the mountain-side. The brow, with its massive depth and loftiness, and all the other features, indeed, were boldly and strongly hewn, as if in emulation of a more than heroic, of a Titanic model. But the sublimity and stateliness, the grand expression of a divine sym- pathy, that illuminated the mountain visage, and ethe- realized its ponderous granite substance into spirit, might here be sought in vain. Something had been originally left out, or had departed. And therefore the marvellously gifted statesman had always a weary gloom in the deep caverns of his eyes, as of a child that has outgrown its playthings, or a man of mighty faculties and little aims, whose life, with all its high performances, was vague and empty, because no high purpose had endowed it with reality. Still Ernest's neighbor was thrusting his elbow into his side, and pressing him for an answer. " Confess ! confess ! Is not he the very picture of your Old Man of the Mountain ? " 110 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. " No ! " said Ernest, bluntly, " I see little or no likeness." "Then so much the worse for the Great Stone Face ! " answered his neighbor ; and again he set up a shout for Old Stony Phiz. But Ernest turned away, melancholy, and almost despondent ; for this was the saddest of his disap- pointments, to behold a man who might have fulfilled the prophecy, and had not willed to do so. Mean- time, the cavalcade, the banners, the music, the ba- rouches swept past him, with the vociferous crowd in the rear, leaving the dust to settle down, and the Great Stone Face to be revealed again, with the gran- deur that it had worn for untold centuries. " Lo, here I am, Ernest ! " the benign lips seemed to say. " I have waited longer than thou, and am not yet weary. Fear not ; the man will come." The years hurried onward, treading in their haste on one another's heels. And now they began to bring white hairs, and scatter them over the head of Ernest ; they made reverend wrinkles across his forehead, and furrows in his cheeks. He was an aged man. But not in vain had he grown old : more than the white hairs on his head were the sage thoughts in his mind ; his wrinkles and furrows were inscriptions that Time had graved, and in which he had written legends of wisdom that had been tested by the tenor of a life. And Ernest had ceased to be obscure. Unsought for, undesired, had come the fame which so many seek, and made him known in the great world, beyond the limits of the valley in which he had dwelt so quietly. College professors, and even the active men of cities, came from far to see and converse with Ernest ; for the report had gone abroad that this simple husband- THE GREAT STONE FACE. Ill man had ideas unlike those of other men, not gained from books, but of a higher tone, — a tranquil and familiar majesty, as if he had been talking with the angels as his daily friends. Whether it were sage, statesman, or philanthropist, Ernest received these visitors with the gentle sincerity that had character- ized him from boyhood, and spoke freely with them of whatever came uppermost, or lay deepest in his heart or their own. While they talked together his face would kindle, unawares, and shine upon them, as with a mild evenin^: lio'ht. Pensive with the fulness of such discourse, his guests took leave and went their way ; and passing up the valley, paused to look at the Great Stone Face, imagining that they had seen its likeness in a human countenance, but could not remember where. While Ernest had been growing up and growing old, a bountiful Providence had granted a new poet to this earth. He, likewise, was a native of the valley, but had spent the greater part of his life at a distance from that romantic region, pouring out his sweet music amid the bustle and din of cities. Often, how- ever, did the mountains which had been familiar to him in his childhood lift their snowy peaks into the clear atmosphere of his poetry. Neither was the Great Stone Face forgotten, for the poet had cele- brated it in an ode which was grand enough to have been uttered by its own majestic lips. The man of genius, we may say, had come down from heaven with wonderful endowments. If he sang of a mountain, the eyes of all mankind beheld a mightier grandeur reposing on its breast, or soaring to its summit, than had before been seen there. If his theme were a lovely lake, a celestial smile had now been thrown over 112 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. it, to gleam forever on its surface. If it were the vast old sea, even the deep immensity of its dread bosom seemed to swell the higher, as if moved by the emo- tions of the song. Thus the world assumed another and a better aspect from the hour that the poet blessed it with his happy eyes. The Creator had bestowed him, as the last best touch to his own handiwork. Creation v/as not finished till the poet came to inter- pret, and so complete it. The effect was no less high and beautiful when his human brethren were the subject of his verse. The man or woman, sordid with the common dust of life, who crossed his daily path, and the little child who played in it, were glorified if he beheld them in his mood of poetic faith. He showed the golden links of the great chain that intertwined them with an angelic kindred ; he brought out the hidden traits of a celes- tial birth that made them worthy of such kin. Some, indeed, there were, who thought to show the soundness of their judgment by affirming that all the beauty and dignity of the natural world existed only in the poet's fancy. Let such men speak for themselves, who un- doubtedly appear to have been spawned forth by Nature with a contemptuous bitterness ; she having plastered them up out of her refuse stuff, after all the swine were made. As respects all things else, the poet's ideal was the truest truth. The songs of this poet found their way to Ernest. He read them after his customary toil, seated on the bench before his cottage door, where for such a length of time he had filled his repose with thought, by gazing at the Great Stone Face. And now as he read stanzas that caused the soul to thrill within him, he lifted his eyes to the vast countenance beaming on him so benig- nantly. THE GREAT STONE FACE. 113 " O majestic friend," he murmured, addressing the Great Stone Face, " is not this man worthy to resem- ble thee?" The Face seemed to smile, but answered not a word. Now it happened that the poet, though he dwelt so far away, had not only heard of Ernest, but had med- itated much upon his character, until he deemed no- thing so desirable as to meet this man, whose untaught wisdom walked hand in hand with the noble simplicity of his life. One summer morning, therefore, he took passage by the railroad, and, in the decline of the afternoon, alighted from the cars at no great distance from Ernest's cottage. The great hotel, which had formerly been the palace of Mr. Gathergold, was close at hand, but the poet, with his carpet-bag on his arm, inquired at once where Ernest dwelt, and was resolved to be accepted as his guest. Approaching the door, he there found the good old man, holding a volume in his hand, which alternately he read, and then, with a finger between the leaves, looked lovingly at the Great Stone Face. " Good evening," said the poet. " Can you give a traveller a night's lodging ? " " Willingly," answered Ernest ; and then he added, smiling, " methiuks I never saw the Great Stone Face look so hospitably at a stranger." The poet sat down on the bench beside him, and he and Ernest talked together. Often had the poet held intercourse with the wittiest and the wisest, but never before with a man like Ernest, whose thoughts and feelings gushed up with such a natural freedom, and who made great truths so familiar by his simple utter- ance of them. Angels, as had been so often said, seemed to have wrought with him at his labor in the 114 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. fields ; angels seemed to have sat with him by the fire- side ; and, dwelling with angels as friend with friends, he had imbibed the sublimity of their ideas, and im- bued it with the sweet and lowly charm of household words. So thought the poet. And Ernest, on the other hand, was moved and agitated by the living- images which the poet flung out of his mind, and which peopled all the air about the cottage door with shapes of beauty, both gay and pensive. The sym- pathies of these two men instructed them with a pro- founder sense than either could have attained alone. Their minds accorded into one strain, and made delight- ful music which neither of them could have claimed as all his own, nor distinguished his own share from the other's. They led one another, as it were, into a high pavilion of their thoughts, so remote, and hitherto so dim, that they had never entered it before, and so beautiful that they desired to be there always. As Ernest listened to the poet, he imagined that the Great Stone Face was bending forward to listen too. He gazed earnestly into the poet's glowing eyes. " Who are you, my strangely gifted guest ? " he said. The poet laid his finger on the volume that Ernest had been reading. "You have read these poems," said he. "You know me, then, — for I wrote them." Again, and still more earnestly than before, Ernest examined the poet's features ; then turned towards the Great Stone Face ; then back, with an uncertain as- pect, to his guest. But his countenance fell; he shook his head, and sighed. " Wherefore are you sad ? ^' inquired the poet. "Because," replied Ernest, "all through life I have awaited the fulfilment of a prophecy ; and, when THE GREAT STONE FACE. 115 I read these poems, I hoped that it might be fulfilled ill you." " You hoped," answered the poet, faintly smiling, " to find in me the likeness of the Great Stone Face. And you are disappointed, as formerly with Mr. Gath- ergold, and Old Blood-and-Thunder, and Old Stony Phiz. Yes, Ernest, it is my doom. You must add my name to the illustrious three, and record another failure of your hopes. For — in shame and sadness do I speak it, Ernest — I am not worthy to be typi- fied by yonder benign and majestic image." " And why ? " asked Ernest. He pointed to the volume. " Are not those thoughts divine ? " " They have a strain of the Divinity," replied the poet. " You can hear in them the far-off echo of a heavenly song. But my life, dear Ernest, has not corresponded with my thought. I have had grand dreams, but they have been only dreams, because I have lived — and that, too, by my own choice — among poor and mean realities. Sometimes even — shall I dare to say it ? — I lack faith in the grandeur, the beauty, and the goodness, which my own works are said to have made more evident in nature and in human life. Why, then, pure seeker of the good and true, shouldst thou hope to find me in yonder image of the divine ? " The poet spoke sadly, and his eyes were dim with tears. So, likewise, were those of Ernest. At the hour of sunset, as had long been his frequent custom, Ernest was to discourse to an assemblage of the neighboring inhabitants in the open air. He and the poet, arm in arm, still talking together as they went along, proceeded to the spot. It was a small nook among the hills, with a gray precipice behind, 116 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. the stern front of which was relieved by the pleasant foliage of many creeping plants, that made a tapestry for the naked rock, by hanging their festoons from all its rugged angles. At a small elevation above the ground, set in a rich framework of verdure, there appeared a niche, spacious enough to admit a hu- man figure, with freedom for such gestures as sponta- neously accompany earnest thought and genuine emo- tion. Into this natural pulpit Ernest ascended, and threw a look of familiar kindness around upon his audience. They stood, or sat, or reclined upon the grass, as seemed good to each, with the departing sunshine falling obliquely over them, and mingling its subdued cheerfulness with the solemnity of a grove of ancient trees, beneath and amid the boughs of which the golden rays were constrained to pass. In another direction was seen the Great Stone Face, with the same cheer, combined with the same solemnity, in its benignant aspect. Ernest began to s]3eak, giving to the people of what was in his heart and mind. His words had power, because they accorded with his thoughts ; and his thoughts had reality and depth, because they harmo- nized with the life which he had always lived. It was not mere breath that this preacher uttered ; they were the words of life, because a life of good deeds and holy love was melted into them. Pearls, pure and rich, had been dissolved into this precious draught. The poet, as he listened, felt that the being and character of Ernest were a nobler strain of poetry than he had ever written. His eyes glistening with tears, he gazed reverentially at the venerable man, and said within himself that never was there an aspect so worthy of a prophet and a sage as that mild, sweet, thoughtful MY VISIT TO NIAGARA. 117 countenance, with the gioiy of white hair diffused about it. At a distance, but distinctly to be seen, high up in the goklen light of the setting sun, ap- peared the Great Stone Face, with hoary mists around it, like the white hairs around the brow of Ernest. Its look of grand beneficence seemed to embrace the world. At that moment, in sympathy with a thought which he was about to utter, the face of Ernest assumed a grandeur of expression, so imbued with benevolence, that the poet,i by an irresistible impulse, threw his arms aloft, and shouted, — "Behold! Behold! Ernest is himself the like- ness of the Great Stone Face ! " Then all the people looked and saw that what the deep-sighted poet said was true. The prophecy was fulfilled. But Ernest, having finished what he had to say, took the poet's arm, and walked slowly home- ward, still hoping that some wiser and better man than himself would by and by appear, bearing a re- semblance to the Great Stone Face. MY VISIT TO NIAGARA. Never did a pilgrim approach Niagara with deeper enthusiasm than mine. I had lingered away from it, and wandered to other scenes, because my treasury of anticipated enjoyments, comprising all the wonders of 1 That the poet should have been the one to discover the re- semblance accords with the conception of the poet himself in this little apologue. Poetic insight is still separable from integ- rity of character, and it was quite possible for this poet to see the ideal beauty in another, while conscious of his own defect. The humility of Ernest, as the last word of the story, completes the certainty of the likeness. 118 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. the world, had nothing else so magnificent, and I was loath to exchange the pleasures of hope for those of memory so soon. At length the day came. The stage-coach, with a Frenchman and myself on the back seat, had already left Lewiston, and in less than an hour would set us down in Manchester. I began to listen for the roar of the cataract, and trembled with a sensation like dread, as the moment drew nigh, when its voice of ages must roll, for the first time, on my ear. The French gentleman stretched himself from the window, and expressed loud admiration, while, by a sudden impulse, I threw myself back and closed my eyes. When the scene shut in, I was glad to think, tliat for me the whole burst of Niagara was yet in futurity. We rolled on, and entered the village of Manchester, bordering on the falls. I am quite ashamed of myself here. Not that I ran like a madman to the falls, and plunged into the thickest of the spray, — never stopping to breathe, till breathing was impossible ; not that I conmiitted this, or any other suitable extravagance. On the contrary, I alighted with perfect decency and composure, gave my cloak to the black waiter, pointed out my baggage, and inquired, not the nearest way to the cataract, but about the dinner-hour. The interval was spent in arranging my dress. Within the last fifteen minutes, my mind had grown strangely benumbed, and my spirits apathetic, with a slight depression, not decided enough to be termed sadness. My enthusiasm was in a deathlike slumber. Without aspiring to immortal- ity, as he did, I could have imitated that English trav- eller, who turned back from the point where he first heard the thunder of Niagara, after crossing the ocean to behold it. Many a Western trader, by the by, has MY VISIT TO NIAGARA. 119 performed a similar act o£ heroism with more heroic simplicity, deeming it no such wonderful feat to dine at the hotel and resume his route to Buffalo or Lewis- ton, while the cataract was roaring unseen. Such has often been my apathy, when objects, long sought, and earnestly desired, were placed within my reach. After dinner — at which an unwonted and perverse epicurism detained me longer than usual — I lighted a cigar and paced the piazza, minutely atten- tive to the aspect and business of a very ordinary vil- lage. Finally, with reluctant step, and the feeling of an intruder, I walked towards Goat Island. At the toll-house, there were farther excuses for delaying the inevitable moment. My signature was required in a huge ledger, containing similar records innumerable, many of which I read. The skin of a great stur- geon, and other fishes, beasts, and reptiles ; a collec- tion of minerals, such as lie in heaps near the falls ; some Indian moccasons, and other trifles, made of deer-skin and embroidered with beads ; several news- papers, from Montreal, New York, and Boston, — all attracted me in turn. Out of a number of twisted sticks, the manufacture of a Tuscarora Indian, I selected one of curled maple, curiously convoluted, and adorned with the carved images of a snake and a fish. Using this as my pilgrim's staff', I crossed the bridge. Above and below me were the rapids, a river of impetuous snow, with here and there a dark rock amid its whiteness, resisting all the physical fury, as any cold spirit did the moral influences of the scene. On reaching Goat Island, which separates the two great segments of the falls, I chose the right-hand path, and followed it to the edge of the American cas- cade. There, while the falling sheet was yet invisible, 120 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. I saw the vapor that never vanishes, and the Eternal Rainbow of Niagara. It was an afternoon of glorious sunshine, without a cloud, save those of the cataracts. I gained an insu- lated rock, and beheld a broad sheet of brilliant and unbroken foam, not shooting in a curved line from the toj) of the precipice, but falling headlong down from height to depth. A narrow stream diverged from the main branch, and hurried over the crag hj a channel of its own, leaving a little pine-clad island and a streak of precipice between itself and the larger sheet. Below arose the mist, on which was painted a dazzling sunbow with two concentric shadows, — one, almost as perfect as the original brightness ; and the other, drawn faintly round the broken edge of the cloud. Still I had not half seen Niagara. Following the verge of the island, the path led me to the Horseshoe, where the real, broad St. Lawrence, rushing along on a level with its banks, pours its whole breadth over a concave line of precipice, and thence pursues its course between lofty crags towards Ontario. A sort of bridge, two or three feet wide, stretches out along the edge of the descending sheet, and hangs upon the ris- ing mist, as if that were the foundation of the frail structure. Here I stationed myself in the blast of wind, which the rushing river bore along with it. The bridge was tremulous beneath me, and marked the tremor of the solid earth. I looked along the whiten- ing rapids, and endeavored to distinguish a mass of water far above the falls, to follow it to their verge, and go down with it, in fancy, to the abyss of clouds and storm. Casting my eyes across the river, and every side, I took in the whole scene at a glance, and tried to comprehend it in one vast idea. After an MY VISIT TO NIAGARA. 121 hour thus spent, I left the bridge, and by a staircase, winding almost interminably round a post, descended to the base of the precipice. From that point, my path lay over slippery stones, and among great frag- ments of the cliff, to the edge of the cataract, where the wind at once enveloped me in spray, and perhaps dashed the rainbow round me. Were my long desires fulfilled? And had I seen Niagara? Oh that I had never heard of Niagara till I beheld it I Blessed were the wanderers of old, who heard its deep roar, sounding through the woods, as the sum- mons to an unknown wonder, and approached its awful brink, in all the freshness of native feeling. Had its own mysterious voice been the first to warn me of its existence, then, indeed, I might have knelt down and worshipped. But I had come thither, haunted with a vision of foam and fury, and dizzy cliffs, and an ocean tumbling down out of the sky, — a scene, in short, which nature had too much good taste and calm sim- plicity to realize. My mind had struggled to adapt these false conceptions to the reality, and finding the effort vain, a wretched sense of disappointment weighed me down. I climbed the precipice, and threw myself on the earth, feeling that I was un- worthy to look at the Great Falls, and careless about beholding them again. . . . All that night, as there has been and will be for ages past and to come, a rushing sound was heard, as if a great tempest were sweeping through the air. It mingled with my dreams, and made them full of storm and whirlwind. Whenever I awoke, and heard this dread sound in the air, and the windows rattling as with a mighty blast, I could not rest again, till look- ing forth, I saw how bright the stars were, and that 122 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. every leaf in the garden was motionless. Never was a summer night more calm to the eye, nor a gale of au- tumn louder to the ear. The rushing sound proceeds from the rapids, and the rattling of the casements is but an effect of the vibration of the whole house, shaken by the jar of the cataract. The noise of the rapids draws the attention from the true voice of Niagara, which is a dull, muffled thunder, resounding between the cliffs. I spent a wakeful hour at mid- night, in distinguishing its reverberations, and rejoiced to find that my former awe and enthusiasm were reviv- ing. Gradually, and after much contemplation, I came to know, by my own feelings, that Niagara is indeed a wonder of the world, and not the less wonderful, be- cause time and thought must be employed in compre- hending it. Casting aside all preconceived notions, and preparation to be dire-struck or delighted, the beholder must stand beside it in the simplicity of his heart, suffering the miglity scene to work its own im- pression. Night after night, I dreamed of it, and was gladdened every morning by the consciousness of a growing capacity to enjoy it. Yet I will not pretend to the all-absorbing enthusiasm of some more fortunate spectators, nor deny that very trifling causes would draw my eyes and thoughts from the cataract. The last day that I was to spend at Niagara, before my departure for the Far West, I sat upon the Table Rock. This celebrated station did not now, as of old, project fifty feet beyond the line of the precipice, but was shattered by the fall of an immense fragment, which lay distant on the shore below. Still, on the utmost verge of the rock, with my feet hanging over it, I felt as if suspended in the open air. Never be- MY VISIT TO NIAGARA. 123 fore had my mind been in such perfect unison with the scene. There were intervals, when I was con- scious of nothing but the great river, rolling calmly into the abyss, rather descending than precipitating itself, a,nd acquiring tenfold majesty from its unhur- ried motion. It came like the march of Destiny. It was not taken by surprise, but seemed to have antic- ipated, in all its course through the broad lakes, that it must j^our their collected waters down this height. The perfect foam of the river, after its descent, and the ever-varying shapes of mist, rising up, to become clouds in the sky, would be the very picture of con- fusion, were it merely transient, like the rage of a tempest. But when the beholder has stood awhile, and perceives no lull in the storm, and considers that the vapor and the foam are as everlasting as the rocks which produce them, all this turmoil assumes a sort of calmness. It soothes, while it awes the mind. Leaning over the cliff, I saw the guide conducting two adventurers behind the falls. It was pleasant, from that high seat in the sunshine, to observe them struggling against the eternal storm of the lower re- gions, with heads bent down, now faltering, now press- ing forward, and finally swallowed up in their victory. After their disappearance, a blast rushed out with an old hat, which it had swept from one of their heads. The rock, to which they were directing their unseen course, is marked, at a fearful distance on the exterior of the sheet, by a jet of foam. The attempt to reach it appears both poetical and perilous to a looker-on, but may be accomplished without much more diffi- culty or hazard than in stemming a violent north- easter. In a few moments, forth came the children of the mist. Dripping and breathless, they crept 124 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. along the base of the cliff, ascended to the guide's cot- tage, and received, I presume, a certificate of their achievement, with three verses of sublime poetry on the back. My contemplations were often interrupted by stran- gers who came down from Forsyth's to take their first view of the falls. A short, ruddy, middle-aged gen- tleman, fresh from Old England, peeped over the rock, and evinced his approbation by a broad grin. His spouse, a very robust lady, afforded a sweet example of maternal solicitude, being so intent on the safety of her little boy that she did not even glance at Niagara. As for the child, he gave himself wholly to the enjoy- ment of a stick of candy. Another traveller, a native American, and no rare character among us, produced a volume of Captain Hall's tour, and labored earnestly to adjust Niagara to the captain's description, depart- ing, at last, without one new idea or sensation of his own. The next comer was provided, not with a printed book, but with a blank sheet of foolscap, from top to bottom of which, by means of an ever-pointed pencil, the cataract was made to thunder. In a little talk which we had together, he awarded his approba- tion to the general view, but censured the position of Goat Island, observing that it should have been thrown farther to the right, so as to widen the American falls, and contract those of the Horseshoe. Next appeared two traders of Michigan, who declared, that, upon the whole, the sight was worth looking at ; there certainly was an immense water-power here ; but that, after all, they would go twice as far to see the noble stone-works of Lockport, where the Grand Canal is locked down a descent of sixty feet. They were succeeded by a young- fellow, in a homespun cotton dress, with a staff in his MY VISIT TO NIAGARA. 125 hand, and a pack over his shouhlers. He advanced close to the edge of the rock, where his attention, at first wavering among the different components of the scene, finally became fixed in the angle of the Horse- shoe falls, which is, indeed, the central point of inter- est. His whole soul seemed to go forth and be trans- ported thither, till the staff slipped from his relaxed grasp, and falling down — down — down — struck upon the fragment of the Table Rock. In this manner I spent some hours, watching the varied impression, made by the cataract, on those who disturbed me, and returning to unwearied contempla- tion, when left alone. At length my time came to de» part. There is a grassy footpath through the woods, along the summit of the bank, to a point whence a causeway, hewn in the side of the precipice, goes wind- ing down to the Ferry, about half a mile below the Table Rock. The sun was near setting, when I emerged from the shadow of the trees, and began the descent. The indirectness of my downward road con- tinually changed the point of view, and showed me, in rich and repeated succession, now, the whitening rap- ids and majestic leap of the main river, which ap- peared more deeply massive as the light departed ; now, the lovelier picture, yet still sublime, of Goat Island, with its rocks and grove, and the lesser falls, tumbling over the right bank of the St. Lawrence, like a tributary stream ; now, the long vista of the river, as it eddied and whirled between the cliffs, to pass through Ontario toward the sea, and everywhere to be wondered at, for this one unrivalled scene. The golden sunshine tinged the sheet of the American cas- cade, and painted on its heaving spray the broken semicircle of a rainbow, heaven's own beauty crown- 126 NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE. ing earth's sublimity. My steps were slow, and I paused long at every turn of the descent, as one lin- gers and pauses who discerns a brighter and brighten- ing excellence in what he must soon behold no more. The solitude of the old wilderness now reigned over the whole vicinity of the falls. My enjoyment be- came the more rapturous, because no poet shared it, nor wretch devoid of poetry profaned it ; but the spot so famous through the world was all my own ! JOHN GEEENLEAF WHITTIER. BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. John Greenleaf Whittier, of Quaker birth in Puri- tan surroundings, was born at the homestead near Haver- hill, Massachusetts, December 17, 1807. Until his eigh- teenth year he lived at home, working upon the farm and in the little shoemaker's shop which nearly every farm then had as a resource in the otherwise idle hours of winter. The manual, homely labor upon which he was employed was in part the foundation of that deep interest which the poet never has ceased to take in the toil and plain fortunes of the people. Throughout his poetry runs this golden thread of sympathy with honorable labor and enforced poverty, and many poems are directly inspired by it. While at work with his father he sent poems to the Haverhill Gazette, and that he was not in subjection to his work is very evident by the fact that he translated it and similar occupations into Songs of Labor. He had two years' academic training, and in 1829 became editor in Boston of the American Manu- facturer, a paper published in the interest of the tariff. In 1831 he published his Legends of New England, prose sketches in a department of literature which has always had strong claims upon his interest. No American writer, unless Irving be excepted, has done so much to throw a graceful veil of poetry and legend over the country of his daily life. Essex County, in Massachusetts, and the beaches lying between Newburyport and Portsmouth blossom with flowers of Whittier's planting. He has made rare use of 128 JOHN GREENLEAF WHITTIER. the homely stories which he had heard in his childhood, and learned afterward from familiar intercourse with country people, and he has himself used invention delicately and in harmony with the spirit of the New England coast. Al- though of a body of men who in earlier days had been perse- cuted by the Puritans of New England, his generous mind has not failed to detect all the good that was in the stern creed and life of the persecutors, and to bring it forward into the light of his poetry. In 1836 he published Mogg Megone, a poem which stood first in the collected edition of his poems issued in 1857, and was admitted there with some reluctance, apparently, by the author. In that and the Bridal of Tennacook he draws his material from the relation held between the Indians and the settlers. His sympathy was always with the persecuted and oppressed, and while historically he found an object of pity and self-reproach in the Indian, his profoundest compassion and most stirring indignation were called out by African slav- ery. From the earliest he was upon the side of the abolition party. Year after year poems fell from his pen in which with all the eloquence of his nature he sought to enlist his countrymen upon the side of emancipation and freedom. It is not too much to say that in the slow development of pub- lic sentiment Whittier's steady song was one of the most powerful advocates that the slave had, all the more power- ful that it was free from malignity or unjust accusation. Whittier's poems have been issued in a number of small volumes, and collected into single larger volumes. Besides those already indicated, there are a number which owe their origin to his tender regard for domestic life and the simple experience of the men and women about him. Of these Snoio-Bound is the most memorable. Then his fondness for a story has led him to use the ballad form in many cases, and Mabel Martin is one of a number, in which the narra- tive is blended with a fine and strong charity. The catholic mind of this writer and his instinct for discovering the pure BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. 129 moral in human action are disclosed by a number of poems, drawn from a wide range of historical fact, dealing with a great variety of religious faiths and circumstances of life, but always pointing to some sweet and strong truth of the divine life. Of such are The Brother of Mercy, The Gift of Tritemms, The Two Rabbis, and others. Whittier's Prose Works are comprised in three volumes, and consist mainly of his contributions to journals and of Leaves from Mar- garet Smith's Journal, a fictitious diary of a visitor to New England in 1678. SNOW-BOUND. A WINTER IDYL. " As the Spirits of Darkness be stronger in the dark, so good Spirits which be Angels of Light are augmented not only by the Divine light of the Sun, but also by our common Wood fire : and as the Celestial Fire drives away dark spirits, so also this our Fire of Wood doth the same." — CoR. Agrippa, Occult Philosophy^ Book I. ch. v. ♦' Announced by all the trumpets of the sky, Arrives the snow ; and, driving o'er the fields, Seema nowhere to alight ; the whited air Hides hills and woods, the river and the heaven, And veils the farm-house at the garden's end. The sled and traveller stopped, the courier's feet Delayed, all friends shut out, the housemates sit Aroimd the radiant fireplace, inclosed In a tumultuous privacy of storm." Emeeson, The Snow-Storm. The sun that brief December day- Rose cheerless over hills of gray, And, darkly circled, gave at noon A sadder light than waning moon. Slow tracing down the thickening sky Its mute and ominous prophecy, A portent seeming less than threat. It sank from sight before it set. A chill no coat, however stout. Of homespun stuff could quite shut out, SNOW-BOUND. 131 A hard, dull bitterness of cold, That checked, mid-vein, the circling race Of life-blood in the sharj^ened face, The coming of the snow-storm told. The wind blew east ; we heard the roar is Of Ocean on his wintry shore. And felt the strong pulse throbbing there Beat with low rhythm our inland air. Meanwhile we did our nightly chores, — Brought in the wood from out of doors, 20 Littered the stalls, and from the mows Raked down the herd's-grass for the cows : Heard the horse whinnying for his corn; And, sharply clashing horn on horn. Impatient down the stanchion rows 25 The cattle shake their walnut bows ; While, peering from his early perch Upon the scaffold's pole of birch, The cock his crested helmet bent And down his querulous challenge sent. 30 Unwarmed by any sunset light The gray day darkened into night, A night made hoary with the swarm And whirl-dance of the blinding storm, As zigzag wavering to and fro 35 Crossed and recrossed the winged snow : And ere the early bedtime came The white drift piled the window-frame, And through the glass the clothes-line posts Looked in like tall and sheeted ghosts. 4o So all night long the storm roared on : The morning broke without a sun ; 132 JOHN GREENLEAF WHITTIER. In tiny spherule traced with lines Of Nature's geometric signs, In starry flake and pellicle « All day the hoary meteor fell ; And, when the second morning shone, We looked upon a world unknown. On nothing we could call our own. Around the glistening wonder bent so The blue walls of the firmament, No cloud above, no earth below, — A universe of sky and snow ! The old familiar sights of ours Took marvellous shapes ; strange domes and towers Kose up where sty or corn-crib stood, se Or garden-wall, or belt of wood ; A smooth white mound the brush-pile showed, A fenceless drift what once was road ; The bridle-post an old man sat 6o With loose-flung coat and high cocked hat ; The well-curb had a Chinese roof ; And even the long sweep, high aloof, In its slant splendor, seemed to tell Of Pisa's leaning miracle. 65 A prompt, decisive man, no breath Our father wasted ; " Boys, a path ! " 65. The Leaning Tower of Pisa, in Italy, which inclines from the perpendicular a little more than six feet in eighty, is a cam- panile, or bell-tower, built of white marble, very beautiful, but so famous for its singular deflection from perpendicularity as to be known almost wholly as a curiosity. Opinions differ as to the leaning being the result of accident or design, but the better judgment makes it an effect of the character of the soil on which it is built. The Cathedral to which it belongs has suf- fered so much from a similar cause that there is not a vertical line in it. SNOW-BOUND. 133 "Well pleased, (for when did farmer boy Count such a summons less than joy ?) Our buskins on our feet we drew ; 70 With mittened hands, and caps drawn low To guard our necks and ears from snow, We cut the solid whiteness through. And, where the drift was deepest, made A tunnel walled and overlaid 75 With dazzling crystal : we had read Of rare Aladdin's wondrous cave. And to our own his name we gave. With many a wish the luck were ours To test his lamp's supernal powers. so We reached the barn with merry din, And roused the prisoned brutes within. The old horse thrust his long head out. And grave with wonder gazed about ; The cock his lusty greeting said, 85 And forth his speckled harem led ; The oxen lashed their tails, and hooked, And mild reproach of hunger looked ; The horned patriarch of the sheep. Like Egypt's Amun roused from sleep, 90 Shook his sage head with gesture mute, And emphasized with stamp of foot. All day the gusty north-wind bore The loosening drift its breath before ; Low circling round its southern zone, 95 The sun through dazzling snow-mist shone, No church-bell lent its Christian tone 90. Amun, or Ammon, was an Egyptian being, representing an attribute of Deity under the form of a ram. 134 JOHN GREENLEAF WHITTIER. To the savage air, no social smoke Curled over woods of snow-hung oak. A solitude made more intense loo By dreary-voiced elements, The shrieking of the mindless wind, The moaning tree-boughs swaying blind, And on the glass the unmeaning beat Of ghostly finger-tips of sleet. los Beyond the circle of our hearth No welcome sound of toil or mirth Unbound the spell, and testified Of human life and thought outside. We minded that the sharpest ear no The buried brooklet could not hear, The music of whose liquid lip Had been to us companionship. And, in our lonely life, had grown To have an almost human tone. us As night drew on, and, from the crest Of wooded knolls that ridged the west. The sun, a snow-blown traveller, sank From sight beneath the smothering bank, W^e piled with care our nightly stack 120 Of wood against the chimney-back, — The oaken log, green, huge, and thick. And on its top the stout back-stick ; The knott}^ forestick laid apart. And filled between with curious art 125 The ragged brush ; then, hovering near, We watched the first red blaze appear. Heard the sharp crackle, caught the gleam On whitewashed wall and sagging beam. Until the old, rude-furnished room 130 SNOW-BOUND. 135 Burst, flower-like, into rosy bloom ; While radiant with a mimic flame Outside the sparkling drift became, And through the bare-boughed lilac-tree Our own warm hearth seemed blazing free. 135 The crane and pendent trammels showed, The Turk's heads on the andirons glowed ; While childish fancy, prompt to tell The meaning of the miracle. Whispered the old rhyme : " Under the tree i4o When fire outdoors hiums merrily^ There the witches are making tea^ The moon above the eastern wood Shone at its full ; the hill-range stood Transfigured in the silver flood, 145 Its blown snows flashing cold and keen, Dead white, save where some sharp ravine Took shadow, or the sombre green Of hemlocks turned to pitchy black Against the whiteness of their back. iso For such a world and such a night Most fitting that unwarming light. Which only seemed where'er it fell To make the coldness visible. Shut in from all the world without, 155 We sat the clean-winged hearth about, Content to let the north-wind roar In battle rage at pane and door. While the red logs before us beat The frost-line back with tropic heat ; I60 And ever, when a louder blast Shook beam and rafter as it passed, 136 JOHN GREENLEAF WHITTIER. The merrier up its roaring draught The great throat of the chimney laughed, The house-dog on his paws outspread les Laid to the fire his drowsy head, The cat's dark silhouette on the wall A couchant tiger's seemed to fall ; And, for the winter fireside meet. Between the andirons' straddling feet, no The mug of cider simmered slow, The apples sputtered in a row, And, close at hand, the basket stood With nuts from brown October's wood. What matter how the night behaved ? 175 What matter how the north-wind raved ? Blow high, blow low, not all its snow Could quench our hearth-fire's ruddy glow. O Time and Change ! — with hair as gray As was my sire's that winter day, iso How strange it seems, with so much gone Of life and love, to still live on ! Ah, brother ! only I and thou Are left of all that circle now, — The dear home faces whereupon i85 That fitful firelight paled and shone. • Henceforward, listen as we will. The voices of that hearth are still ; Look where we may, the wide earth o'er, Those lighted faces smile no more. 190 We tread the paths their feet have worn. We sit beneath their orchard trees. We hear, like them, the hum of bees And rustle of the bladed corn ; We turn the pages that they read, 195 SNOW-BOUND. 137 Their written words we linger o'er, But in the sun they cast no shade, No voice is heard, no sign is made. No step is on the conscious floor ! Yet Love will dream and Faith will trust 200 (Since He who knows our need is just) That somehow, somewhere, meet we must. Alas for him who never sees The stars shine through his cypress-trees ! Who, hopeless, lays his dead away, 205 Nor looks to see the breaking day Across the mournful marbles play ! Who hath not learned, in hours of faith. The truth to flesh and sense unknown, That Life is ever lord of Death, 210 And Love can never lose its own ! We sped the time with stories old. Wrought puzzles out, and riddles told. Or stammered from our school-book lore " The chief of Gambia's golden shore." 215 How often since, when all the land Was clay in Slavery's shaping hand, As if a trumpet called, I 've heard Dame Mercy Warren's rousing word : " Does not the voice of reason cry^ 220 Claim the first right which Nature gave^ From the red scourge of bondage fly ^ Nor deign to live a burdened slave ! " Our father rode again his ride 219. Mrs. Mercy Warren was the wife of James Warren, a prominent patriot at the beginning of the Revohition. Her poe- try was read in an age that had in America little to read under that name ; her society was sought by the best men. 138 JOHN GREENLEAF WHIT TIER, On Mempliremagog's wooded side ; 225 Sat down again to moose and samp In trapper's hut and Indian camp ; Lived o'er the old idyllic ease Beneath St. Francois' hemlock-trees; Again for him the moonlight shone 230 On Norman cap and bodiced zone ; Again he heard the violin play Which led the village dance awaj^, And mingled in its merry whirl The grandam and the laughing girl. 235 Or, nearer home, our steps he led Where Salisbury's level marshes spread Mile-wide as flies the laden bee ; Where merry mowers, hale and strong, Swept, scythe on scythe, their swaths along 240 The low green prairies of the sea. We shared the fishing off Boar's Head, And round the rocky Isles of Shoals The hake-broil on the driftwood coals ; The chowder on the sand-beach made, 245 Dipped by the hungry, steaming hot. With spoons of clam-shell from the pot. We heard the tales of witchcraft old. And dream and sign and marvel told To sleepy listeners as they lay 250 Stretched idly on the salted hay, Adrift along the winding shores. When favoring breezes deigned to blow The square sail of the gundelow, jAnd idle lay the useless oars. 255 Our mother, while she turned her wheel Or run the new-knit stocking heel. SNOW-BOUND. 139 Told how the Indian hordes came down At midnight on Cochecho town, And how her own great-uncle bore 260 His cruel scalp-mark to fourscore. Kecalling, in her fitting phrase, So rich and picturesque and free (The common unrhymed poetry Of simple life and country ways), 265 The story of her early days, — She made us welcome to her home ; Old hearths grew wide to give us room ; We stole with her a frightened look At the gray wizard's conjuring-book, 270 The fame whereof went far and wide Through all the simple country-side ; We heard the hawks at twilight play, The boat-horn on Piscataqua, The loon's weird laughter far away ; 275 We fished her little trout-brook, knew What flowers in wood and meadow grew, What sunny hillsides autumn-brown She climbed to shake the ripe nuts down, Saw where in sheltered cove and bay 28O The duck's black squadron anchored lay, And heard the wild geese calling loud Beneath the gray November cloud. Then, haply, with a look more grave. And soberer tone, some tale she gave 285 From painful Sewel's ancient tome, 259. Dover in New Hampshire. 286. William Sewel was the historian of the Quakers. Charles Lamb seemed to have as good an opinion of the book as Whit- tier. In his essay A Quakers' Meeting, in Essays of Elia, he says : « Reader, if you are not acquainted with it, I would recommend 140 JOHN GREENLEAF WHITTIER. Beloved in every Quaker home, Of faith fire-winged by martyrdom, Or Chalkley's Journal, old and quaint, — Gentlest of skippers, rare sea-saint ! — 290 Who, when the dreary calms prevailed, And water-butt and bread-cask failed, And cruel, hungry eyes pursued His portly presence, mad for food. With dark hints muttered under breath 295 Of casting lots for life or death, to you, above all church-narratives, to read Sewel's History of the Quakers. ... It is far more edifying and affecting than any- thing you will read of Wesley or his colleagues." 289. Thomas Chalkley was an Englishman of Quaker parent- age, born in 1675, who travelled extensively as a preacher, and finally made his home in Philadelphia. He died in 1749 ; his Journal was first published in 1747. His own narrative of the incident which the poet relates is as follows : " To stop their mur- muring, I told them they should not need to cast lots, which was usual in such cases, which of us should die first, for I would freely offer up my life to do them good. One said, * God bless you ! I will not eat any of you.' Another said, ' He would rather die before he would eat any of me ; ' and so said several, I can truly say, on that occasion, at that time, my life was not dear to me, and that I was serious and ingenuous in my proposition : and as I was leaning over the side of the vessel, thoughtfully consid- ering my proposal to the company, and looking in my mind to Him that made me, a very large dolphin came up towards the top or surface of the water, and looked me in the face ; and I called the people to put a hook into the sea, and take him, for here is one come to redeem me (I said to them). And they put a hook into the sea, and the fish readily took it, and they caught him. He was longer than myself. I think he was about six feet long, and the largest that ever I saw. This plainly showed us that we ought not to distrust the providence of the Almighty. The people were quieted by this act of Providence, and mur- mured no more. We caught enough to eat plentifully of, till we got into the capes of Delaware." SNO W-BOUND. 141 Offered, if Heaven withlielcl supplies, To be himself the sacrifice. Then, suddenly, as if to save The good man from his living grave, 300 A ripple on the water grew, A school of porpoise flashed in view. "Take, eat," he said, "and be content; These fishes in my stead are sent By Him who gave the tangled ram 305 To spare the child of Abraham." Our uncle, innocent of books, Was rich in lore of fields and brooks. The ancient teachers never dumb Of Nature's unhoused lyceum. 310 In moons and tides and weather wise. He read the clouds as prophecies, And foul or fair could well divine, By many an occult hint and sign. Holding the cunning-warded keys 315 To all the woodcraft mysteries ; Himself to Nature's heart so near That all her voices in his ear Of beast or bird had meanings clear, Like Apollonius of old, 320 Who knew the tales the sparrows told, Or Hermes, who interpreted 310. The measure requires the accent ly'ceum, but in stricter use the accent is lyce'um. 320. A philosopher born in the first century of the Christian era, of whom many strange stories were told, especially regard- ing his converse with birds and animals. 322. Hermes Trismegistns, a celebrated Egyptian priest and philosopher, to whom was attributed the revival of geometry, arithmetic, and art among the Egyptians. He was little later than Apollonius. 142 JOHN GREENLEAF WHITTIER. What the sage cranes of Nilus said ; A simple, guileless, childlike man. Content to live where life began ; 325 Strong only on his native grounds, The little world of sights and sounds Whose girdle was the parish bounds, Whereof his fondly partial pride The common features magnified, 330 As Surrey hills to mountains grew In White of Selborne's loving view, — He told how teal and loon he shot. And how the eagle's eggs he got. The feats on pond and river done, 335 The prodigies of rod and gun ; Till, warming with the tales he told. Forgotten was the outside cold. The bitter wind unheeded blew. From ripening corn the pigeons flew, 340 The partridge drummed i' the wood, the mink Went fishing down the river-brink. In fields with bean or clover gay, The woodchuck, like a hermit gray. Peered from the doorway of his cell ; 345 The muskrat plied the mason's trade. And tier by tier his mud-walls laid ; And from the shagbark overhead The grizzled squirrel dropped his shell. Next, the dear aunt, whose smile of cheer 350 And voice in dreams I see and hear, — 332. Gilbert White, of Selborue, England, was a clergyman who wrote the Natural History of Selborne, a minute, affection- ate, and charming description of what could be seen, as it were, from his own doorstep. The accuracy of his observation and the delightfulness of his manner have kept the book a classic. SNOW-BOUND. 143 The sweetest woman ever Fate Perverse denied a household mate, Who, lonely, homeless, not the less Found peace in love's unselfishness, 355 And welcome whereso'er she went, A calm and gracious element. Whose presence seemed the sweet income And womanly atmosphere of home, — Called up her girlhood memories, m The huskings and the apple-bees. The sleigh-rides and the summer sails. Weaving through all the poor details And homespun warp of circumstance A golden woof-thread of romance. 365 For well she kej3t her genial mood And simple faith of maidenhood ; Before her still a cloud-land lay. The mirage loomed across her way ; The morning dew, that dried so soon 370 With others, glistened at her noon ; Through years of toil and soil and care, From glossy tress to thin gray hair, All unprofaned she held apart The virgin fancies of the heart. 375 Be shame to him of woman born Who hath for such but thought of scorn. There, too, our elder sister plied Her evening task the stand beside ; A full, rich nature, free to trust, 380 Truthful and almost sternly just. Impulsive, earnest, prompt to act, And make her generous thought a fact, Keeping with many a light disguise 144 JOHN GREENLEAF WHITTIER. The secret of self-sacrifice. 885 heart sore-tried ! thou hast the best That Heaven itself could give thee, — rest, Kest from all bitter thoughts and things ! How many a poor one's blessing went With thee beneath the low green tent 390 Whose curtain never outward swings ! As one who held herself a part Of all she saw, and let her heart Against the household bosom lean. Upon the motley-braided mat 395 Our youngest and our dearest sat, Lifting her large, sweet, asking eyes. Now bathed within the fadeless green And holy peace of Paradise. Oh, looking from some heavenly hill, 400 Or from the shade of saintly palms. Or silver reach of river calms. Do those large eyes behold me still? With me one little year ago : — The chill weight of the winter snow 405 For months upon her grave has lain ; And now, when summer south-winds blow And brier and harebell bloom again, 1 tread the pleasant paths we trod, I see the violet-sprinkled sod, 410 Whereon she leaned, too frail and weak The hillside flowers she loved to seek, Yet following me where'er I went With dark eyes full of love's content. The birds are glad ; the brier-rose fills 415 398. jTA' unfading green would be harsher, but more correct, since the termination less is added to nouns and not to verbs. SNOW-BOUND. 145 The air with sweetness ; all the hills Stretch green to June's unclouded sky ; But still I wait with ear and eye For something gone which should be nigh, A loss in all familiar things, 420 In flower that blooms, and bird that sings. And yet, dear heart ! remembering thee, Am I not richer than of old ? Safe in thy immortality. What change can reach the wealth I hold ? 425 What chance can mar the pearl and gold Thy love hath left in trust with me ? And while in life's late afternoon, Where cool and long the shadows grow, I walk to meet the night that soon 430 Shall shape and shadow overflow, I cannot feel that thou art far. Since near at need the angels are ; And when the sunset gates unbar, Shall I not see thee waiting stand, 435 And, white against the evening star. The welcome of thy beckoning hand ? Brisk wielder of the birch and rule, The master of the district school Held at the fire his favored place ; 440 Its warm glow lit a laughing face Fresh-hued and fair, where scarce appeared The uncertain prophecy of beard. He teased the mitten-blinded cat, Played cross-pins on my uncle's hat, 445 Sang songs, and told us what befalls In classic Dartmouth's college haUs. Born the wild Northern hills among, 146 JOHN GREENLEAF WHITTIER. From whence his yeoman father wrung By patient toil subsistence scant, 450 Not competence and yet not want, He early gained the power to pay His cheerful, self-reliant way ; Could doff at ease his scholar's gown To peddle wares from town to town ; 455 Or through the long vacation's reach In lonely lowland districts teach, Where all the droll experience found At stranger hearths in boarding round. The moonlit skater's keen delight, 46o The sleigh-drive through the frosty night, The rustic party, with its rough Accompaniment of blind-man's-buff. And whirling plate, and forfeits paid, His winter task a pastune made. 465 Happy the snow-locked homes wherein He tuned his merry violin. Or played the athlete in the barn. Or held the good dame's winding yarn, Or mirth-provoking versions told 470 Of classic legends rare and old. Wherein the scenes of Greece and Rome Had all the commonplace of home. And little seemed at best the odds 'Twixt Yankee pedlers and old gods ; 475 Where Pindus-born Arachthus took The guise of any grist-mill brook. And dread Olympus at his will 476. Pindus is the mountain chain which, running from north to south, nearly bisects Greece. Five rivers take their rise from the central peak, the Aous, the Arachthus, the Haliacmon, the Peneus, and the Achelous. SNOW-BOUND. 147 Became a huckleberry hill. A careless boy that night he seemed ; 480 But at his desk he had the look And air of one who wisely schemed, And hostage from the future took In trained thought and lore of book. Large-brained, clear-eyed, — of such as he 435 Shall Freedom's young apostles be, Who, following in War's bloody trail. Shall every lingering wrong assail ; All chains from limb and spirit strike, Uplift the black and white alike ; 490 Scatter before their swift advance The darkness and the ignorance. The pride, the lust, the squalid sloth. Which nurtured Treason's monstrous growth, Made murder pastime, and the hell 495 Of prison-torture possible ; The cruel lie of caste refute. Old forms remould, and substitute For Slavery's lash the freeman's will. For blind routine, wise-handed skill ; soo A school-house plant on every hill. Stretching in radiate nerve-lines thence The quick wires of intelligence ; Till North and South together brought Shall own the same electric thought, 505 In peace a common flag salute. And, side by side in labor's free And unresentful rivalry, Harvest the fields wherein they fought. Another guest that winter night ao Flashed back from lustrous eyes the light. 148 JOHN GREENLEAF WHITTIER. Unmarked by time, and yet not young, The honeyed music of her tongue And words of meekness scarcely told A nature passionate and bold, sis Strong, self-concentred, spurning guide, Its milder features dwarfed beside Her unbent will's majestic pride. She sat among us, at the best, A not unf eared, half -welcome guest, 520 Rebuking with her cultured phrase Our homeliness of words and ways. A certain pard-like, treacherous grace Swayed the lithe limbs and dropped the lash, Lent the white teeth their dazzling flash ; 525 And under low brows, black with night, Rayed out at times a dangerous light ; The sharp heat-lightnings of her face Presaging ill to him whom Fate Condemned to share her love or hate. 530 A woman tropical, intense In thought and act, in soul and sense. She blended in a like degree The vixen and the devotee. Revealing with each freak or feint sas The temper of Petruchio's Kate, The raptures of Siena's saint. Her tapering hand and rounded wrist Had facile power to form a fist ; The warm, dark languish of her eyes 540 Was never safe from wrath's surprise. Brows saintly calm and lips devout 636. See Shakespeare's comedy of the Taming of the Shrew. 537. St. Catherine of Siena, who is represented as having wonderful visions. She made a vow of silence for three years. SNOW-BOUND. 149 Knew every change of scowl and pout ; And the sweet voice had notes more high And .shrill for social battle-cry. 545 Since then what old cathedral town Has missed her pilgrim staff and gown, What convent-gate has held its lock Against the challenge of her knock ! Through Smyrna's plague-hushed thoroughfares, 550 Up sea-set Malta's rocky stairs. Gray olive slo]3es of hills that hem Thy tombs and shrines, Jerusalem, Or startling on her desert throne The crazy Queen of Lebanon 555 With claims fantastic as her own, Her tireless feet have held their way ; And still, unrestful, bowed, and gray, She watches under Eastern skies. With hope each day renewed and fresh, 56o The Lord's quick coming in the flesh, Whereof she dreams and prophesies ! 555. An interesting account of Lady Hester Stanhope, an English gentlewoman who led a singular life on Mount Lebanon in Syria, will be found in Kinglake's Eothen, chapter viii. 562. This not wifeared, half-welcome guest was Miss Harriet Livermore, daughter of Judge Liverniore of New Hampshire. She was a woman of fine powers, but wayward, wild, and enthu- siastic. She went on an independent mission to the Western Indians, whom she, in common with some others, believed to be remnants of the lost tribes of Israel. At the time of this narra- tive she was about twenty-eight years old, but much of her life afterward was spent in the Orient. She was at one time the companion and friend of Lady Hester Stanhope, but finally quarrelled with her about the use of the holy horses kept in the stable in waiting for the Lord's ride to Jerusalem at the second advent. 150 JOHN GREENLEAF WHITTIER. Where'er her troubled path may be, The Lord's sweet j)ity with her go ! The outward wayward life we see, 565 The hidden sj)rings we may not know. Nor is it given us to discern What threads the fatal sisters spun, Through what ancestral years has run The sorrow with the woman born, 570 What forged her cruel chain of moods. What set her feet in solitudes, And held the love within her mute. What mingled madness in the blood, A lifelong discord and annoy, 575 Water of tears with oil of joy. And hid within the folded bud Perversities of flower and fruit. It is not ours to separate The tangled skein of will and fate, 580 To show what metes and bounds should stand Upon the soul's debatable land. And between choice and Providence Divide the circle of events ; But He who knows our frame is just, sss Merciful and compassionate. And full of sweet assurances And hope for all the language is. That He remembereth we are dust ! At last the great logs, crumbling low, 590 Sent out a dull and duller glow. The bull's-eye watch that hung in view, Ticking its weary circuit through, Pointed with mutely-warning sign Its black hand to the hour of nine. 595 SNOW-BOUND. 151 That sign the pleasant circle broke : My uncle ceased his pipe to smoke, Knocked from its bowl the refuse gray, And laid it tenderly away, Then roused himself to safely cover eoo The dull red brand with ashes over. And while, with care, our mother laid The work aside, her steps she stayed One moment, seeking to express Her grateful sense of happiness eos For food and shelter, warmth and health, And love's contentment more than wealth, With simple wishes (not the weak. Vain prayers which no fulfilment seek. But such as warm the generous heart, eio O'er-prompt to do with Heaven its part) That none might lack, that bitter night, For bread and clothing, warmth and light. Within our beds awhile we heard The wind that round the gables roared, eis With now and then a ruder shock. Which made our very bedsteads rock. We heard the loosened clapboards tost. The board-nails snapping in the frost ; And on us, through the unplastered wall, 620 Felt the light sifted snow-flakes fall. But sleep stole on, as sleep will do When hearts are light and life is new ; Faint and more faint the murmurs grew. Till in the summer-land of dreams 625 They softened to the sound of streams, Low stir of leaves, and dip of oars. And lapsing waves on quiet shores. 152 JOHN GREENLEAF WHITTIER. Next morn we wakened with the shout Of merry voices high and clear ; 630 And saw the teamsters drawing near To break the drifted highways out. Down the long hillside treading slow We saw the half-buried oxen go, Shaking the snow from heads uptost, 635 Their straining nostrils white with frost. Before our door the straggling train Drew up, an added team to gain. The elders threshed their hands a-cold, Passed, with the cider-mug, their jokes 64o From lip to lip ; the younger folks Down the loose snow-banks, wrestling, rolled, Then toiled again the cavalcade O'er windy hill, through clogged ravine. And woodland paths that wound between 645 Low drooping pine-boughs winter-weighed. From every barn a team afoot, At every house a new recruit. Where, drawn by Nature's subtlest law, Haply the watchful young men saw 650 Sweet doorway pictures of the curls And curious eyes of merry girls. Lifting their hands in mock defence Against the snow-balls' compliments, And reading in each missive tost 655 The charm with Eden never lost. We heard once more the sleigh-bells' sound ; And, following where the teamsters led, The wise old Doctor went his round, 659. The wise old Doctor was Dr. Weld of Haverhill, an able man, who died at the age of ninety-six. SNOW-BOUND. 163 Just pausing at our door to say eeo In the brief autocratic way Of one wlio, prompt at Duty's call, Was free to urge her claim on all, That some poor neighbor sick abed At night our mother's aid would need. 665 For, one in generous thought and deed. What mattered in the sufferer's sight The Quaker matron's inward light, The Doctor's mail of Calvin's creed ? All hearts confess the saints elect 670 Who, twain in faith, in love agree, And melt not in an acid sect The Christian pearl of charity ! So days went on : a week had passed Since the great world was heard from last. 675 The Almanac we studied o'er, Read and reread our little store Of books and pamphlets, scarce a score ; One harmless novel, mostly hid From younger eyes, a book forbid, 680 And poetry, (or good or bad, A single book was all we had,) Where Ellwood's meek, drab-skirted Muse, A stranger to the heathen Nine, Sang, with a somewhat nasal whine, 685 683. Thomas Ellwood, one of the Society of Friends, a con- temporary and friend of Milton, and the suggestor of Paradise Regained, wrote an epic poem in five books, called Davideis, the life of King David of Israel. He wrote the book, we are told, for his own diversion, so it was not necessary that others should be diverted by it. Ellwood's autobiography, a quaint and de- lightful book, is included in Howells's series of Choice Autobio- graphies. 154 JOHN GREEN LEAF WHIT TIER. The wars of David and the Jews. At last the floundering carrier bore The village paper to our door. Lo ! broadening outward as we read, To warmer zones the horizon spread ; 690 In panoramic length unrolled We saw the marvels that it told. Before us passed the painted Creeks, And daft McGregor on his raids In Costa Rica's everglades. 695 And up Taygetus winding slow Rode Ypsilanti's Mainote Greeks, A Turk's head at each saddle bow ! Welcome to us its week old news, Its corner for the rustic Muse, 700 Its monthly gauge of snow and rain, Its record, mingling in a breath The wedding knell and dirge of death ; Jest, anecdote, and love-lorn tale, The latest culprit sent to jail ; 705 Its hue and cry of stolen and lost. Its vendue sales and goods at cost, And traffic calling loud for gain. We felt the stir of hall and street. The pulse of life that round us beat ; 710 The chill embargo of the snow 693. Referring to the removal of the Creek Indians from Georgia to beyond the Mississippi. 694. In 1822 Sir Gregor McGregor, a Scotchman, began an ineffectual attempt to establish a colony in Costa Rica. 697. Taygetus is a mountain on the Gulf of Messenia in Greece, and near by is the district of Maina, noted for its rob- bers and pirates. It was from these mountaineers that Ypsilanti, a Greek patriot, drew his cavalry in the struggle with Turkey which resulted in the independence of Greece. SNOW-BOUND. 155 W^as melted in the genial glow ; V\^ide swung again our ice-locked door, And all the world was ours once more ! Clasp, Angel of the backward look 715 And folded wings of ashen gray And voice of echoes far away. The brazen covers of thy book ; The weird palimpsest old and vast, Wherein thou hid'st the spectral past ; 720 Where, closely mingling, pale and glow The characters of joy and woe ; The monographs of outlived years, Or smile-illumed or dim with tears, Green hills of life that slope to death, 725 And haunts of home, whose vistaed trees Shade off to mournful cypresses With the white amaranths underneath. Even while I look, I can but heed The restless sands' incessant fall, 730 Importunate hours that hours succeed. Each clamorous with its own sharp need, And duty keeping pace with all. Shut down and clasp the heavy lids ; I hear again the voice that bids 735 The dreamer leave his dream midway For larger hopes and graver fears : Life greatens in these later years. The century's aloe flowers to-day ! Yet, haply, in some lull of life, 740 Some Truce of God which breaks its strife, 741. The name is drawn from a historic compact in 1040, when the Church forbade barons to make any attack on each 156 JOHN GREENLEAF WHIT TIER, The worldling's eyes shall gather dew, Dreaming in throngful city ways Of winter joys his boyhood knew ; And dear and early friends — the few 745 Who yet remain — shall pause to view These Flemish pictures of old days ; Sit with me by the homestead hearth, And stretch the hands of memory forth To warm them at the wood-fire's blaze ! 750 And thanks untraced to lips unknown Shall greet me like the odors blown From unseen meadows newly mown, Or lilies floating in some pond. Wood-fringed, the wayside gaze beyond; 755 The traveller owns the grateful sense Of sweetness near, he knows not whence. And, pausing, takes with forehead bare The benediction of the air. THE SHIP-BUILDERS. The sky is ruddy in the east, The earth is gray below. And, spectral in the river-mist. The ship's white timbers show. Then let the sounds of measured stroke 5 And grating saw begin ; other between sunset on Wednesday and sunrise on the following Monday, or upon any ecclesiastical fast or feast day. It also provided that no man was to molest a laborer working in the fields, or to lay hands on any implement of husbandry, on pain of excommunication. 747. The Flemish school of painting was chiefly occupied with homely interiors. THE SHIP-BUILDERS. 157 The broad-axe to the gnarled oak, The mallet to the pin ! Hark ! roars the bellows, blast on blast, The sooty smithy jars, lo And fire-sparks, rising far and fast. Are fading with the stars. All day for us the smith shall stand Beside that flashing forge ; All day for us his heavy hand is The groaning anvil scourge. From far-off hills, the panting team For us is toiling near ; For us the raftsmen down the stream Their island barges steer. 20 Rings out for us the axe-man's stroke In forests old and still ; For us the century-circled oak Falls crashing down his hill. Up ! up ! in nobler toil than ours 25 No craftsmen bear a part : We make of Nature's giant powers The slaves of human Art. Lay rib to rib and beam to beam. And drive the treenails free ; 30 Nor faithless joint nor yawning seam Shall tempt the searching sea ! Where'er the keel of our good ship The sea's rough field shall plough ; Where'er her tossing spars shall drip 35 With salt-spray caught below ; 158 JOHN GREENLEAF WHIT TIER. That ship must heed her master's beck, Her helm obey his hand, And seamen tread her reeling deck As if they trod the land. 40 Her oaken ribs the vulture-beak Of Northern ice may peel ; The sunken rock and coral peak May grate along her keel ; And know we well the painted shell 45 We give to wind and wave, Must float, the sailor's citadel, Or sink, the sailor's grave ! Ho ! strike away the bars and blocks. And set the good ship free ! 50 Why lingers on these dusty rocks The young bride of the sea ? Look ! how she moves adown the grooves. In graceful beauty now ! How lowly on the breast she loves 55 Sinks down her virgin prow ! God bless her ! wheresoe'er the breeze Her snowy wing shall fan, Aside the frozen Hebrides, Or sultry Hindostan ! eo Where'er, in mart or on the main. With peaceful flag unfurled, She helps to wind the silken chain Of commerce round the world ! Speed on the ship ! But let her bear 65 No merchandise of sin. THE WORSHIP OF NATURE. 169 No groaning cargo of despair Her roomy hold within ; No Lethean drug for Eastern lands, Nor poison-draught for ours ; 70 But honest fruits of toiling hands And Nature's sun and showers. Be hers the Prairie's golden grain, The Desert's golden sand, The clustered fruits of sunny Spain, 75 The spice of Morning-land ! Her pathway on the open main May blessings follow free, And glad hearts welcome back again Her white sails from the sea ! so THE WORSHIP OF NATURE. The harp at Nature's advent strung Has never ceased to play ; The song the stars of morning sung Has never died away. And prayer is made, and praise is given, s By all things near and far ; The ocean looketh up to heaven, And mirrors every star. Its waves are kneeling on the strand. As kneels the human knee, 10 Their white locks bowing to the sand, The priesthood of the sea ! They pour their glittering treasures forth, Their gifts of pearl they bring. 160 JOHN GREENLEAF WHITTIER. And all the listening hills of earth Take up the song they sing. The green earth sends her incense up From many a mountain shrine ; From folded leaf and dewy cup She pours her sacred wine. The mists above the morning rills Rise white as wings of prayer ; The altar-curtains of the hills Are sunset's purple air. The winds with hymns of praise are loud, Or low with sobs of pain, — The thunder-organ of the cloud, The dropping tears of rain. With drooping head and branches crossed The twilight forest grieves. Or speaks with tongues of Pentecost From all its sunlit leaves. The blue sky is the temple's arch, Its transept earth and air, The music of its starry march The chorus of a prayer. So Nature keeps the reverent frame With which her years began, And all her signs and voices shame The prayerless heart of man. HENRY DAVID THOREAU. BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. There died at Concord, Massachusetts, in the year 1862, a man of forty-five who, if one were to take his word for it, need never have gone out of the little village of Concord to see all that was worth seeing in the world. Lowell, in his My Garden Acquaintance^ reminds the reader of Gilbert White, who, in his Natural Hlstorij of Selbome, gave mi- nute details of a lively world found within the borders of a little English parish. Alphonse Karr, a French writer, has written a book which contracts the limit still further in A Jourjiey round my Garden^ but neither of these writers so completely isolated himself from the outside world as did Thoreau, who had a collegiate education at Harvard, made short journeys to Cape Cod, Maine, and Canada, acted for a little while as tutor in a family on Staten Island, but spent the best part of his life as a looker-on in Concord, and during two years of the time lived a hermit on the shores of Walden Pond. He made his living, as the phrase goes, by the occupation of a land surveyor, but he followed the profession only when it suited his convenience. He did not marry ; he never went to church ; he never voted ; he refused to pay taxes ; he sought no society ; he declined companions when they were in his way, and when he had anything to say in public, went about from door to door and invited people to come to a hall to hear him deliver his word. That he had something to say to the world at large is 162 HENRY DAVID THOREAU. pretty evident from the books which he has left, and it is intimated that the unpublished records of his observation and reflection are more extensive. Thus far his published writings are contained in ten volumes. The first in appear- ance was A Week on the Concord and Merrimack Rivers. It was published in 1849 and built upon the adventures of himself and brother ten years before, when, in a boat of their own construction, they had made their way from Con- cord down the Concord River to the Merrimack, up that to its source, and back to the starting point. It will readily be seen that such an excursion would not yield a bookful of observation, and though Thoreau notes in it many trivial incidents, a great part of the contents is in the reflections which he makes from day to day. He comes to the little river with its sparse border of population and meagre his- tory, and insists upon measuring antiquity and fame by it. All of his reading he tests by the measure of this stream, and undertakes to show that the terms, big and little, are very much misapplied, and that here on this miniature scale one may read all that is worth knowing in life. His voy- age is treated with the gravity which one might use in re- cording a journey to find the sources of the Nile. Between the date of the journey and the publication of the book, Thoreau was engaged upon an experiment still more illustrative of his creed of individuality. In 1845 he built a hut in the woods by Walden Pond, and for two years lived a self-contained life there. It was not alto- gether a lonely life. He was within easy walking distance of Concord village, and the novelty of his housekeeping at- tracted many visitors, while his friends who valued his con- versation sought him out in his hermitage. Besides and beyond this Thoreau had a genius for intercourse with humbler companions. There have been few instances in history of such perfect understanding as existed between him and the lower orders of creation. It has been said of him : " Every fact which occurs in the bed [of the Concord BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. 163 River], on the banks, or in the air over it ; the fishes, and their spawning and nests, their manners, their food ; the shad-flies which fill the air on a certain evening once a year, and which are snapped at by the fishes so ravenously that many of these die of repletion, the conical heaps of small stones on the river-shallows, one of which heaps will some- times overfill a cart, — these heaps the huge nests of small fishes, — the birds which frequent the stream, heron, duck, sheldrake, loon, osprey ; the snake, muskrat, otter, wood- chuck, and fox on the banks ; the turtle, frog, hyla, and cricket which made the banks vocal, — were all known to him, and, as it were, townsmen and fellow-creatures. . . . His power of observation seemed to indicate additional senses. He saw as with microscrope, heard as with ear- trumpet, and his memory was a photographic register of all he saw and heard. . . . His intimacy with animals sug- gested what Thomas Fuller records of Butler the apiolo- gist, that ' either he had told the bees things or the bees had told him ; ' snakes coiled round his leg ; the fishes swam into his hand, and he took them out of the water ; he pulled the woodchuck out of its hole by the tail, and took the foxes under his protection from the hunters." ^ Walden, published in 1854, is the record of Thoreau's life in the woods, and inasmuch as that life was not ex- hausted in the bare provision against bodily wants, nor in the observation even of what lay under the eye and ear, but was busied about the questions which perplex all who would give an account of themselves, the record mingles common fact and personal experience, the world without and the world within. Thoreau records what he sees and hears in the woods, but these sights and sounds are the texts for sermons upon human life. He undertook to get at the ele- mentary conditions of living, and to strip himself as far as he could of all that was unnecessary. In doing this he dis- covered many curious and ingenious things, and the unique ^ Emerson's Biographical Sketch. 164 HENRY DAVID THOREAU. method which he took was pretty sure to give him glimpses of life not seen by others. But the method had its disad- vantages, and chiefly this, that it was against the common order of things, and therefore the results reached could not be relied upon as sound and wholesome. The great value of Waldeti, and indeed of all Thoreau's books, is not in the philosophy, which is often shrewd and often strained and arbitrary, but in the disclosure made of the common facts of the world about one. He used to say, " I think nothing is to be hoped from you, if this bit of mould under your feet is not sweeter to you to eat than any other in this world, or in any world ; " and the whole drift of his writing is toward the development of the individual in the place where he happens to be. Thoreau's protesting attitude, and the stout resistance which he made to all in- fluences about him except the common ones of nature, be- tray themselves in the style of his writing. He has a way, almost insolent, of throwing out his thoughts, and growling forth his objections to the conventions of life, which ren- ders his writing often crabbed and inartistic. There is a rudeness which seems sometimes affected, and a carelessness which is contemptuous. Yet often his indifference to style is a rugged insistence on the strongest thought, and in his effort to express himself unreservedly he reaches a force and energy which are refreshing. A Week on the Concord and Merrimack Rivers and Waldeji were the only writings of Thoreau published in his lifetime. He printed contributions to the magazines from time to time, and out of these and his manuscripts have been gathered eight other volumes. Excursions in Field and Forest, The Maine Woods, Cape Cod, Letters to Va- rious Persons, A Ya7ikee in Canada, Early Sirring in Massachusetts, Summer and Wi7iter. To Excursions was prefixed a biographical sketch by R. W. Emerson, which gives one a very vivid portrait of this unique man. Cape Cod, which is the record of a walk taken the length of the BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. 165 Cape, and Walden are likely to remain as the most finished and agreeable of Thoreau's books. All of his writings, however, will be searched for the evidence which they give of a mind singular for its independence, its resolute con- fronting of the problems of life, its insight into nature, its isolation, and its waywardness. WILD APPLES. THE HISTORY OF THE APPLE-TREE. It is remarkable how closely the history of the Apple-tree is connected with that of man. The geolo- gist tells us that the order of the Rosacece^ which includes the Apple, also the true Grasses, and the Labiatoe^ or Mints, were introduced only a short time previous to the appearance of man on the globe. It appears that apples made a part of the food of that unknown primitive people whose traces have lately been found at the bottom of the Swiss lakes, supposed to be older than the foundation of Kome, so old that they had no metallic implements. An entire black and shrivelled Crab-Apple has been recovered from their stores. Tacitus says of the ancient Germans that they sat- isfied their hunger with wild apples, among other things. Niebuhr ^ observes that " the words for a house, a field, a plough, ploughing, wine, oil, milk, sheep, apples, and others relating to agriculture and the gen- tler ways of life, agree in Latin and Greek, while the Latin words for all objects pertaining to war or the chase are utterly alien from the Greek." Thus the apple-tree may be considered a symbol of peace no less than the olive. ^ A German historical critic of ancient life. WILD APPLES. 167 The apple was early so important, and so generally distributed, that its name traced to its root in many languages signifies fruit in general. MrjXov [Melon], in Greek, means an apple, also the fruit of other trees, also a sheep and any cattle, and finally riches in general. The apple-tree has been celebrated by the Hebrews, Greeks, Komans, and Scandinavians. Some have thought that the first human pair were tempted by its fruit. Goddesses are fabled to have contended for it, dragons were set to watch it, and heroes were em- ployed to pluck it.^ The tree is mentioned in at least three places in the Old Testament, and its fruit in two or three more. Solomon sings, '^As the apple-tree among the trees of the wood, so is my beloved among the sons." And again, " Stay me with flagons, comfort me with ap- ples." The noblest part of man's noblest feature is named from this fruit, " the apple of the eye." The apple-tree is also mentioned by Homer and Herodotus. Ulysses saw in the glorious garden of Alcinoiis " pears and pomegranates and apple-trees bearing beautiful fruit." And according to Homer, apples were among the fruits which Tantalus could not pluck, the wind ever blowing their boughs away from him. Theophrastus knew and described the apple-tree as a botanist. According to the prose Edda,^ " Iduna keeps in a box the apples which the gods, when they feel old age approaching, have only to taste of to become young again. It is in this manner that they will be kept in 1 The Greek myths especially referred to are The Choice of Paris and The Apples of the Hesperides. 2 The stories of the early Scandinavians. . 168 HENRY DAVID THOREAU. renovated youth until Ragnarok " (or the destruction of the Gods). I learn from Loudon ^ that " the ancient Welsh bards were rewarded for excelling in song by the token of the apple-spray ; " and " in the Highlands of Scotland the apple-tree is the badge of the clan Lamont." The apple-tree belongs chiefly to the northern tem- perate zone. Loudon says, that "it grows spontane- ously in every part of Europe except the frigid zone, and throughout Western Asia, China and Japan." We have also two or three varieties of the apple indi- genous in North America. The cultivated apple-tree was first introduced into this country by the earliest settlers, and is thought to do as well or better here than anywhere else. Probably some of the varieties which are now cultivated were first introduced into Britain by the Romans. Pliny, adopting the distinction of Theophrastus, says, " Of trees there are some which are altogether wild, some more civilized." Theophrastus includes the apple among the last ; and, indeed, it is in this sense the most civilized of all trees. It is as harmless as a dove, as beautiful as a rose, and as valuable as flocks and herds. It has been longer cultivated than any other, and so is more humanized ; and who knows but, like the dog, it will at length be no longer trace- able to its wild original? It migrates with man, like the dog and horse and cow ; first, perchance, from Greece to Italy, thence to England, thence to America ; and our Western emigrant is still marching steadily toward the setting sun with the seeds of the apple in 1 An English authority on the culture of orchards and gar- dens. WILD APPLES. 169 his pocket, or perhaps a few young trees strapped to his load. At least a million apple-trees are thus set farther westward this year than any cultivated ones grew last year. Consider how the Blossom-Week, like the Sabbath, is thus annually spreading over the prairies ; for when man migrates he carries with him not only his birds, quadrupeds, insects, vegetables, and his very sward, but his orchard also. The leaves and tender twigs are an agreeable food to many domestic animals, as the cow, horse, sheep, and goat ; and the fruit is sought after by the first, as well as by the hog. Thus there appears to have existed a natural alliance between these animals and this tree from the first. '' The fruit of the Crab in the forests of France " is said to be " a great resource for the wild boar." Not only the Indian, but many indigenous insects, birds, and quadrupeds, welcomed the apple-tree to these shores. The tent-caterpillar saddled her eggs on the very first twig that was formed, and it has since shared her affections with the wild cherry ; and the canker-worm also in a measure abandoned the elm to feed on it. As it grew apace, the bluebird, robin, cherry-bird, king-bird, and many more, came with haste and built their nests and warbled in its boughs, and so became orchard-birds, and multiplied more than ever. It was an era in the history of their race. The downy woodpecker found such a savory morsel under its bark, that he perforated it in a ring quite round the tree before he left it, — a thing which he had never done before, to my knowledge. It did not take the partridge long to find out how sweet its buds were, and every winter eve she flew, and still flies, from the wood, to pluck them, much to the farmer's 170 HENRY DAVID THOREAU. sorrow. The rabbit, too, was not slow to learn the taste of its twigs and bark ; and when the fruit was ripe, the squirrel half-rolled, half-carried it to his hole ; and even the musquash crept up the bank from the brook at evening, and greedily devoured it, until he had worn a path in the grass there ; and when it was frozen and thawed, the crow and the jay were glad to taste it occasionally. The owl crept into the first apple-tree that became hollow, and fairly hooted with delight, finding it just the place for him ; so, settling- down into it, he has remained there ever since. My theme being the Wild Apple, I will merely glance at some of the seasons in the annual growth of the cultivated apple, and pass on. to my special prov- ince. The flowers of the apple are perhaps the most beau- tiful of any tree, so copious and so delicious to both sight and scent. The walker is frequently tempted to turn and linger near some more than usually hand- some one, whose blossoms are two thirds expanded. How superior it is in these respects to the pear, whose blossoms are neither colored nor fragrant ! By the middle of July, green apples are so large as to remind us of coddling, and of the autumn. The sward is commonly strewed with little ones which fall still-born, as it were, — Nature thus thinning them for us. The Roman writer Palladius said : " If apples are inclined to fall before their time, a stone placed in a split root will retain them." Some such notion, still surviving, may account for some of the stones which we see placed to be overgrown in the forks of trees. They have a saying in Suffolk, England, — " At Michaelmas time, or a little before, Half an apple goes to the core." WILD APPLES. 171 Early apples begin to be ripe about the first of August ; but I think that none of them are so good to eat as some to smell. One is worth more to scent your handkerchief with than any perfume which they sell in the shops. The fragrance of some fruits is not to be forgotten, along with that of flowers. Some gnarly apple which I pick up in the road reminds me by its fragrance of all the wealth of Pomona,^ — car- rying me forward to those days when they will be collected in golden and ruddy heaps in the orchards and about the cider-mills. A week or two later, as you are going by orchards or gardens, especially in the evenings, you pass through a little region possessed by the fragrance of ripe ap- ples, and thus enjoy them without price, and without robbing anybody. There is thus about all natural products a certain volatile and ethereal quality which represents their highest value, and which cannot be vulgarized, or bought and sold. No mortal has ever enjoyed the per- fect flavor of any fruit, and only the godlike among men begin to taste its ambrosial qualities. For nectar and ambrosia are only those fine flavors of every earthly fruit which our coarse palates fail to perceive, — just as we occupy the heaven of the gods without knowing it. When I see a particularly mean man carrying a load of fair and fragrant early apples to market, I seem to see a contest going on between him and his horse, on the one side, and the apples on the other, and, to my mind, the apples always gain it. Pliny says that apples are the heaviest of all things, and that the oxen begin to sweat at the mere sight of a load of them. Our driver begins to lose his load ^ The Roman goddess of fruit and fruit-trees. 172 HENRY DAVID THOREAU. the moment lie tries to transport them to where they do not belong, that is, to any but the most beautiful. Though he gets out from time to time, and feels of them, and thinks they are all there, I see the stream of their evanescent and celestial qualities going to heaven from his cart, while the pulp and skin and core only are going to market. They are not apples, but pomace. Are not these still Iduna's apples, the taste of which keeps the gods forever young? and think you that they will let Loki or Thjassi carry them off to Jotunheim,^ while they grow wrinkled and gray ? No, for Eagnarok, or the destruction of the gods, is not yet. •\ There is another thinning of the fruit, commonly near the end of August or in Sei)tember, v/hen the ground is strewn with windfalls; and this happens especially when high winds occur after rain. In some orchards you may see fully three quarters of the whole crop on the ground, lying in a circular form beneath the trees, yet hai'd and green, — or, if it is a hillside, rolled far down the hill. However, it is an ill wind that blows nobody any good. All the country over, people are busy picking up the windfalls, and this will make them cheap for early apple-pies. In October, the leaves falling, the apples are more distinct on the trees. I saw one year in a neighboring town some trees fuller of fruit than I remember to have ever seen before, small yellow apples hanging over the road. The branches were gracefully droop- ing with their weight, like a barberry-bush, so that ^ Jotuuheim (^Ye{r)t'-im-Mme) in Scandinavian mythology was the home of the Jotmi or Giants. Loki was a descendant of the gods, and a companion of the Giants. Thjassi {Tee-assy) was a giant. WILD APPLES. 173 the whole tree acquired a new character. Even the topmost branches, instead of standing erect, spread and drooped in all directions ; and there were so many poles supporting the lower ones, that they looked like pictures of banian-trees. As an old English manu- script says, " The mo appelen the tree bereth the more sche boweth to the folk." Surely the apple is the noblest of fruits. Let the most beautiful or the swiftest have it. That should be the " going " price of apples. Between the fifth and twentieth of October I see the barrels lie under the trees. And perhaj^s I talk with one who is selecting some choice barrels to fulfil an order. He turns a specked one over many times before he leaves it out. If I were to tell what is pass- ing in my mind, I should say that every one was specked which he had handled ; for he rubs off all the bloom, and those fugacious ethereal qualities leave it. Cool evenings prompt the farmers to make haste, and at length I see only the ladders here and there left leaning against the trees. It would be well if we accepted these gifts with more joy and gratitude, and did not^ think it enough simply to put a fresh load of compost about the tree. Some old English customs are suggestive at least. I find them described chiefly in Brand's '' Popular An- tiquities." It appears that " on Christmas eve the farmers and their men in Devonshire take a larsre bowl of cider, with a toast in it, and carrying it in state to the orchard, they salute the apple-trees with much ceremony, in order to make them bear well the next season." This salutation consists in " throwing some of the cider about the roots of the tree, placing bits of the toast on the branches," and then, " encir- 174 HENRY DAVID THOREAU. cling one of the best bearing trees in the orchard, they drink the following toast three several times : — " * Here 's to thee, old apple-tree, Whence thou mayst bud, and wlience thou mayst blow, And whence thou mayst bear apples enow ! Hats-full ! caps-full ! Bushel, bushel, sacks-full ! And my pockets full, too ! Hurra! ' " Also what was called " apple-howling " used to be practised in various counties of England on New- Year's eve. A troop of boys visited the different orchards, and, encircling the apple-trees, repeated the following words : — " Stand fast, root ! bear well, top ! Pray God send us a good howling crop : Every twig, apples big ; Every bow, apples enow ! " " They then shout in chorus, one of the boys accom- panying them on a cow's horn. During this cere- mony they rap the trees with their sticks." This is called " wassailing " the trees, and is thought by some to be " a relic of the heathen sacrifice to Pomona." Herrick sings, — " Wassaile the trees that they may beare You many a plum and many a peare ; For more or less fruits they will bring As you so give them wassailing." Our poets have as yet a better right to sing of cider than of wine ; but it behooves them to sing better than English Phillips did, else they will do no credit to their Muse. THE WILD APPLE. So much for the more civilized apple-trees (urha- 7iiores, as Pliny calls them). I love better to go WILD APPLES. 175 through the old orchards of ungrafted apple-trees, at whatever season of the year, — so irregularly planted : sometimes two trees standing close together ; and the rows so devious that you would think that they not only had grown while the owner was sleeping, but had been set out by him in a somnambulic state. The rows of grafted fruit will never tempt me to wander amid them like these. But I now, alas, speak rather from memory than from any recent experience, such ravages have been made ! Some soils, like a rocky tract called the Easter- brooks Country in my neighborhood, are so suited to the apple, that it will grow faster in them without any care, or if only the ground is broken up once a year, than it will in many places with any amount of care. The owners of this tract allow that the soil is excel- lent for fruit, but they say that it is so rocky that they have not patience to plough it, and that, together with the distance, is the reason why it is not culti- vated. There are, or were recently, extensive or- chards there standing without order. Nay, they spring up wild and bear well there in the midst of pines, birches, maples, and oaks. I am often surprised to see rising amid these trees the rounded tops of apple- trees glowing with red or yellow fruit, in harmony with the autumnal tints of the forest. Going up the side of a cliff about the first of No- vember, I saw a vigorous young apple-tree, which, planted by birds or cows, had shot up amid the rocks and open woods there, and had now much fruit on it, uninjured by the frosts, when all cultivated apples were gathered. It was a rank wild growth, with many green leaves on it still, and made an impression of thorni- ness. The fruit was hard and green, but looked as if 176 HENRY DAVID THOREAU. it would be palatable in the winter. Some was dan- gling on the twigs, but more half-buried in the wet leaves under the tree, or rolled far down the hill amid the rocks. The owner knows nothing of it. The day was not observed when it first blossomed, nor when it first bore fruit, unless by the chickadee. There was no dancing on the green beneath it in its honor, and now there is no hand to pluck its fruit, — which is only gnawed by squirrels, as I perceive. It has done double duty, — not only borne this crop, but each twig has grown a foot into the air. And this is iiuch fruit ! bigger than many berries, we must admit, and carried home will be sound and palatable next spring. What care I for Iduna's apples so long as I can get these ? When I go by this shrub thus late and hardy, and see its dangling fruit, I respect the tree, and I am grateful for Nature's bounty, even though I cannot eat it. Here on this rugged and woody hillside has grown an apple-tree, not planted by man, no relic of a former orchard, but a natural growth, like the pines and oaks. Most fruits which we prize and use de- pend entirely on our care. Corn and grain, potatoes, peaches, melons, etc., depend altogether on our plant- ing ; but the apple emulates man's independence and enterprise. It is not simply carried, as I have said, but, like him, to some extent, it has migrated to this New World, and is even, here and there, making its way amid the aboriginal trees ; just as the ox and dog and horse sometimes run wild and maintain them- selves. Even the sourest and crabbedest apple, growing in the most unfavorable position, suggests such thoughts as these, it is so noble a fruit. WILD APPLES. Ill THE CRAB. Nevertheless, oicr wild apple is wild only like myself, perchance, who belong not to the aboriginal race here, but have strayed into the woods from the cultivated stock. Wilder still, as I have said, there grows else- where in this country a native and aboriginal Crab- Apple, " whose nature has not yet been modified by cultivation." It is found from Western New York to Minnesota and southward. Michaux^ says that its ordinary height '' is fifteen or eighteen feet, but it is sometimes found twenty-five or thirty feet high," and that the large ones "exactly resemble the common apple-tree." "The flowers are white mingled with rose-color, and are collected in corymbs." They are remarkable for their delicious odor. The fruit, ac- cordino" to him, is about an inch and a half in diame- ter, and is intensely acid. Yet they make fine sweet- meats, and also cider of them. He concludes, that "if, on being cultivated, it does not yield new and palatable varieties, it will at least be celebrated for the beauty of its flowers, and for the sweetness of its perfume." I never saw the Crab- Apple till May, 1861. I had heard of it through Michaux, but more modern bot- anists, so far as I know, have not treated it as of any peculiar importance. Thus it was a half -fabulous tree to me. I contemplated a pilgrimage to the " Glades," a portion of Pennsylvania, where it was said to grow to perfection. I thought of sending to a nursery for it, but doubted if they had it, or would distinguish it from European varieties. At last I had occasion to go to Minnesota, and on entering Michigan I began 1 Pronounced mee-sho' ; a French botanist and traveller. 178 HENRY DAVID THOREAU. to notice from the cars a tree with handsome rose- colored flowers. At first I thought it some variety of thorn ; but it was not long before the truth flashed on me, that this was my long-sought Crab-Apple. It was the prevailing flowering shrub or tree to be seen from the cars at that season of the year, — about the middle of May. But the cars never stopped before one, and so I was launched on the bosom of the Mis- sissippi without having touched one, experiencing the fate of Tantalus. On arriving at St. Anthony's Falls, I was sorry to be told that I was too far north for the Crab-Apple. Nevertheless I succeeded in finding it about eight miles west of the Falls ; touched it and smelled it, and secured a lingering corymb of flowers for my herbarium. This must have been near its northern limit. HOW THE WILD APPLE GROWS. But though these are indigenous, like the Indians, I doubt whether they are any hardier than those back- woodsmen among the apple-trees, which, though de- scended from cultivated stocks, plant themselves in distant fields and forests, where the soil is favorable to them. I know of no trees which have more diffi- culties to contend with, and which more sturdily resist their foes. These are the ones whose story we have to tell. It oftentimes reads thus : — Near the beginning of May, we notice little thickets of apple-trees just springing up in the pastures where cattle have been, — as the rocky ones of our Easter- brooks Country, or the top of Nobscot Hill in Sud- bury. One or two of these perhaps survive the drought and other accidents, — their very birthplace defending tliem against the encroaching grass and some other dangers, at first. WILD APPLES. 1T9 In two years' time 't had thus Reached the level of the rocks, Admired the stretching world, Nor feared the wandering iiocks. But at this tender age Its sufferings began : There came a browsing ox And cut it down a span. This time, perhaps, the ox does not notice it amid the grass ; but the next year, when it has grown more stout, he recognizes it for a fellow-emigrant from the old country, the flavor of whose leaves and twigs he well knows ; and though at first he pauses to welcome it, and express his surprise, and gets for answer, " The same cause that brought you here brought me," he nevertheless browses it again, reflecting, it may be, that he has some title to it. Thus cut down annually, it does not despair ; but, putting forth two short twigs for every one cut off, it spreads out low along the ground in the hollows or between the rocks, growing more stout and scrubby, until it forms, not a tree as yet, but a little pyramidal, stiff, twiggy mass, almost as solid and impenetrable as a rock. Some of the densest and most impenetra- ble clumps of bushes that I have ever seen, as well on account of the closeness and stubbornness of their branches as of their thorns, have been these wild-apple scrubs. They are more like the scrubby fir and black spruce on which you stand, and sometimes walk, on the tops of mountains, where cold is the demon they contend with, than anything else. No wonder they are prompted to grow thorns at last, to defend them- selves against such foes. In their thorniness, how- ever, there is no malice, only some malic acid. 180 HENRY DAVID THOREAU. The rocky pastures of the tract I have referred to — for they maintain their ground best in a rocky fiekl — are thickly sprinkled with these little tufts, reminding you often of some rigid gray mosses or lichens, and you see thousands of little trees just springing up between them, with the seed still at- tached to them. Being regularly clipped all around each year by the cows, as a hedge witli shears, they are often of a per- fect conical or pyramidal form, from one to four feet high, and more or less sharp, as if trimmed by the gardener's art. In the pastures on Nobscot Hill and its spurs they make fine dark shadows when the sun is low. They are also an excellent covert from hawks for many small birds that roost and build in tliem. Whole flocks perch in them at night, and I have seen three robins' nests in one which was six feet in dia- meter. No doubt many of these are already old trees, if you reckon from the day they were planted, but in- fants still when you consider their development and the long life before them. I counted the annual rings of some which were just one foot high, and as wide as high, and found that they were about twelve years old, but quite sound and thrifty ! They were so low that they were unnoticed by the walker, while many of their contemporaries from the nurseries were al- ready bearing considerable crops. But what you gain in time is perhaps in this case, too, lost in power, — that is, in the vigor of the tree. This is their pyram- idal state. The cows continue to browse them thus for twenty years or more, keeping them down and compelling them to spread, until at last they are so broad that WILD APPLES. 181 they become their own fence, when some interior shoot, which their foes cannot reach, darts upward with joy : for it has not forgotten its high calling, and bears its own peculiar fruit in triumph. Such are the tactics by which it finally defeats its bovine foes. Now, if you have watched the progress of a particular shrub, you will see that it is no longer a simple pyramid or cone, but out of its apex there rises a sprig or two, growing more lustily perchance than an orchard -tree, since the pla^it now devotes the whole of its repressed energy to these upright parts. In a short time these become a small tree, an inverted pyramid resting on the apex of the other, so that the whole has now the form of a vast hour-glass. The spreading bottom, having served its purpose, finally disappears, and the generous tree permits the now harmless cows to come in and stand in its shade, and rub against and redden its trunk, which has grown in spite of them, and even to taste a jiart of its fruit, and so disperse the seed. Thus the cows create their own shade and food ; and the tree, its hour-glass being inverted, lives a sec- ond life, as it were. It is an important question with some nowadays, whether you should trim young apple-trees as high as your nose or as high as your eyes. The ox trims them up as high as he can reach, and that is about the right height, I think. In spite of wandering kine and other adverse cir- cumstance, that despised shrub, valued only by small birds as a covert and shelter from hawks, has its blossom-week at last, and in course of time its har- vest, sincere, though small. By the end of some October, when its leaves have 182 HENRY DAVID THOREAU. fallen, I frequently see such a central sprig, whose progress I have watched, when I thought it had for- gotten its destiny, as I had, bearing its first crop of small green or yellow or rosy fruit, which the cows can- not get at over the bushy and thorny hedge which sur- rounds it ; and I make haste to taste the new and unde- scribed variety. We have all heard of the numerous varieties of fruit invented by Van Mons ^ and Knight.''^ This is the system of Van Cow, and she has invented far more and more memorable varieties than both of them. Through what hardships it may attain to bear a sweet fruit ! Though somewhat small, it may prove equal, if not superior, in flavor to that which has grown in a garden, — will perchance be all the sweeter and more palatable for the very difficulties it has had to contend with. Who knows but this chance wild fruit, planted by a cow or a bird on some remote and rocky hillside, where it is as yet unobserved by man, may be the choicest of all its kind, and foreign potentates shall hear of it, and royal societies seek to propagate it, though the virtues of the perhaps truly crabbed owner of the soil may never be heard of, — at least, beyond the limits of his village? It was thus the Porter and the Baldwin grew. Every wild-apple shrub excites our expectation thus, somewhat as every wild child. It is, perhaps, a prince in disguise. What a lesson to man ! So are human beings, referred to the highest standard, the celestial fruit which they suggest and aspire to bear, browsed on by fate ; and only the most persistent and strong- est genius defends itself and prevails, sends a tender ^ A Belgian chemist and horticulturist. 2 An English vegetable physiologist. WILD APPLES. 183 scion upward at last, and drops its perfect fruit on the ungrateful earth. Poets and philosophers and statesmen thus spring up in the country pastures, and outlast the hosts of unoriginal men. Such is always the pursuit of knowledge. The ce- lestial fruits, the golden apples of the Hesperides, are ever guarded by a hundred-headed dragon which never sleeps, so that it is an herculean labor to pluck them. This is one and the most remarkable way in which the wild apple is propagated ; but commonly it springs up at wide intervals in woods and swamps, and by the sides of roads, as the soil may suit it, and grows with comparative rapidity. Those which grow in dense woods are very tall and slender. I frequently pluck from these trees a perfectly mild and tamed fruit. As Palladius says, "And the ground is strewn with the fruit of an unbidden apple-tree." It is an old notion, that, if these wild trees do not bear a valuable fruit of their own, they are the best stocks by which to transmit to posterity the most highly prized qualities of others. However, I am not in search of stocks, but the wild fruit itself, whose fierce gust has suffered no " inteneration." It is not my " highest plot To plant the Bergamot." THE FRUIT, AND ITS FLAVOR. The time for wild apples is the last of October and the first of November. They then get to be palatable, for they ripen late, and they are still, perhaps, as beautiful as ever. I make a great account of these fruits, which the farmers do not think it worth the while to gather, — wild flavors of the Muse, vivacious and inspiriting. The farmer thinks that he has better 184 HENRY DAVID THOREAU. in his barrels ; but lie is mistaken, unless he has a walker's appetite and imagination, neither of which can he have. Such as grow quite wild, and are left out till the first of November, I presume that the owner does not mean to gather. They belong to children as wild as themselves, — to certain active boys that I know, — to the wild-eyed woman of the fields, to whom nothing comes amiss, who gleans after all the world, — and, moreover, to us walkers. We have met with them, and they are ours. These rights, long enough insisted upon, have come to be an institution in some old countries, where they have learned how to live. I hear that '' the custom of grippling, which may be called apple-gleaning, is, or was formerly, practised in Herefordshire. It consists in leaving a few apples, which are called the gripj^les, on every tree, after the general gathering, for the boys, who go with climbing- poles and bags to collect them." As for those I speak of, I pluck them as a wild fruit, native to this quarter of the earth, — fruit of old trees that have been dying ever since I was a boy and are not yet dead, frequented only by the wood- pecker and the squirrel, deserted now by the owner, who has not faith enough to look under their boughs. From the appearance of the tree-top, at a little dis- tance, you would expect nothing but lichens to drop from it, but your faith is rewarded by finding the ground strewn with spirited fruit, — some of it, per- haps, collected at squirrel-holes, with the marks of their teeth by which they carried them, — some containing a cricket or two silently feeding within, and some, especially in damp days, a shelless snail. The very sticks and stones lodged in the tree-top might have WILD APPLES. 185 convinced you of the savoriness of the fruit which has been so eagerly sought after in past years. I have seen no account of these among the " Fruits and Fruit-Trees of America," though they are more memorable to my taste than the grafted kinds ; more racy and wild American flavors do they possess, when October and November, when December and January, and perhaps February and March even, have assuaged them somewhat. An old farmer in my neighborhood, who always selects the right word, says that ''they have a kind of bow-arrow tang." Apples for grafting appear to have been selected commonly, not so much for their spirited flavor, as for their mildness, their size, and bearing qualities, — not so much for their beauty, as for their fairness and soundness. Indeed, I have no faith in the selected lists of pomological gentlemen. Their "Favorites" and " Non-suches " and " Seek-no-farthers," when I have fruited them, commonly turn out very tame and forgetable. They are eaten with comparatively little zest, and have no real tang nor smach to them. What if some of these wildings are acrid and puck- ery, genuine verjuice., do they not still belong to the Pomacem^ which are uniformly innocent and kind to our race? I still begrudge them to the cider-mill. Perhaps they are not fairly ripe yet. No wonder that these small and high-colored apples are thought to make the best cider. Loudon quotes from the HereforchUre Report that "apples of a small size are always, if equal in quality, to be pre- ferred to those of a larger size, in order that the rind and kernel may bear the greatest proportion to the pulp, which affords the weakest and most watery juice." And he says, that, " to prove this, Dr, Sy- 186 HENRY DAVID THOREAU. monds of Hereford, about tlie year 1800, made one hogshead of cider entirely from the rinds and cores of apples, and another from the pulp only, when the first was found of extraordinary strength and flavor, while the latter was sweet and insipid." Evelyn ^ says that the " Ked-strake " was the favor- ite cider-apple in his day ; and he quotes one Dr. New- burg as saying, " In Jersey 't is a general observation, as I hear, that the more of red any apple has in its rind, the more proper it is for this use. Pale-faced apples they exclude as much as may be from their cider-vat." This opinion still prevails. All apples are good in November. Those which the farmer leaves out as unsalable, and unpalatable to those who frequent the markets, are choicest fruit to the walker. But it is remarkable that the wild apple, which I praise as so spirited and racy when eaten in the fields or woods, being brought into the house, has frequently a harsh and crabbed taste. The Saunter- er's Apple not even the saunterer can eat in the house. The palate rejects it there, as it does haws and acorns, and demands a tamed one ; for there you miss the No- vember air, which is the sauce it is to be eaten with. Accordingly, when Tityrus, seeing the lengthening shadows, invites Meliboeus to go home and pass the night with him, he promises him mild apples and soft chestnuts. I frequently pluck wild apples of so rich and spicy a flavor that I wonder all orchardists do not get a scion from that tree, and I fail not to bring home my pockets full. But perchance, when I take one out of my desk and taste it in my chamber I find it unexpectedly crude, — sour enough to set a squir- rel's teeth on edge and make a jay scream. 1 An English writer of the seventeenth century. WILD APPLES. 187 These aj^ples have hung in the wind and frost and rain till they have absorbed the qualities of the weather or season, and thus are highly seasoned, and they pierce and sting and permeate us with their spirit. They must be eaten in season, accordingly, — that is, out-of-doors. To appreciate the wild and sharp flavors of these October fruits, it is necessary that you be breathing the sharp October or November air. The out-door air and exercise which the walker gets give a different tone to his palate, and he craves a fruit which the sedentary would call harsh and crabbed. They must be eaten in the fields, w^hen your system is all aglow with exercise, when the frosty weather nips your fin- gers, the wind rattles the bare boughs or rustles the few remaining leaves, and the jay is heard screaming around. What is sour in the house a bracing walk makes sweet. Some of these apples might be labelled, " To be eaten in the wind." Of course no flavors are thrown away ; they are in- tended for the taste that is up to them. Some ajDples have two distinct flavors, and perhaps one-half of them must be eaten in the house, the other out-doors. One Peter Whitney wrote from Northborough in 1782, for the Proceedings of the Boston Academy, de- scribing an apple-tree in that town " producing fruit of opposite qualities, part of the same apj^le being fre- quently sour and the other sweet ; " also some all sour, and others all sweet, and this diversity on all parts of the tree. There is a wild apple on Nawshawtuck Hill in my town which has to me a peculiarly pleasant bitter tang, not perceived till it is three-quarters tasted. It remains on the tongue. As you eat it, it smells ex- 188 HENRY DAVID THOREAU. actly like a squash-bug. It is a sort of triumph to eat aud relish it. I hear that the fruit of a kind of plum-tree in Pro- vence is '' called Prunes sibarelles, because it is im- possible to whistle after having eaten them, from their sourness." But perhaps they were only eaten in the house and in summer, and if tried out-of-doors in a stinging atmosphere, who knows but you could whistle an octave higher and clearer ? In the fields only are the sours and bitters of Na- ture appreciated ; just as the wood-chopper eats his meal in a sunny glade, in the middle of a winter day, with content, basks in a sunny ray there, and dreams of summer in a degree of cold which, experienced in a chamber, would make a student miserable. They who are at v;ork abroad are not cold, but rather it is they who sit shivering in houses. As with temperatures, so with flavors ; as with cold and heat, so with sour and sweet. This natural raciness, the sours and bit- ters which the diseased palate refuses, are the true condiments. Let your condiments be in the condition of your senses. To appreciate the flavor of these wild apples requires vigorous and healthy senses, pwpillm^ firm and erect on the tongue and palate, not easily flattened and tamed. From my experience with wild apples, I can under- stand that there may be reason for a savage's prefer- ring many kinds of food which the civilized man re- jects. The former has the palate of an out-door man. It takes a savage or wild taste to appreciate a wild fruit. 1 A Latin word, accent on the second syllable, meaning here the rough surface of the tongue and palate. WILD APPLES. 189 What a healthy out-of-door appetite it takes to rel- ish the apple of life, the apple of the world, then ! " Nor is it every apple I desire, Nor that which pleases every palate best ; 'T is not the lasting Deuxan I require, Nor yet the red-cheeked Greening I request, Nor that which first beshrewed the name of wife, Nor that whose beauty caused the golden strife : No, no ! bring nie an apple from the tree of life." So there is one thought for the field, another for the house. I would have my thoughts, like wild apples, to be food for walkers, and will not warrant them to be palatable, if tasted in the house. THEIR BEAUTY. Almost all wild apples are handsome. They can- not be too gnarly and crabbed and rusty to look at. The gnarliest will have some redeeming traits even to the eye. You will discover some evening redness dashed or sprinkled on some protuberance or in some cavity. It is rare that the summer lets an apple go without streaking or spotting it on some part of its sphere. It will have some red stains, commemorating the mornings and evenings it has witnessed ; some dark and rusty blotches, in memory of the clouds and foggy, mildewy days that have passed over it ; and a spacious field of green reflecting the general face of Nature, — green even as the fields ; or a yellow ground, which implies a milder flavor, — yellow as the harvest, or russet as the hills. Apples, these I mean, unspeakably fair, — apples not of Discord, but Concord ! Yet not so rare but that the homeliest may have a share. Painted by the frosts, some a uniform clear bright yellow, or red, 190 HENRY DAVID THOREAU. or crimson, as if their spheres had regularly revolved, and enjoyed the influence of the sun on all sides alike, — some with the faintest pink blush imaginable, — some brindled with deep red streaks like a cow, or with hundreds of fine blood-red rays running regularly from the stem-dimple to the blossom-end, like merid- ional lines, on a straw-colored ground, — some touched with a greenish rust, like a fine lichen, here and there, with crimson blotches or eyes more or less confluent and fiery when wet, — and others gnarly, and freckled or peppered all over on the stem side with fine crim- son spots on a white ground, as if accidentally sprin- kled from the brush of Him who paints the autumn leaves. Others, again, are sometimes red inside, per- fused with a beautiful blush, fairy food, too beautiful to eat, — apple of the Hesperides, apple of the even- ing sky ! But like shells and pebbles on the sea- shore, they must be seen as they sparkle amid the withering leaves in some dell in the woods, in the autumnal air, or as they lie in the wet grass, and not when they have wilted and faded in the house. THE NAMING OF THEM. It would be a pleasant pastime to find suitable names for the hundred varieties which go to a single heap at the cider-mill. Would it not tax a man's invention, — no one to be named after a man, and all in the lingua vernacula f ^ Who shall stand god- father at the christening of the wild apples ? It would exhaust the Latin and Greek languages, if they were used, and make the lingua vernacula flag. We should have to call in the sunrise and the sunset, the rainbow and the autumn woods and the wild flowers, ^ Lingua vernac'ula, common speech. WILD APPLES. 191 and the woodpecker and the purple finch, and the squirrel and the jay and the butterfly, the November traveller and the truant boy, to our aid. In 1836 there were in the garden of the London Horticultural Society more than fourteen hundred distinct sorts. But here are species which they have not in their catalogue, not to mention the varieties which our Crab might yield to cultivation. Let us enu- merate a few of these. I find myself compelled, after all, to give the Latin names of some for the benefit of those who live where English is not spoken, — for they are likely to have a world-wide reputation. There is, first of all, the Wood-Apple (i!i«Zws syl- vaticci) ; the Blue-Jay Apple ; the Apple which grows in Dells in the Woods (^sylvestrivallis), also in Hol- lows in Pastures (campestrwallis) ; the Apple that grows in an old Cellar-Hole (^Malus cellaris) ; the Meado w- Apple ; the Partridge- Apple ; the Truant's Apple {CessatoiHs'), which no boy will ever go by without knocking off some, however late it may be ; the Saunterer's Apple, — you must lose yourself be- fore you can find the way to that ; the Beauty of the Air {Decus Aeris') ; December-Eating ; the Frozen- Thawed (^gelato-soluta)^ good only in that state ; the Concord Apple, possibly the same with the Musketa- quidensis ; the Assabet Apple ; the Brindled Apple ; Wine of New England ; the Chickaree Apple ; the Green Apple QMalus viridis) ; — this has many synonyms ; in an imperfect state, it is the Cholera morhifera aut dysentei^ifera^ pueridis dilecUssima ; ^ — the Apple which Atalanta stopped to pick up ; the Hedge - Apple (Mains Sepkmi) ; the Slug - Apple 1 The apple that brings the disease of cholera and of dysen- tery, the fruit that small boys like best. 192 HENRY DAVID THOREAU. (limaced) ; the Railroad- Apple, which perhaps came from a core thrown out of the cars ; the Apple whose Fruit we tasted in our Youth ; our Particular Apple, not to be found in any catalogue, — Pedestrium So- latium ; ^ also the Apple where hangs the Forgotten Scythe ; Iduna's Apples, and the Apples which Loki found in the Wood ; ^ and a great many more I have on my list, too numerous to mention, — all of them good. As Bodaeus exclaims, referring to the culti- vated kinds, and adapting Virgil to his case, so I, adapting Bodaeus, — " Not if I had a hundred tongues, a hundred mouths, An iron voice, could I describe all the forms And reckon up all the names of these ivild apples.^* ■ THE LAST GLEANING. By the middle of November the wild apples have lost some of their brilliancy, and have chiefly fallen. A great part are decayed on the ground, and the sound ones are more palatable than before. The note of the chickadee sounds now more distinct, as you wander amid the old trees, and the autumnal dandelion is half-closed and tearful. But still, if you are a skilful gleaner, you may get many a pocket-full even of grafted fruit, long after apples are supposed to be gone out-of-doors. I know a Blue-Pearmain tree, growing within the edge of a swamp, almost as good as wild. You would not suppose that there was any fruit left there, on the first survey, but you must look according to system. Those which lie exposed are quite brown and rotten now, or perchance a few still show one blooming cheek here and there amid the wet leaves. Nevertheless, with experienced eyes, 1 The tramp's comfort. ^ See p. 172. WILD APPLES. 193 I explore amid the bare alders and the huckleberry- bushes and the withered sedge, and in the crevices of the rocks, which are full of leaves, and pry under the fallen and decaying ferns, which, with apple and alder leaves, thickly strew the ground. For I know that they lie concealed, fallen into hollows long since and covered up by the leaves of the tree itself, — a proper kind of packing. From these lurking-places, anywhere within the circumference of the tree, I draw forth the fruit, all wet and glossy, maybe nib- bled by rabbits and hollowed out by crickets and perhaps with a leaf or two cemented to it (as Curzon ^ an old manuscript from a monastery's mouldy cellar), but still with a rich bloom on it, and at least as ripe and well kept, if not better than those in barrels, more crisp and lively than they. If these resources fail to yield anything, I have learned to look between the bases of the suckers which spring thickly from some horizontal limb, for now and then one lodges there, or in the very midst of an alder-clump, where they are covered by leaves, safe from cows which may have smelled them out. If I am sharp-set, for I do not refuse the Blue-Pearmain, I fill my pockets on each side ; and as I retrace my steps in the frosty eve, being perhaps four or five miles from home, I eat one first from this side, and then from that, to keep my balance. I learn from Topsell's Gesner, whose authority ap- pears to be Albertus, that the following is the way in which the hedoehos: collects and carries home his apples. He says : " His meat is apples, worms, or 1 Robert Curzon was a traveller who searched for old manu- scripts in the monasteries of the Levant. See his book, An- cient Monasteries of the East. 194 HENRY DAVID THOREAU, grapes : when he findeth apples or grapes on the earth, he roUeth himself upon them, until he have filled all his prickles, and then carrieth them home to his den, never bearing above one in his mouth ; and if it for- tune that one of them fall off by the way, he likewise shaketh off all the residue, and walloweth upon them afresh, until they be all settled upon his back again. So, forth he goeth, making a noise like a cart-wheel ; and if he have any young ones in his nest, they pull off his load wherewithal he is loaded, eating thereof what they please, and laying up the residue for the time to come." THE " FROZEN-THAWED " APPLE. Toward the end of November, though some of the sound ones are yet more mellow and perhaps more edible, they have generally, like the leaves, lost their beauty, and are beginning to freeze. It is finger-cold, and prudent farmers get in their barrelled apples, and bring you the apples and cider which they have en- gaged ; for it is time to put them into the cellar. Perhaps a few on the ground show their red cheeks above the early snow, and occasionally some even preserve their color and soundness under the snow throughout the winter. But generally at the begin- ning of the winter they freeze hard, and soon, though undecayed, acquire the color of a baked apple. Before the end of December, generally, they ex- perience their first thawing. Those which a month ago were sour, crabbed, and quite unpalatable to the civilized taste, such at least as were frozen while sound, let a warmer sun come to thaw them, for they are extremely sensitive to its rays, are found to be filled with a rich, sweet cider, better than any bottled WILD APPLES. 195 cider that I know of, and with which I am better acquainted than with wine. All apples are good in this state, and your jaws are the cider-press. Others, which have more substance, are a sweet and luscious food, — in my opinion of more worth than the pine- apples which are imported from the West Indies. Those which lately even I tasted only to repent of it, — for I am semi-civilized, — which the farmer will- ingly left on the tree, I am now glad to find have the property of hanging on like the leaves of the young- oaks. It is a way to keep cider sweet without boil- ing. Let the frost come to freeze them first, solid as stones, and then the rain or a warm winter day to thaw them, and they will seem to have borrowed a flavor from heaven through the medium of the air in which they hang. Or perchance you find, when you get home, that those which rattled in your pocket have thawed, and the ice is turned to cider. But after the third or fourth freezing and thawing they will not be found so good. What are the imported half -ripe fruits of the torrid South to this fruit matured by the cold of the frigid North ? These are those crabbed apples with which I cheated my companion, and kept a smooth face that I might tempt him to eat. Now we both greedily fill our pockets with them, — bending to drink the cup and save our lappets from the overflowing juice, — and grow more social with their wine. Was there one that hung so high and sheltered by the tangled branches that our sticks could not dislodge it ? It is a fruit never carried to market, that I am aware of, — quite distinct from the apple of the markets, as from dried apple and cider, — and it is not every winter that produces it in perfection. 196 HENRY DAVID THOREAU. The era of the Wild Apple will soon be past. It is a fruit which will probably become extinct in New England. You may still wander through old orchards of native fruit of great extent, which for the most part went to the cider-mill, now all gone to decay. I have heard of an orchard in a distant town, on the side of a hill, where the apples rolled down and lay four feet deep against a wall on the lower side, and this the owner cut down for fear they should be made into cider. Since the temperance reform and the general introduction of grafted fruit, no native apple- trees, such as I see everywhere in deserted pastures, and where the woods have grown up around them, are set out. I fear that he who walks over these fields a century hence will not know the pleasure of knocking oif wild apples. Ah, poor man, there are many plea- sures which he will not know ! Notwithstanding the prevalence of the Baldwin and the Porter, I doubt if so extensive orchards are set out to-day in my town as there were a century ago, when those vast straggling cider-orchards were planted, when men both ate and drank apples, when the pomace-heap was the only nursery, and trees cost nothing but the trouble of set- ting: them out. Men could afford then to stick a tree by every wall-side and let it take its chance. I see nobody planting trees to-day in such out-of-the-way places, along the lonely roads and lanes, and at the bottom of dells in the wood. Now that they have grafted trees, and pay a price for them, they collect them into a plat by their houses, and fence them in, — and the end of it all will be that we shall be com- pelled to look for our apples in a barrel. This is " The word of the Lord that came to Joel the son of Pethuel. WILD APPLES. 197 " Hear this, ye old men, and give ear, all ye in- habitants of the land I Hath this been in your days, or even in the days of your fathers ? . . . " That which the palmer-worm hath left hath the locust eaten ; and that which the locust hath left hath the canker-worm eaten ; and that which the canker* worm hath left hath the caterpillar eaten. " Awake, ye drunkards, and weep ! and howl, all ye drinkers of wine, because of the new wine ! for it is cut off from your mouth. " For a nation is come up upon my land, strong, and without number, whose teeth are the teeth of a lion, and he hath the cheek-teeth of a great lion. " He hath laid my vine waste, and barked my fig- tree ; he hath made it clean bare, and cast it away ; the branches thereof are made white. . . . " Be ye ashamed, O ye husbandmen ! howl, O ye vine-dressers ! . . . " The vine is dried up, and the fig-tree languish- eth ; the pomegranate-tree, the palm-tree also, and the apple-tree, even all the trees of the field, are with- ered : because joy is withered away from the sons of men." ^ 1 Joel, chapter i., verses 1-12. JOHN BOYLE O'REILLY. BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH.^ John Boyle O'Reilly was born on June 28, 1844, in Dowth Castle, four miles above the town of Drogheda, Ire- land. His parents were cultured and talented. He inher- ited a good constitution, and was passionately fond of out- of-door sports. Among the boys of his neighborhood no one was more daring or skilful than the handsome, rosy-cheeked, curly-haired, dark-eyed John. At the age of eleven he left home to become an apprentice in the printing-office of the Drogheda Aligns, at a salary of two shillings and sixpence a week, which did not include board and lodging ; his salary was increased sixpence a week every year. After nearly four years of service the death of his em- ployer released him from the obligations of his apprentice- ship. In 1859 he went to Preston, England, the home of his uncle. Captain Watkinson, where he obtained a situation as an apprentice in the office of the Guardian. Three years later he graduated from the printer's case and became a reporter, having learned shorthand and otherwise equipped himself for the work of a journalist. In March, 1863, he obeyed a call from his father to return home to Ireland. He had become deeply imbued with the revolutionary principles then so freely adopted by patriotic Irishmen. It 1 The information given in this brief sketch has been gleaned from the Life of John Boyle O'Reilly, by James Jeffrey Roche, published by the Cassell Publishing Company, of New York. 200 JOHN BOYLE O'REILLY. was hoped that disaffection would be sowed in the ranks of the British army, of which more than thirty per cent were Irishmen. Accordingly in May, 1863, O'Reilly enlisted as a trooper in the Tenth Hussars, where he became a model soldier, quick to learn and punctual to obey orders. In February, 1866, he was arrested on the charge of " having at Dublin in January, 1866, come to the knowledge of an intended mutiny in Her Majesty's Forces in Ireland, and not giving information of said intended mutiny to his com- manding officer." On June 27th, of the same year, the day preceding his twenty-second birthday, his trial by court- martial began. On July 9, 1866, formal sentence of death was passed upon him. The same day the sentence was com- muted to life imprisonment, and afterwards to twenty years' penal servitude. For about fifteen months he was confined in the prisons of Mountjoy, Pentonville, Millbank, Chatham, Portsmouth, Dartmoor, and Portland. He suffered in- tensely from poor food, hard work, foul air, and inhuman jailers. He made two unsuccessful attempts to escape, for which he was severely punished by solitary confinement and a diet of bread and water. In October, 1867, he and sixty-two other political prison- ers were embarked on the Hougoumont for Australia. His popularity among the guards secured for him kindly treat- ment on the voyage. He arrived at Freemantle on the morning of January 10, 1868, and four weeks later was sent to Bunbury, thirty miles away, where he led the life of a convict among some of the most degraded of humankind — murderers, burglars, offenders of every grade and color of vice. But ill fortune instead of blighting had nourished in him the growth of the instincts of pure humanity. He soon won the respect of the officer over him, became of assistance in clerical work, and was appointed a " constable," or aid to an officer in charge of a working party. Not long after the following advertisement appeared in the Police Gazette of Western Australia : — BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. 201 ABSCONDERS. 20 — John B. O'Reilly, registered No. 9843, imperial convict; arrived in the colony per convict ship Hougoumont in 1868 ; sen- tenced to twenty years, 9th July, 1866. Description — Healthy appearance ; present age 25 years ; 5 feet 7^ inches high, black hair, brown eyes, oval visage, dark complexion : an Irishman. Absconded from Convict Road Party, Bunbury, on the 18th of February, 1869. O'Reilly had escaped through the Bush to the seashore, and after a disappointing delay and much suffering from hunger and thirst he was taken on board the Gazelle, a New Bedford whaler commanded by Captain Gifford. Two months later, in the harbor of Roderique, he escaped cap- ture through a well-planned ruse of his friend, Mr. Hatha- way, the third mate of the Gazelle. To avoid the danger of capture at St. Helena, the next port for the Gazelle, O'Reilly was reluctantly transferred, by Captain Gifford, on July 29th, to the Sapphire, of Boston, bound for Liverpool. After a short stay at Liverpool he embarked as third mate on the Bombay, and on November 23, 1869, landed at Philadelphia. His first act after landing was to present himself before the United States District Court and take out his first naturalization papers. He soon went to New York, where by the invitation of the Fenians he delivered a lecture to over two thousand persons at the Cooper Institute, on December 16, 1869. We next find him in Boston as clerk in the office of the Inman Line Steamship Company. After four or five weeks of satisfactory work he was discharged by orders received from the general office of the company in England, whither news had been sent that John Boyle O'Reilly, an escaped convict, was in the employment of the company at Boston. In the spring of 1870, after having lectured successfully in Boston, Providence, Salem, Law- rence, and other places, he was employed by Mr. Donahoe, the editor and proprietor of the Boston Pilot, as a reporter 202 JOHN BOYLE O'REILLY, and general writer. In June, 1870, he took part in the in- vasion of Canada by the Fenians, as war-correspondent of the Pilot. His frank criticism of friends and foes at this time, and his wise and temperate reports to the Pilot at- tracted much attention. In February, 1876, O'Reilly, in his thirty-second year, became one of the proprietors of the Pilot. In 1879 he was President of the Papyrus Club, which he had helped to found, and also of the Boston Press Club. His literary work was not confined to the Pilot. He made many contri- butions, in both poetry and prose, to some of the leading magazines of the United States, and delivered a number of notable addresses on public occasions. A large part of his poems found a permanent form in the volumes entitled Songs of the Southern Seas, The Statues in the Block and In Bohemia. He also published Moondyne, a novel, and some other books. His reputation as an editor, lecturer, poet, and leader of the Irish-American people continued to increase until his death, which occurred on the night of August 9, 1890. On August 15, 1872, he was married to Miss Mary Mur- phy, of Charlestown, Massachusetts. They had four daugh- ters, all of whom survived their father. Of the many noble poems written by Mr. O'Reilly, the Pilgrim Fathers, read August 1, 1889, at the dedication of the national monument to the Pilgrim Fathers at Plymouth, Massachusetts, is described as the crowning work of his life as an American singer. This poem is given in full in the following pages. THE PILGRIM FATHERS. One righteous word for Law — the common will ; One living truth of Faith — God regnant still ; One primal test of Freedom — all combined ; One sacred Revolution — change of mind ; One trust unfailing for the night and need — • 5 The tyrant-flower shall cast the freedom-seed. So held they firm, the Fathers aye to be, From home to Holland, Holland to the sea ; Pilgrims for manhood, in their little ship, Hope in each heart and prayer on every lip. 10 They could not live by king-made codes and creeds ; They chose the path where every footstep bleeds. Protesting, not rebelling ; scorned and banned ; Through pains and prisons harried from the land ; Through double exile, — till at last they stand is Apart from all, — unique, unworldly, true, Selected grain to sow the earth anew ; A winnowed part, a saving remnant they ; Dreamers who work, adventurers who pray ! What vision led them? Can we test their prayers? 20 Who knows they saw no, empire in the West ? The later Puritans sought land and gold, And all the treasures that the Spaniard told ; What line divides the Pilgrims from the rest ? We know them by the exile that was theirs ; 25 Their justice, faith, and fortitude attest ; 204 JOHN BOYLE O'REILLY. And those long years in Holland, when their band Sought humble living in a stranger's land. They saw their England covered with a weed Of flaunting lordship both in court and creed. 3o With helpless hands they watched the error grow, Pride on the top and impotence below ; Indulgent nobles, privileged and strong, A haughty crew to whom all rights belong ; The bishops arrogant, the courts impure, 35 The rich conspirators against the poor ; The peasant scorned, the artisan despised ; The all-supporting workers lowest prized. They marked those evils deepen year by year : The pensions grow, the freeholds disappear, Till England meant but monarch, prelate, peer. At last the Conquest ! Now they know the word : The Saxon tenant and the Norman lord ! No longer Merrie England : now it meant The payers and the takers of the rent ; 45 And rent exacted not from lands alone — All rights and hopes must centre in the throne : Law-tithes for prayer — their souls were not their own ! Then o'er the brim the bitter waters welled ; The mind protested and the soul rebelled. 50 And yet, how deep the bowl, how slight the flow ! A few brave exiles from their country go ; A few strong souls whose rich affections cling, Though cursed by clerics, hunted by the king ; Their last sad vision on the Grimsby strand 55 Their wives and children kneeling on the sand. Then twelve slow years in Holland — changing years — THE PILGRIM FATHERS. 205 Strange ways of life — strange voices in their ears ; The growing children learning foreign speech ; And growing, too, within the heart of each 60 A thought of further exile — of a home In some far land — a home for life and death By their hands built, in equity and faith. And then the preparation — the heart-beat Of wayfarers who may not rest their feet ; es Their pastor's blessing — the farewells of some Who stayed in Leyden. Then the sea's wide blue : "They sailed," writ one, "and as they sailed the}; knew That they were Pilgrims ! " On the wintry main God flings their lives as farmers scatter grain. to His breath propels the winged seed afloat ; His tempests swerve to spare the fragile boat ; Before his prompting terrors disappear ; He points the way while patient seamen steer ; Till port is reached, nor North, nor South, but HERE ! 75 Here, where the shore was rugged as the waves, Where frozen nature dumb and leafless lay. And no rich meadows bade the Pilgrims stay, Was spread the symbol of the life that saves : To conquer first the outer things ; to make so Their own advantage, unallied, unbound ; Their blood the mortar, building from the ground ; Their cares the statutes, making all anew ; To learn to trust the many, not the few ; To bend the mind to discipline ; to break as 206 JOHN BOYLE O'REILLY, The bonds of old convention, and forget The claims and barriers of class ; to face A desert land, a strange and hostile race, And conquer both to friendship by the debt That nature pays to justice, love, and toil. 90 Here, on this rock, and on this sterile soil. Began the kingdom not of kings, but men : Began the making of the world again. Here centuries sank, and from the hither brink A new world reached and raised an old-world link, 95 When English hands, by wider vision taught. Threw down the feudal bars the Normans brought. And here revived, in spite of sword and stake. Their ancient freedom of the Wapentake ! Here struck the seed — the Pilgrims' roofless town, 100 W^here equal rights and equal bonds were set. Where all the people equal-f ranchised met ; Where doom was writ of privilege and crown ; Where human breath blew all the idols down ; Where crests were nought, where vulture flags were furled, 105 And common men began to own the world ! All 23raise to others of the vanguard then ! To Spain, to France ; to Baltimore and Penn ; To Jesuit, Quaker, Puritan and Priest ; Their toil be crowned, their honors be increased ! no We slight no true devotion, steal no fame From other shrines to gild the Pilgrims' name. As time selects, we judge their treasures heaped ; Their deep foundations laid ; their harvests reaped; Their primal mode of liberty ; their rules n5 Of civil right ; their churches, courts, and schools ; THE PILGRIM FATHERS. 207 Their freedom's very secret here laid down, — The spring of government is the little town ! They knew that streams must follow to a spring ; And no stream flows from township to a king. 120 Give praise to others, early-come or late, For love and labor on our ship of state ; But this must stand above all fame and zeal : The Pilgrim Fathers laid the ribs and keel. On their strong lines we base our social health, — 125 The man — the home — the town — the commonwealth ! Unconscious builders ? Yea : the conscious fail I Design is impotent if Nature frown. No deathless pile has grown from intellect. Immortal things have God for architect, i30 And men are but the granite he lays down. Unconscious ? Yea ! They thought it might avail To build a gloomy creed about their lives, To shut out all dissent ; but naught survives Of their poor structure ; and we know to-day 135 Their mission was less pastoral than lay — More Nation-seed than Gospel-seed were they ! The faith was theirs : the time had other needs. The salt they bore must^weeten worldly deeds. There was a meaning in the very wind 140 That blew them here, so few, so poor, so strong. To grapple concrete work, not abstract wrong. Their saintly Robinson was left behind To teach by gentle memory ; to shame The bigot spirit and the word of flame ; 145 To write dear mercy in the Pilgrims' law ; To lead to that wide faith his soul foresaw, — That no rejected race in darkness delves ; 208 JOHN BOYLE O'REILLY. There are no Gentiles, but they make themselves ; That men are one of blood and one of spirit ; i5o That one is as the whole, and all inherit ! On all the story of a life or race, The blessing of a good man leaves its trace. Their Pastor's word at Ley den here sufficed : " But follow me as I have followed Christ ! " 155 And, " I believe there is more truth to come ! " O gentle soul, what future age shall sum The sweet incentive of thy tender word ! Thy sigh to hear of conquest by the sword ; " How happy to convert, and not to slay ! " leo When valiant Standish killed the chief at bay. To such as thee the fathers owe their fame ; The nation owes a temple to thy name. Thy teaching made the Pilgrims kindly, free, — All that the later Puritans should be. les Thy pious instinct marks their destiny. Thy love won more than force or arts adroit, — It writ and kept the deed with Massasoit ; It earned the welcome Samoset expressed ; It lived again in Eliot's loving breast ; no It filled the Compact which the Pilgrims signed — Immortal scroll ! the first where men combined From one deep lake of common blood to draw All rulers, rights, and potencies of law. When waves of ages have their motive spent 175 Thy sermon preaches in this Monument, Where Virtue, Courage, Law, and Learning sit ; Calm Faith above them, grasping Holy Writ ; White hand upraised o'er beauteous, trusting eyes, And pleading finger pointing to the skies ! iso THE PILGRIM FATHERS. 209 The past is theirs, the future ours ; and we Must learn and teach. Oh, may our record be Like theirs, a glory, symboUed in a stone. To speak as this speaks, of our labors done. They had no model ; but they left us one. iss Severe they were ; but let him cast the stone Who Christ's dear love dare measure with his own. Their strict professions were not cant nor pride. Who calls them narrow, let his soul be wide I Austere, exclusive — ay, but with their faults, i9o Their golden probity mankind exalts. They never lied in practice, peace, or strife ; They were no hypocrites ; their faith was clear ; They feared too much some sins men ought to fear : The lordly arrogance and avarice, ws And vain frivolity's besotting vice ; The stern enthusiasm of their life Impelled too far, and weighed poor nature down ; They missed God's smile, perhaps, to watch his frown. But he who digs for faults shall resurrect 200 Their manly virtues born of self-respect. How sum their merits ? They were true and brave ; They broke no compact and they owned no slave. They had no servile order, no dumb throat ; They trusted first the universal vote ; 205 The first were they to practice and instil The rule of law and not the rule of will ; They lived one noble test ; who would be freed Must give up all to follow duty's lead. They made no revolution based on blows, 210 But taught one truth that all the planet knows, That all men think of, looking on a throne — The people may be trusted with their own ! 210 JOHN BOYLE O'REILLY. In every land wherever might holds sway The Pilgrims' leaven is at work to-day. 215 The Mayflower's cabin was the chosen womb Of light predestined for the nations' gloom. God grant that those who tend the sacred flame May worthy prove of their Forefathers' name. More light has come, — more dangers, too, perplex : 220 New prides, new greeds, our high condition vex. The Fathers fled from feudal lords, and made. A freehold state ; may we not retrograde To lucre-lords and hierarchs of trade. May we, as they did, teach in court and school, 225 There must be classes, but no class shall r^ile ; The sea is sweet, and rots not like the pool. Though vast the token of our future glory. Though tongue of man hath told not such a story, — Surpassing Plato's dream, More's phantasy, — still we 230 Have no new principles to keep us free. As Nature works with changeless grain on grain, The truths the Fathers taught we need again. Depart from this, though we may crowd our shelves. With codes and precepts for each lapse and flaw, 235 And patch our moral leaks with statute law, We cannot be protected from ourselves ! Still must we keep in every stroke and vote •The law of conscience that the Pilgrims wrote ; Our seal their secret : Liberty can be ; 240 The State is freedom if the Town is free. The death of nations in their work began ; They sowed the seed of federated Man. Dead nations were but robber-holds ; and we The first battalion of Humanity ! 245 All living nations, while our eagles shine, THE PILGRIM FATHERS. 211 One after one, shall swing into our line ; Our freeborn heritage shall be the guide And bloodless order of their regicide ; The sea shall join, not limit ; mountains stand 250 Dividing farm from farm, not land from land. O people's Voice ! when farthest thrones shall hear ; When teachers own ; when thoughtful rabbis know ; When artist minds in world-wide symbol show ; When serfs and soldiers their mute faces raise ; 255 When priests on grand cathedral altars praise ; When pride and arrogance shall disappear, The Pilgrims' Vision is accomplished here ! JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. James Russell Lowell was born February 22, 1819, at Elmwood, Cambridge, Massachusetts, in the house where he died August 12, 1891. His early life was spent in Cam- bridge, and he has sketched many of the scenes in it very delightfully in Cambridge Thirty Years Ago, in his volume of Fireside Travels, as well as in his early poem, A71 Indian Summer Reverie. His father was a Congregationalist min- ister of Boston, and the family to which he belonged has had a strong representation in Massachusetts. His grandfather, John Lowell, was an eminent jurist, the Lowell Institute of Boston owes its endowment to John Lowell, a cousin of the poet, and the city of Lowell was named after Francis Cabot Lowell, an uncle, who was one of the first to begin the man- ufacturing of cotton in New England. Lowell was a student at Harvard, and was graduated in 1838, when he gave a class poem, and in 1841 his first vol- ume of poems, A Year's Life, was published. His bent from the beginning was more decidedly literary than that of any contemporary American poet. That is to say, the his- tory and art of literature divided his interest with the pro- duction of literature, and he carries the unusual gift of rare critical power, joined to hearty, spontaneous creation. It may indeed be guessed that the keenness of judgment and incisiveness of wit which characterize his examination of lit- erature have sometimes interfered with his poetic power. 214 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. and made him liable to question liis strt when he would rather have expressed it unchecked. In connection with Robert Carter, a litterateur who has lately died, he began, in 1843, the publication of The Flotieer, a Literarij and Critical Magazine, which lived a brilliant life of three months. A volume of poetry followed in 1844, and the next year he published Conversations on Some of the Old Foets, — a book which is now out of print, but interesting as marking the enthusiasm of a young scholar, treading a way then almost wholly neglected in America, and intimat- ing a line of thought and study in which he afterward made most noteworthy ventures. Another series of poems fol- lowed in 1848, and in the same year The Vision of Sir Launfal. Perhaps it was in reaction from the marked sen- timent of his poetry that he issued now a jeu d' esprit, A Fable for Critics, in which he hit off, with a rough and ready wit, the characteristics of the writers of the day, not forgetting himself in these lines : — " There is Lowell, who 's striving Parnassus to climb With a whole bale of isms tied together with rhyme ; He might get on alone, spite of brambles and boulders, But he can't with that bundle he has on his shoulders ; The top of the hill he will ne'er come nigh reaching Till he learns the distinction 'twixt singing and preaching ; His lyre has some chords that would ring pretty well, But he 'd rather by half make a drum of tlie shell, And rattle away till he 's old as Methusalem, At the head of a march to the last new Jerusalem." This, of course, is but a half serious portrait of himself, and it touches but a single feature ; others can say better that Lowell's ardent nature showed itself in the series of satirical poems which made him famous, The Biglow Fa- pers, written in a spirit of indignation and fine scorn, when the Mexican War was causing many Americans to blush with shame at the use of the country by a class for its own ignoble ends. The true patriotism which marked these and BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. 215 other of his early poems burned with a steady glow in after years, and illumined poems of which we shall speak pres- ently. After a year and a half spent in travel, Lowell was ap- pointed in 1855 to the Belles Lettres professorship at Har- vard, previously held by Longfellow. When the Atlantic Montlily was estabhshed in 1857 he became its editor, and soon after relinquishing that post he assumed part editorship of the North AmeriGa7i Bevieiv. Li these two magazines, as also in Putnam's Monthly, he published poems, essays, and critical papers, which have been gathered into vol- umes. His prose writings, besides the volumes already mentioned, include two series of Among my Books, histori- cal and critical studies, chiefly in English literature ; and My Study Windows, including, with similar subjects, obser- vations of nature and contemporary life. During the war for the Union he published a second series of the Bigloiv Papers, in which, with the wit and fun of the earlier series, there was mingled a deeper strain of feeling and a larger tone of patriotism. The limitations of his style in these sa- tires forbade the fullest expression of his thought and emo- tion ; but afterward in a succession of poems, occasioned by the honors paid to student-soldiers in Cambridge, the death of Agassiz, and the celebration of national anniversaries during the years 1875 and 1876, he sang in loftier, more ardent strains. The interest which readers have in Lowell is still divided between his rich, abundant prose, and his thoughtful, often passionate verse. The sentiment of his early poetry, always humane, was greatly enriched by larger experience ; so that the themes which he chose for his later work demanded and received a broad treatment, full of sympathy with the most generous instincts of their time, and built upon historic foundations. In 1877 he went to Spain as Minister Plenipotentiary. In 1880 he was transferred to England as Minister Pleni- potentiary near the Court of St. James. His duties as 216 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. American Minister did not prevent him from producing oc- casional writings, chiefly in connection with public events. Notable among these are his address at the unveiling of a statue of Fielding, and his address on Democracy. Mr. Lowell returned to the United States in 1885, and was not afterward engaged in public affairs, but passed the rest of his life quietly in his Cambridge home, prevented by failing health from doing much literary work. He made a collection of his later poems in 1888, under the title Heartsease and Rue, and carefully revised his complete works, published in ten volumes in 1890. BOOKS AND LIBRARIES. AN ADDRESS GIVEN AT THE OPENING OF THE FREE PUB- LIC LIBRARY IN CHELSEA, MASS., 22 DECEMBER, 1885. A FEW years ago my friend, Mr. Alexander Ire- land, published a very interesting volume whicli he called The Book -Lovers Enchiridion, the hand- book,i that is to say, of those who love books. It was made up of extracts from the writings of a great variety of distinguished men, ancient and modern, in praise of books. It was a chorus of many voices in many tongues, a hymn of gratitude and praise, full of such piety and fervor as can be paralleled only in songs dedicated to the supreme Power, the supreme Wisdom, and the supreme Love. Nay, there is a glow of enthusiasm and sincerity in it which is often pain- fully wanting in those other too commonly mechani- cal compositions. We feel at once that here it is out of the fulness of the heart, yes, and of the head too, that the mouth speaketh. Here was none of that compulsory commonplace which is wont to charac- terize those " testimonials of celebrated authors," by means of which publishers sometimes strive to linger out the passage of a hopeless book toward its requi- escat 2 in oblivion. These utterances which Mr. Ire- 1 Handbook is a translation of the Greek word enchiridion. 2 It was once more common than now to place upon tomb- stones the Latin words Requiescat in pace: May he rest in peace. 218 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. land has gathered lovingly together are stamped with that spontaneousness which is the mint-mark of all sterling speech. It is true that they are mostly, as is only natural, the utterances of literary men, and there is a well-founded proverbial distrust of herring that bear only the brand of the packer, and not that of the sworn inspector. But to this objection a cynic might answer with the question, " Are authors so prone, then, to praise the works of other people that we are to doubt them when they do it unasked ? " Perhaps the wisest thing I could have done to-night would have been to put upon the stand some of the more weighty of this cloud of v/itnesses. But since your invitation implied that I should myself say something, I will endeavor to set before you a few of the commonplaces of the occasion, as they may be modified by passing through my own mind, or by hav- ing made themselves felt in my own experience. The greater part of Mr. Ireland's witnesses testify to the comfort and consolation they owe to books, to the refuge they have found in them from sorrow or misfortune, to their friendship, never estranged and outliving all others. This testimony they volunteered. Had they been asked, they would have borne evi- dence as willingly to the higher and more general uses of books in their service to the commonwealth, as well as to the indi\ddual man. Consider, for example, how a single page of Burke may emancipate the young student of politics from narrow views and merely contemporaneous judgments. ^ Our English ancestors, with that common-sense which is one of the 1 An interesting reference to Burke as a political thinker will be found in Mr. Lowell's paper, The Place of the Independent in Politics, in his volume of Political Essays. BOOKS AND LIBRARIES. 219 most useful, though not one of the most engaging, properties of the race, made a rhyming proverb, which says that — " When land and goods are gone and spent Then learning is most excellent ; " and this is true so far as it goes, though it goes per- haps hardly far enough. The law also calls only the earth and what is immovably attached to it real ^ property, but I am of opinion that those only are real possessions which abide with a man after he has been stripped of those others falsely so called, and which alone save him from seeming and from being the mis- erable forked radish to which the bitter scorn of Lear degraded every child of Adam.^ The riches of schol- arship, the benignities of literature, defy fortune and outlive calamity. They are beyond the reach of thief or moth or rust. As they cannot be inherited, so they cannot be alienated. But they may be shared, they may be distributed, and it is the object and office of a free public library to perform these beneficent functions. " Books," says Wordsworth, " are a real world," ^ and he was thinking, doubtless, of such books as are not merely the triumphs of pure intellect, however supreme, but of those in which intellect infused with the sense of beauty aims rather to produce delight than conviction, or, if conviction, then through intui- tion rather than formal logic, and, leaving what Donne wisely calls — ^ What is personal property or estate, as distinguished from real ? 2 See King Lear, Act III. sc. 4 ; but see King Henry IV.y Part IL, Act III. sc. 2. ^ In what poem ? 220 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. " Uncoucerning things, matters of fact," ^ to science and the understanding, seeks to give ideal expression to those abiding realities of the spiritual world for which the outward and visible world serves at best but as the husk and symbol. Am I wrong in using the word realities ? wrong in insisting on the distinction between the real and the actual ? in assum- ing for the ideal an existence as absolute and self- subsistent as that which appeals to our senses, nay, so often cheats them, in the matter of fact ? How very small a part of the world we truly live in is represented by what speaks to us through the senses when compared with that vast realm of the mind which is peopled by memory and imagination, and with such shining inhabitants ! These walls, these faces, what are they in comparison with the countless images, the innumerable population which every one of us can summon up to the tiny show-box of the brain, in material breadth scarce a span, yet infinite as space and time ? and in what, I pray, are those we gravely call historical characters, of which each new historian strains his neck to o:et a new and different view, in any sense more real than the personages of fiction ? Do not serious and earnest men discuss 1 A line in the poem Of the Progress of the Soul. The passage should be read in full. " We see in authors, too stiff to recant, A hundred controversies of an ant ; And yet one watches, starves, freezes, and sweats, To know but catechisms and alphabets Of uncoucerning things, matters of fact, How others on our stage their parts did act, Wliat Ciesar did, yea, and what Cicero said : Wliy grass is green, or why oiir blood is red, Are mysteries which none have reached unto ; In this low form, poor soul, what wilt thou do ? Oh ! when wilt thou shake off this pedantry, Of being taught by sense and fantasy ? " BOOKS AND LIBRARIES. 221 Hamlet as they would Cromwell or Lincoln? Does Caesar, does Alaric, liold existence by any other or stronger tenure than the Christian of Bunyan, or the Don Quixote o£ Cervantes, or the Antigone of Sopho- cles ? Is not the history which is luminous because of an indwelling and perennial truth to nature, be- cause of that light which never was on sea or land,^ really more true, in the highest sense, than many a weary chronicle with names and date and place in which " an Amu rath to Amurath succeeds " ? Do we know as much of any authentic Danish prince as of Hamlet ? But to come back a little nearer to Chelsea and the occasion that has called us togethei-. The founders of New England, if sometimes, when they found it needful, an impracticable, were always a practical people. Their first care, no doubt, was for an ade- quate supply of powder, and they encouraged the manufacture of musket bullets by enacting that they should pass as currency at a farthing each, — a coin- age nearer to its nominal value and not heavier than some with which we are familiar. Their second care was that " good learning should not perish from among us," and to this end they at once established the Grammar (Latin) School^ in Boston, and soon after the college at Cambridge. The nucleus of this was, as you all know, the bequest in money by John Har- vard. Hardly less important, however, was the legacy of his library, a collection of good books, inconsider- ^ See Wordsworth's poem, Elegiac Stanzas suggested by a Picture of Peele Castle in a Storm. ^ An interesting account of this school may be read in The Oldest School in America, containing a notable historical address by Phillips Brooks. 222 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. able measured by the standard of to-day, but very considerable then as the possession of a private per- son. From that little acorn what an oak has sprung, and from its acorns again what a vocal forest, as old Howell would have called it! — old Howell, whom I love to cite, because his name gave their title to the Essays of Mia,^ and is borne with slight variation by one of the most delightful of modern authors. It was, in my judgment, those two foundations, more than anything else, which gave to New England char- acter its bent, and to Boston that literary supremacy which, I am told, she is in danger of losing, but which she will not lose till she and all the world lose Holmes. The opening of a free public library,^ then, is a most important event in the history of any town. A college training is an excellent thing ; but, after all, the better part of every man's education is that which he gives himself, and it is for this that a good library should furnish the opportunity and the means. I have sometimes thought that our public schools undertook to teach too much, and that the older system,' which taught merely the three R's, and taught them well, leaving natural selection to decide who should go farther, was the better. However this may be, all 1 Mr. Lowell here conjectures that Lamb, who was at home in quamt English literature, adopted his signature of Elia from the Epistolce Ho-Eliance of James Howell, a writer of the former half of the seventeenth century ; but Lamb himself, in a letter to his publishers, states that he took the name of Elia, which he tells them to pronounce Ellia, from a former fellow-clerk of his at the India House, an Italian named Elia. 2 It would be an interesting study for any one to trace the rise and growth of public libraries in the United States. Abun- dant material will be found in a Special Report issued by the Bureau of Education at Washington in 1876. BOOKS AND LIBRARIES. 223 that is primarily needful in order to use a library is the ability to read. I say primarily, for there must also be the inclination, and, after that, some guidance in reading well. Formerly the duty of a librarian was considered too much that of a watch-dog, to keep people as much as possible away from the books, and to hand these over to his successor as little worn by use as he could. Librarians now, it is pleasant to see, have a different notion of their trust, and are in the habit of preparing, for the direction of the inexperi- enced, lists of such books as they think best worth reading. Cataloguing has also, thanks in great mea- sure to American librarians, become a science, and catalogues, ceasing to be labyrinths without a clew, are furnished with finger-posts at every turn. Sub- ject catalogues again save the beginner a vast deal of time and trouble by supplying him for nothing with one at least of the results of thorough scholarship, the knowing where to look for what he wants. I do not mean by this that there is or can be any short cut to learning, but that there may be, and is, such a short cut to information that will make learning more easily accessible. But have you ever rightly considered what the mere ability to read means ? That it is the key which ad- mits us to the whole world of thought and fancy and imagination ? to the company of saint and sage, of the wisest and the wittiest at their wisest and wittiest mo- ment? That it enables us to see with the keenest eyes, hear with the finest ears, and listen to the sweet- est voices of all time ? More than that, it annihilates time and space for us; it revives for us without a miracle the Age of Wonder, endowing us with the shoes of swiftness and the cap of darkness, so that we 224 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. walk invisible like Fern-seed,^ and witness unharmed the plague ^ at Athens or Florence or London ; ac- company Caesar on his marches, or look in on Catiline in council with his fellow-conspirators, or Guy Fawkes in the cellar of St. Stephen's. We often hear of peo- ple who will descend to any servility, submit to any insult, for the sake of getting themselves or their chil- dren into what is euphemistically called good society. Did it ever occur to them that there is a select society of all the centuries to which they and theirs can be admitted for the asking, a society, too, which will not involve them in ruinous expense, and still more ruin- ous waste of time and health and faculties ? Southey tells us that, in his walk one stormy day, he met an old woman, to whom, by way of greeting, he made the rather obvious remark that it was dread- ful weather. She answered, philosophically, that, in her opinion, " any weather was better than none ! " I should be half inclined to say that any reading was better than none, allaying the crudeness of the state- ment by the Yankee proverb, which tells us that, though " all deacons are good, there 's odds in dea- cons." Among books, certainly, there is much variety of company, ranging from the best to the worst, from Plato to Zola ; and the first lesson in reading well is that which teaches us to distinguish between litera- ture and merely printed matter. The choice lies wholly with ourselves. We have the key put into our hands; shall we unlock the pantry or the ora- ^ Any good collection of fairy tales will enable one to re- count the stories which make use of the shoes, the cap, and the fern-seed. ^ Thucydides describes the plague at Athens ; Defoe, the plague at London. BOOKS AND LIBRARIES, 225 tory? There is a Wallachian legend which, like most of the figments of popular fancy, has a moral in it. One Bakala, a good-for-nothing kind of fellow in his way, having had the luck to offer a sacrifice espe- cially well pleasing to God, is taken up into heaven. He finds the Almighty sitting in something like the best room of a Wallachian peasant's cottage — there is always a profound pathos in the homeliness of the popular imagination, forced, like the princess in the fairy tale, to weave its semblance of gold tissue out of straw. On being asked what reward he desires for the good service he has done, Bakala, who had always passionately longed to be the owner of a bag- pipe, seeing a half worn-out one lying among some rubbish in a corner of the room, begs eagerly that it may be bestowed on him. The Lord, with a smile of pity at the meanness of his choice, grants him his boon, and Bakala goes back to earth delighted with his prize. With an infinite possibility within his reach, with the choice of wisdom, of power, of beauty at his tongue's end, he asked according to his kind, and his sordid wish is answered with a gift as sordid. Yes, there is a choice in books as in friends, and the mind sinks or rises to the level of its habitual society, is subdued, as Shakespeare says of the dyer's hand, to what it works in.^ Cato's advice, cum bonis am- hula (consort with the good), is quite as true if we extend it to books, for they, too, insensibly give away their own nature to the mind that converses with them. They either beckon upwards or drag down. Du gleichst dem Geist den du hegreifat? says the World Spirit to Faust, and this is true of the ascend- ^ Sonnet cxi. 2 Thou'rt like the Spirit whom thou conceivest. 226 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. ing no less than of the descending scale. Every book we read may be made a round in the ever-lengthen- ing ladder by which we climb to knowledge, and to that temperance and serenity of mind which, as it is the ripest fruit of Wisdom, is also the sweetest. But this can only be if we read such books as make us think, and read them in such a way as helps them to do so, that is, by endeavoring to judge them, and thus to make them an exercise rather than a relaxation of the mind. Desultory reading, except as conscious pastime, hebetates the brain and slackens the bow- string of Will. It communicates as little intelligence as the messages that run along the telegraph wire to the birds that perch on it. Few men learn the high- est use of books. After lifelong study many a man discovers too late that to have had the philosopher's stone availed nothing without the philosopher to use it. Many a scholarly life, stretched like a talking wire to bring the wisdom of antiquity into communion with the present, can at last yield us no better news that the true accent of a Greek verse, or the transla- tion of some filthy nothing scrawled on the walls of a brothel by some Pompeian idler. And it is cer- tainly true that the material of thought reacts upon the thought itself. Shakespeare himself would have been commonplace had he been paddocked in a thinly- shaven vocabulary, and Phidias, had he worked in wax, only a more inspired Mrs. Jarley. A man is known, says the proverb, by the company he keeps, and not only so, but made by it. Milton makes his fallen angels grow small to enter the infernal council room,^ but the soul, which God meant to be the spa- cious chamber where high thoughts and generous aspi- 1 See Paradise Lout, Book I. lines 775-798. BOOKS AND LIBRARIES. 227 rations might commune together, shrinks and narrows itself to the measure of the meaner company that is wont to gather there, hatching conspiracies against our better selves. We are apt to wonder at the scholarship of the men of three centuries ago, and at a certain dignity of phrase that characterizes them. They were scholars because they did not read so many things as we. They had fewer books, but these were of the best. Their speech was noble because they lunched with Plutarch and supped with Plato. We spend as much time over print as they did, but in- stead of communing with the choice thoughts of choice spirits, and unconsciously acquiring the grand manner of that supreme society, we diligently inform ourselves, and cover the continent with a cobweb of telegraphs to inform us, of such inspiring facts as that a horse belonging to Mr. Smith ran away on Wednesday, seriously damaging a valuable carryall ; that a son of Mr. Brown swallowed a hickory nut on Thursday ; and that a gravel bank caved in and buried Mr. Eobinson alive on Friday. Alas, it is we ourselves that are getting buried alive under this avalanche of earthy impertinences! It is we who, while we might each in his humble way be helping our fellows into the right path, or adding one block to the climbing spire of a fine soul, are willing to become mere sponges saturated from the stagnant goose-pond of village gossip. This is the kind of news we compass the globe to catch, fresh from Bung- town Centre, when we might have it fresh from heaven by the electric lines of poet or prophet ! ^ It is ^ It might not be uninstructive for one to make such compu- tations as these : How much time does it take to read my cus- tomary local newspaper ? What is the shortest time I can give 228 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. bad enough that we should be compelled to know so many nothings, but it is downright intolerable that we must wash so many barrow-loads of gravel to find a grain of mica after all. And then to be told that the ability to read makes us all shareholdefs in the Bonanza Mine of Universal Intelligence ! One is sometimes asked by young people to recom- mend a course of reading. My advice would be that they should confine themselves to the supreme books in whatever literature, or still better to choose some one great author, and make themselves thoroughly familiar with him. For, as all roads lead to Rome, so do they likewise lead away from it, and you will find that, in order to understand perfectly and weigh exactly any vital piece of literature, you will be gradually and pleasantly persuaded to excursions and explorations of which you little dreamed when you began, and will find yourselves scholars before you are aware. For remember that there is nothing less profitable than scholarship for the mere sake of scholarship, nor anything more wearisome in the at- tainment. But the moment you have a definite aim, attention is quickened, the mother of memory, and all that you acquire groups and arranges itself in an order that is lucid, because everywhere and always it is in intelligent relation to a central object of con- stant and growing interest. This method also forces upon us the necessity of thinking, which is, after all, to it and get the really important things out of it ? How many numbers of my newspaper would correspond in time of reading with Shakespeare's Tempest ? How much should I remember of the papers a month afterward ? how much of The Tempest ? But newspapers are not to be despised ; only we are to study econ- omy in the using of them. BOOKS AND LIBRARIES. 229 the highest result of all education. For what we want is not learning, but knowledge ; that is, the power to make learning answer its true end as a quickener of intelligence and a widener of our intel- lectual sympathies. I do not mean to say that every one is fitted by nature or inclination for a definite course of study, or indeed for serious study in any sense. I am quite willing that these should " browse in a library," as Dr. Johnson called it, to their hearts' content. It is, perhaps, the only way in which time may be profitably wasted. But desultory reading will not make a '^ full man," as Bacon understood it, of one who has not Johnson's memory, his power of assimilation, and, above all, his comprehensive view of the relations of things. " Read not," says Lord Bacon in his Essay of Studies,^ " to contradict and confute ; nor to believe and take for granted ; nor to find talk and discourse ; but to weigh and consider. Some books are to be tasted, others to be swallowed, and some few to be chewed and digested ; that is, some books are to be read only in parts ; others to be read, but not curiously [carefully], and some few to be read wholly and with diligence and attention. Some hooks also may he read hy deputy T This is weighty and well said, and I would call your attention especially to the wise words with which the passage closes. The best books are not always those which lend themselves to discussion and comment, but those (like Mon- taigne's Essays) which discuss and comment our- selves. I have been speaking of such books as should be ^ It is in this essay that the reference to the " full man " occurs, and as the essay is not long, it would be a good one to commit to memory. 230 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. chosen for profitable reading. A public library, of course, must be far wider in its scope. It should con- tain something for all tastes, as well as the material for a thorough grounding in all branches of know- ledge. It should be rich in books of reference, in encyclopaedias,^ where one may learn without cost of research what things are generally known. For it is far more useful to know these than to know those that are 7iot generally known. Not to know them is the defect of those half-trained and therefore hasty men who find a mare's nest on every branch of the tree of knowledge. A library should contain ample stores of history, which, if it do not always deserve the pomp- ous title which Bolingbroke gave it, of philosophy teaching by example,^ certainly teaches many things profitable for us to know and lay to heart ; teaches, among other things, how much of the present is still held in mortmain by the past ; teaches that, if there be no controlling purpose, there is, at least, a sternly logical sequence in human affairs, and that chance has but a trifling dominion over them ; teaches why things are and must be so and not otherwise, and that, of all hopeless contests, the most hopeless is that which fools are most eager to challenge, — with the Nature ot Things ; teaches, perhaps more than anything else, the value of personal character as a chief factor in what used to be called destiny, for that cause is strong ^ A capital subject for discussion would be on the compara- tive merits of the many encyclopaedias to be found in a good public library ; not to determine which was the best, but what was the characteristic of each. 2 There is another suggestive definition of history made by the English historian E. A. Freeman, and used as a motto on the title-page of the various Johns Hopkins University Studies in Historical and Political Science. BOOKS AND LIBRARIES. 231 which has not a multitude but one stroug man behind it. History is, indeed, mainly the biography of a few imperial men, and forces home upon us the useful lesson how infinitesimally important our own private affairs are to the universe in general. History is clarified experience, and yet how little do men profit by it ; nay, how should we expect it of those who so seldom are taught anything by their own ! Delusions, especially economical delusions, seem the only things that have any chance of an earthly immortality. I would have plenty of biography. It is no insignificant fact that eminent men have always loved their Plu- tarch, since example, whether for emulation or avoid- ance, is never so poignant as when presented to us in a striking personality. Autobiographies are also in- structive reading to the student of human nature, though generally written, by men who are more inter- esting to themselves than to their fellow-men. I have been told that Emerson and George Eliot agreed in thinking Rousseau's Confessions the most interesting book they had ever read. A public library should also have many and full shelves of political economy, for the dismal science, as Carlyle called it, if it prove nothing else, will go far towards proving that theory is the bird in the bush, though she sing more sweetly than the night- ingale, and that the millennium will not hasten its coming in deference to the most convincing string of resolutions that were ever unanimously adopted in public meeting. It likewise induces in us a profound and wholesome distrust of social panaceas. I would have a public library abundant in transla- tions of the best books in all languages, for, though no work of genius can be adequately translated, be- 232 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. cause every word of it is permeated with what Milton calls " the precious life-blood of a master spirit " which cannot be transfused into the veins of the best trans- lation, yet some acquaintance with foreign and ancient literatures has the liberalizing effect of foreign travel.^ He who travels by translation travels more hastily and superficially, but brings home something that is worth having, nevertheless. Translations properly used, by shortening the labor of acquisition, add as many years to our lives as they subtract from the pro- cesses of our education. Looked at from any but the aesthetic point of view, translations retain whatever property was in their originals to enlarge, liberalize, and refine the mind. At the same time I would have also the originals of these translated books, as a temp- tation to the study of languages, which has a special use and importance of its own in teaching us to under- stand the niceties of our mother-tongue. The prac- tice of translation, by making us deliberate in the choice of the best equivalent of the foreign word in our own language, has likewise the advantage of con- tinually schooling us in one of the main elements of a good style, — precision ; and precision of thought is not only exemplified by precision of language, but is largely dependent on the habit of it. In such a library the sciences should be fully repre- sented, that men may at least learn to know in what a marvellous museum they live, what a wonder-worker is giving them an exhibition daily for nothing. Nor let Art be forgotten in all its many forms, not as the antithesis of Science, but as her elder or fairer sister, 1 Emerson, in his essay entitled Books, in the volume Society and Solitude, has something to say about translations, and his remark often is quoted. BOOKS AND LIBRARIES, 233 whom we love all tlie more that her usefulness cannot be demonstrated in dollars and cents. I should be thankful if every day-laborer among us could have his mind illumined, as those of Athens and of Flor- ence had, with some image of what is best in archi- tecture, painting, and sculpture, to train his crude perceptions and perhaps call out latent faculties. I should like to see the works of Ruskin within the reach of every artisan among us. For I hope some day that the delicacy of touch and accuracy of eye that have made our mechanics in some departments the best in the world, may give us the same supremacy in works of wider range and more purely ideal scope. Voyages and travels I would also have, good store, especially the earlier, when the world was fresh and unhackneyed and men saw things invisible to the modern eye. They are fast-sailing ships to waft away from present trouble to the Fortunate Isles. To wash down the drier morsels that every library must necessarily offer at its board, let there be plenty of imaginative literature, and let its range be not too narrow to stretch from Dante to the elder Dumas. The world of the imagination is not the world of ab- straction and nonentity, as some conceive, but a world formed out of chaos by a sense of the beauty that is in man and the earth on which he dwells. It is the realm of Might-be, our haven of refuge from the short- comings and disillusions of life. It is, to quote Spen- ser, who knew it well, — " The world's sweet inn from care and wearisome turmoil." Do we believe, then, that God gave us in mockery this splendid faculty of sympathy with things that are 234 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. a joy forever ? ^ For my part, I believe that the love and study of works of imagination is of practical utility in a country so profoundly material (or, as we like to call it, practical) in its leading tendencies as ours. The hunger after purely intellectual delights, the content with ideal possessions, cannot but be good for us in maintaining a wholesome balance of the character and of the faculties. I for one shall never be persuaded that Shakespeare left a less useful leg- acy to his countrymen than Watt. We hold all the deepest, all the highest satisfactions of life as tenants of imagination. Nature will keep up the supply of what are called hard-headed people without our help, and, if it come to that, there are other as good uses for heads as at the end of battering rams. I know that there are many excellent people who object to the reading of novels as a waste of time, if not as otherwise harmful. But I think they are try- ing to outwit nature, who is sure to prove cunninger than they. Look at children. One boy shall want a chest of tools, and one a book, and of those who want books one shall ask for a botany, another for a ro- mance. They will be sure to get what they want, and we are doing a grave wrong to their morals by driving them to do things on the sly, to steal that food which their constitution craves and which is wholesome for them, instead of having it freely and frankly given them as the wisest possible diet. If we cannot make a silk purse out of a sow's ear, so neither can we hope to succeed with the opposite experiment. But we may spoil the silk for its legiti- mate uses. I can conceive of no healthier reading 1 The first line of Keats's poem Endymion suggested this phrase. BOOKS AND LIBRARIES. 235 for a boy, or girl either, than Scott's novels, or Cooper's, to speak only of the dead. I have found them very good reading at least for one young man, for one middle-aged man, and for one who is growing old. No, no — banish the Antiquary., banish Leather Stocking, and banish all the world ! ^ Let us not go about to make life duller than it is. But I must shut the doors of my imaginary library or I shall never end. It is left for me to say a few words of cordial acknowledgment to Mr. Fitz for his judicious and generous gift. I have great pleasure in believing that the custom of giving away money during their lifetime (and there is nothing harder for most men to part with, except prejudice) is more com- mon with Americans than with any other people. It is a still greater pleasure to see that the favorite direction of their beneficence is towards the founding of colleges and libraries. My observation has led me to believe that there is no country in which wealth is so sensible of its obligations as our own. And, as most of our rich men have risen from the ranks, may we not fairly attribute this symj^athy with their kind to the benign influence of democracy rightly under- stood? My dear and honored friend, George Wil- liam Curtis, told me that he was sitting in front of the late Mr. Ezra Cornell in a convention, where one of the speakers made a Latin quotation. Mr. Cornell leaned forward and asked for a translation of it, which Mr. Curtis gave him. Mr. Cornell thanked him, and added, *' If I can help it, no young man shall grow up in New York hereafter without the 1 In Shakespeare's King Henry IV., Part I., Act II. sc. 4, will be found the phrase which was in Mr. Lowell's mind when he wrote this. 236 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. chance, at least, of knowing what a Latin quotation means when he hears it." This was the germ of Cornell University,^ and it found food for its roots in that sympathy and thoughtfulness for others of which I just spoke. This is the healthy side of that good nature which democracy tends to foster, and which is so often harmful when it has its root in indolence or indifference ; especially harmful where our public affairs are concerned, and where it is easiest, because there we are giving away what belongs to other peo- ple. It should be said, however, that in this country it is as laudably easy to procure signatures to a sub- scription paper as it is shamefully so to obtain them for certificates of character and recommendations to office. And is not this public spirit a national evolu- tion from that frame of mind in which New England was colonized, and which found expression in these grave words of Robinson and Brewster, ^ " We are knit together as a body in a most strict and sacred bond and covenant of the Lord, of the violation of which we make great conscience, and by virtue whereof we hold ourselves strictly tied to all care of each other's good and of the whole " ? Let us never forget the deep and solemn import of these words. The problem before us is to make a whole of our many discordant parts, our many foreign elements; and I know of no way in which this can better be done than by providing a common system of educa- tion, and a common door of access to the best books by which that education may be continued, broadened, 1 The motto about the seal of Cornell University indicates Mr. Cornell's conception of that institution. 2 In a letter signed jointly by them to Sir Edwin Sandys, to be found in Bradford's History of Plymouth Plantation, page 20. BOOKS AND LIBRARIES. 237 and made fruitful. For it is certain that, whatever we do or leave undone, those discordant parts and foreign elements are to be, whether we will or no, members of that body which Robinson and Brewster had in mind, bone of our bone, and flesh of our flesh, for good or ill. I am happy in believing that demo- cracy has enough vigor of constitution to assimilate these seemingly indigestible morsels, and transmute them into strength of muscle and symmetry of limb.^ There is no way in which a man can build so secure and lasting a monument for himself as in a public library. Upon that he may confidently allow " Re- surgam " ^ to be carved, for, through his good deed, he will rise again in the grateful remembrance and in the lifted and broadened minds and fortified characters of generation after generation. The pyramids may forget their builders, but memorials such as this have longer memories. Mr. Fitz has done his part in providing your library with a dwelling. It will be for the citizens of Chelsea to provide it with worthy habitants. So shall they, too, have a share in the noble eulogy of the ancient wise man : " The teachers shall shine as the firmament, and they that turn many to righteousness as the stars forever and ever." 1 For a fuller statement of Mr. Lowell's faith, see his address Democracy. 2 This Latin word, " I shall rise again," reappears in the word resurrection. 238 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. ABRAHAM LINCOLN.^ There have been many painful crises since the im- patient vanity of South Carolina hurried ten prosper- ous Commonwealths into a crime whose assured retri- bution was to leave them either at the mercy of the nation they had wronged, or of the anarchy they had summoned but could not control, when no thoughtful American opened his morning paper without dreading to find that he had no longer a conntry to love and honor. Whatever the result of the convulsion whose first shocks were beginning to be felt, there would still be enough square miles of earth for elbow-room ; but that ineffable sentiment made up of memory and hope, of instinct and tradition, which swells every man's heart and shapes his thought, thongh perhaps never present to his consciousness, would be gone from it, leaving it common earth and nothing more. Men might gather rich crops from it, but that ideal harvest of priceless associations would be reaped no longer ; that fine virtue which sent up messages of courage and security from every sod of it would have evaporated beyond recall. We should be irrevocably cut off from our past, and be forced to splice the ragged ends of our lives upon whatever new conditions chance might leave dangling for us. We confess that we had our doubts at first whether the patriotism of our people were not too narrowly provincial to embrace the proportions of national ^ This paper was publislied by Mr. Lowell originally in the North American Review for January, 1864. When he reprinted it in his volume, My Study Windows, he added the final paragraph, and inserted a few sentences elsewhere. ABRAHAM LINCOLN. 239 peril. We felt an only too natural distrust of im- mense public meetings and enthusiastic cheers. That a reaction should follow the holiday enthusi- asm with which the war was entered on, that it should follow soon, and that the slackening of public spirit should be proportionate to the previous over-tension, might well be foreseen by all who had studied human nature or history. Men acting gregariously are al- ways in extremes ; as they are one moment capable of higher courage, so they are liable, the next, to baser depression, and it is often a matter of chance whether numbers shall multiply confidence or discouragement. Nor does deception lead more surely to distrust of men, than self-deception to suspicion of principles. The only faith that wears well and holds its color in all weathers is that which is woven of conviction and set with the sharp mordant of experience. Enthusi- asm is good material for the orator, but the statesman needs something more durable to work in, — must be able to rely on the deliberate reason and consequent firmness of the people, without which that presence of mind, no less essential in times of moral than of ma- terial peril, will be wanting at the critical moment. Would this fervor of the Free States hold out ? Was it kindled by a just feeling of the value of constitu- tional liberty ? Had it body enough to withstand the inevitable dampening of checks, reverses, delays? Had our population intelligence enough to comprehend that the choice was between order and anarchy, be- tween the equilibrium of a government by law and the tussle of misrule by proinmclamiento f Could a war be maintained without the ordinary stimulus of hatred and plunder, and with the impersonal loyalty of prin- ciple ? Those were serious questions, and with no pre- cedent to aid in answering them. 240 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. At the beginning of the war there was, indeed, oc- casion for the most anxious apprehension. A presi- dent known to be infected with the political heresies, and suspected of sympathy with the treason, of the Southern conspirators, had just surrendered the reins, we will not say of power, but of chaos, to a successor known only as the representative of a party whose leaders, with long training in opposition, had none in the conduct of affairs ; an empty treasury was called on to supply resources beyond precedent in the history of finance ; the trees were yet growing and the iron unmined with which a navy was to be built and ar- mored ; officers without discipline were to make a mob into an army ; and, above all, the public opinion of Europe, echoed and reinforced with every vague hint and every specious argument of despondency by a powerful faction at home, was either contemptuously sceptical or actively hostile. It would be hard to overestimate the force of this latter element of disin- tegration and discouragement among a people where every citizen at home, and every soldier in the field, is a reader of newspapers. The pedlers of rumor in the North were the most effective allies of the rebellion. A nation can be liable to no more insidious treachery than that of the telegraph, sending hourly its electric thrill of panic along the remotest nerves of the com- munity, till the excited imagination makes every real danger loom heightened with its unreal double. And even if we look only at more palpable difficul- ties, the problem to be solved by our civil war was so vast, both in its immediate relations and its future consequences ; the conditions of its solution were so intricate and so greatly dependent on incalculable and uncontrollable contingencies ; so many of the data, ABRAHAM LINCOLN. 241 whether for hope or fear, were, from their novelty, incapable of arrangement under any of the categories of historical precedent, that there were moments of crisis when the firmest believer in the strength and sufficiency of the democratic theory of government might well hold his breath in vague apprehension of disaster. Our teachers of political philosophy, sol- emnly arguing from the precedent of some petty Gre- cian, Italian, or Flemish city, whose long periods of aristocracy were broken now and then by awkward parentheses of mob, had always taught us that demo- cracies were incapable of the sentiment of loyalty, of concentrated and prolonged effort, of far-reaching conceptions ; were absorbed in material interests ; im- patient of regular, and much more of exceptional re- straint ; had no natural nucleus of gravitation, nor any forces but centrifugal ; were always on the verge of civil war, and slunk at last into the natural almshouse of bankrupt popular government, a military despotism. Here was indeed a dreary outlook for persons who knew democracy, not by rubbing shoulders with it lifelong, but merely from books, and America only by the report of some fellow-Briton, who, having eaten a bad dinner or lost a carpet-bag here, had written to The Times demanding redress, and drawing a mourn- ful inference of democratic instability. Nor were men wanting among ourselves who had so steeped their brains in London literature as to mistake Cockneyism for European culture*, and contempt of their country for cosmopolitan breadth of view, and who, owing all they had and all they were to democracy, thought it had an air of high-breeding to join in the shallow epicedium that our bubble had burst. But beside any disheartening influences which might 242 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. affect the timid or tlie desjjondent, there were reasons enough of settled gravity against any over-confidence of hope. A war — which, whether we consider the expanse of the territory at stake, the hosts brought into the field, or the reach of the principles involved, may fairly be reckoned the most momentous of mod- ern times — was to be waged by a people divided at home, unnerved by fifty years of peace, under a chief magistrate without experience and without reputation, whose every measure was sure to be cunningly ham- pered by a jealous and unscrupulous minority, and who, while dealing with unheard-of complications at home, must soothe a hostile neutrality abroad, waiting- only a pretext to become war. All this was to be done without warning and without preparation, while at the same time a social revolution was to be accom- plished in the political condition of four millions of people, by softening the prejudices, allaying the fears, and gradually obtaining the cooperation, of their un- willing liberators. Surely, if ever there were an occa- sion when the heightened imagination of the historian might see Destiny visible intervening in human affairs, here was a knot worthy of her shears. Never, per- haps, was any system of government tried by so con- tinuous and searching a strain as ours during the last three years ; never has any shown itself stronger ; and never could that strength be so directly traced to the virtue and intelligence of the people, — to that general enlightenment and prompt efficiency oi public opinion possible only under the influence of a political framework like our own. We find it hard to under- stand how even a foreigner should be blind to the grandeur of the combat of ideas that has been going on here, — to the heroic energy, persistency, and self- ABRAHAM LINCOLN. 243 reliance of a nation proving that it knows liow much dearer greatness is than mere power ; and we ow n that it is impossible for us to conceive the mental and moral condition of the American who does not feel his spirit braced and heightened by being even a spectator of such qualities and achievements. That a steady purpose and a definite aim have been given to the jarring forces which, at the beginning of the war, spent themselves in the discussion of schemes which could only become operative, if at all, after the war was over ; that a popular excitement has been slowly intensified into an earnest national will ; that a some- what impracticable moral sentiment has been made the unconscious instrument of a practical moral end ; that the treason of covert enemies, the jealousy of rivals, the unwise zeal of friends, have been made not only useless for mischief, but even useful for good ; that the conscientious sensitiveness of England to the horrors of civil conflict has been prevented from com- plicating a domestic with a foreign war ; — all these results, any one of which might suffice to prove great- ness in a ruler, have been mainly due to the good sense, the good-humor, the sagacity, the large-minded- ness, and the unselfish honesty of the unknown man whom a blind fortune, as it seemed, had lifted from the crowd to the most dangerous and difacult eminence of modern times. It is by presence of mind in un- tried emergencies that the native metal of a man is tested ; it is by the sagacity to see, and the fearless honesty to admit, whatever of truth there may be in an adverse opinion, in order more convincingly to expose the fallacy that lurks behind it, that a reasoner at length gains for his mere statement of a fact the force of argument; it is by a wise forecast which 244 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. allows hostile combinations to go so far as by the in- evitable reaction to become elements of his own power, that a politician proves his genius for state-craft ; and especially it is by so gently guiding public sentiuient that he seems to follow it, by so yielding doubtful points that he can be firm without seeming obstinate in essential ones, and thus gain the advantages of com- promise without the weakness of concession ; by so in- stinctively comprehending the temper and prejudices of a people as to make them gradually conscious of the superior wisdom of his freedom from temper and prejudice, — it is by qualities such as these that a magistrate shows himself worthy to bo chief in a com- monwealth of freemen. And it is for qualities such as these that we firmly believe History will rank Mr. Lincoln among the most prudent of statesmen and the most successful of rulers. If we wish to appreciate him, we have only to conceive the inevitable chaos in which we should now be weltering had a weak man or an unwise one been chosen in his stead. " Bare is back," says the Norse proverb, " without brother behind it ; " and this is, by analogy, true of an elective magistracy. The hereditary ruler in any critical emergency may reckon on the inexhaustible resources of prestige, of sentiment, of superstition, of dependent interest, while the new man must slowly and painfully create all these out of the unwilling material around him, by superiority of character, by patient singleness of purpose, by sagacious presenti- ment of popular tendencies and instinctive sympathy with the national character. Mr. Lincoln's task was one of peculiar and exceptional difficulty. Long habit had accustomed the American people to the notion of a party in power, and of a President as its ABRAHAM LINCOLN. 245 creature and organ, while the more vital fact, that the executive for the time being represents the abstract idea of government as a permanent principle superior to all party and all private interest, had gradually become unfamiliar. They had so long seen the pub- lic policy more or less directed by views of party, and often even of personal advantage, as to be ready to suspect the motives of a chief magistrate compelled, for the first time in our history, to feel himself the head and hand of a great nation, and to act upon the fundamental maxim, laid down by all publicists, that the first duty of a government is to defend and main- tain its own existence; Accordingly, a powerful wea- pon seemed to be put into the hands of the opposition by the necessity under which the administration found itself of applying this old truth to new relations. Nor were the opposition his only nor his most dangerous opponents. The Republicans had carried the country upon an issue in which ethics were more directly and visibly mingled with politics than usual. Their leaders were trained to a method of oratory which relied for its effect rather on the moral sense than the understand- ing. Their arguments were drawn, not so much from experience as from general principles of right and wrong. When the war came, their system continued to be applicable and effective, for here again the rea- son of the people was to be reached and kindled through their sentiments. It was one of those periods of excitement, gathering, contagious, universal, which, while they last, exalt and clarify the minds of men, giving to the mere words country^ human rights^ de- 7nocra.cy^ a meaning and a force beyond that of sober and logical argument. They were convictions, main- 246 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. tained and defended by the supreme logic of passion. That penetrating fire ran in and roused those primary instincts that make their lair in the dens and caverns of the mind. What is called the great popular heart was awakened, that indefinable something which may be, according to circumstances, the highest reason or the most brutish unreason. But enthusiasm, once cold, can never be warmed over into anything better than cant, — and phrases, when once the inspiration that filled them with beneficent power has ebbed away, retain only that semblance of meaning which enables them to supplant reason in hasty minds. Among the lessons taught by the French Ee volution there is none sadder or more striking than this, that you may make everything else out of the passions of men except a political system that will work, and that there is no- thing so pitilessly and unconsciously cruel as sincerity formulated into dogma. It is always demoralizing to extend the domain of sentiment over questions where it has no legitimate jurisdiction ; and perhaps the se- verest strain upon Mr. Lincoln was in resisting a ten- dency of his own supporters which chimed with his own private desires while wholly opposed to his con- victions of what would be wise policy. The change which three years have brought about is too remarkable to be passed over without comment, too weighty in its lesson not to be laid to heart. Never did a President enter upon office with less means at his command, outside his own strength of heart and steadiness of understanding, for insjiiring confidence in the people, and so winning it for him- self, than Mr. Lincoln. All that was known of him was that he was a good stump-speaker, nominated for his availability^ — that is, because he had no history, ABRAHAM LINCOLN. 247 — and chosen by a party with whose more extreme opinions he was not in sympathy. It might well be feared that a man past fifty, against whom the inge- nuity of hostile partisans could rake up no accusation, must be lacking in manliness of character, in decision of principle, in strength of will ; that a man who was at best only the representative of a party, and who yet did not fairly represent even that, would fail of politi- cal, much more of popular, support. And certainly no one ever entered upon office with so few resources of power in the past, and so many materials of weak- ness in the present, as Mr. Lincoln. Even in that half of the Union which acknowledged him as Presi- dent, there was a large, and at that time dangerous minority, that hardly admitted his claim to the office, and even in the party that elected him there was also a large minority that suspected him of being secretly a communicant with the church of Laodicea.^ All that he did was sure to be virulently attacked as ultra by one side ; all that he left undone, to be stigmatized as proof of lukewarmness and backsliding by the other. Meanwhile he was to carry on a truly colossal war by means of both ; he was to disengage the country from diplomatic entanglements of unprecedented peril un- disturbed by the help or the hinderance of either, and to win from the crowning dangers of his administra- tion, in the confidence of the people, the means of his safety and their own. He has contrived to do it, and perhaps none of our Presidents since Washington has stood so firm in the confidence of the people as he does after three years of stormy administration. Mr. Lincoln's policy was a tentative one, and rightly so. He laid down no programme which must 1 See the Book of Revelation ^ chapter 3, verse 15. 248 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. compel him to be either inconsistent or unwise, no cast-iron theorem to which circumstances must be fitted as they rose, or else be useless to his ends. He seemed to have chosen Mazarin's motto, Le temps et moi} The moi, to be sure, was not very prominent at first ; but it has grown more and more so, till the world is beginning to be persuaded that it stands for a character of marked individuality and capacity for af- fairs. Time was his prime-minister, and, we began to think, at one period, his general-in-chief also. At first he was so slow that he tired out all those who see no evidence of progress but in blowing up the engine; then he was so fast that he took the breath away from those who think there is no getting on safely while there is a spark of fire under the boilers. God is the only being who has time enough ; but a prudent man, who knows how to seize occasion, can commonly make a shift to find as much as he needs. Mr. Lincoln, as it seems to us in reviewing his career, though we have sometimes in our impatience thought otherwise, has always waited, as a wise man should, till the right mo- ment brought up all his reserves. Semper nocuit dif- ferre paratis? is a sound axiom, but the really effi- cacious man will also be sure to know when he is not ready, and be firm against all persuasion and reproach till he is. One would be apt to think, from some of the criti- cisms made on Mr. Lincoln's course by those who mainly agree with him in principle, that the chief ob- ject of a statesman should be rather to proclaim his adhesion to certain doctrines, than to achieve their 1 Time and I. Cardinal Mazarin was prime-minister of Louis XIV. of France. Time, Mazarin said, was his prime-minister. 2 It is always bad for those who are ready to put off action. ABRAHAM LINCOLN. 249 triumph by quietly accomplishing his ends. In our opinion, there is no more unsafe politician than a con- scientiously rigid doctrinaire^ nothing more sure to end' in disaster than a theoretic scheme of policy that admits of no pliability for contingencies. True, there is a popular image of an impossible He, in whose plas- tic hands the submissive destinies of mankind become as wax, and to whose commanding necessity the tough- est facts yield with the graceful pliancy of fiction ; but in real life we commonly find that the men who con- trol circumstances, as it is called, are those who have learned to allow for the influence of their eddies, and have the nerve to turn them to account at the happy instant. Mr. Lincoln's perilous task has been to carry a rather shaky raft through the rapids, making fast the unrulier logs as he could snatch opportunity, and the country is to be congratulated that he did not think it his duty to run straight at all hazards, but cautiously to assure himself with his setting-pole where the main current was, and keep steadily to that. He is still in wild water, but we have faith that his skill and sureness of eye will bring him out right at last. A curious, and, as we think, not inapt parallel, might be drawn between Mr. Lincoln and one of the most striking figures in modern history, — Henry IV. of France. The career of the latter may be more pic- turesque, as that of a daring captain always is ; but in all its vicissitudes there is nothing more romantic than that sudden change, as by a rub of Aladdin's lamp, from the attorney's office in a country town of Illinois to the helm of a great nation in times like these. The analogy between the characters and circumstances of the two men is in many respects singularly close. Succeeding to a rebellion rather than a crown, Henry's 250 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. chief material dependence was the Huguenot party, whose doctrines sat upon him with a looseness dis- tasteful certainly, if not suspicious to the more fanati- cal among them. King only in name over the greater part of France, and with his capital barred against him, it yet gradually became clear to the more far- seeing even of the Catholic party that he was the only centre of order and legitimate authority round which France could reorganize itself. While preachers who held the divine right of kings made the churches of Paris ring with declamations in favor of democracy rather than submit to the heretic dog of a Bearnois,^ — much as our soi-cUscmt Democrats have lately been preaching the divine right of slavery, and denouncing the heresies of the Declaration of Independence, — Henry bore both parties in hand till he was convinced that only one course of action could possibly combine his own interests and those of France. Meanwhile the Protestants believed somewhat doubtfully that he was theirs, the Catholics hoped somewhat doubtfully that he would be theirs, and Henry himself turned aside remonstrance, advice, and curiosity alike with a jest or a proverb (if a little high, he liked them none the worse), joking continually as his manner was. We have seen Mr. Lincoln contemptuously compared to Sancho Panza by persons incapable of appreciating one of the deepest pieces of wisdom in the profoundest romance ever written ; namely, that while Don Qui- xote was incomparable in theoretic and ideal states- manship, Sancho, with his stock of proverbs, the ready money of human experience, made the best pos- sible practical governor. Henry IV. was as full of 1 One of Henry's titles was Prince of Bdarn, that being the old province of France from which he came. ABRAHAM LINCOLN. 251 wise saws and modern instances as Mr. Lincoln, but beneath all this was the thoughtful, practical, humane, and thoroughly earnest man, around whom the frag- ments of France were to gather themselves till she took her place again as a planet of the first magnitude in the European system. In one respect Mr. Lincoln was more fortunate than Henry. However some may think him wanting in zeal, the most fanatical can find no taint of apostasy in any measure of his, nor can the most bitter charge him with being influenced by motives of personal interest. The leading distinction between the policies of the two is one of circumstances. Henry went over to the nation ; Mr. Lincoln has stead- ily drawn the nation over to him. One left a united France ; the other, we hope and believe, will leave a reunited America. We leave our readers to trace the further points of difference and resemblance for them- selves, merely suggesting a general similarity which has often occurred to us. One only point of melan- choly interest we will allow ourselves to touch upon. That Mr. Lincoln is not handsome nor elegant, we learn from certain English tourists who would consider similar revelations in regard to Queen Victoria as thoroughly American in their want of hlenseance. It is no concern of ours, nor does it affect his fitness for the high place he so worthily occupies ; but he is certainly as fortunate as Henry in the matter of good looks, if we may trust contemporary evidence. Mr. Lincoln has also been reproached with Americanism by some not unfriendly British critics ; but, with all deference, we cannot say that we like him any the worse for it, or see in it any reason why he should govern Americans the less wisely. People of more sensitive organizations may be 252 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. shocked, but we are glad that in this, our true war of independence, which is to free us forever from the Old World, we have had at the head of our affairs a man whom America made, as God made Adam, out of the very earth, unancestried, unprivileged, unknown, to show us how much truth, how much magnanimity, and how much statecraft await the call of opportunity in simple manhood when it believes in the justice of God and the worth of man. Conventionalities are all very well in their proper place, but they shrivel at the touch of nature like stubble in the fire. The genius that sways a nation by its arbitrary will seems less august to us than that which multiplies and reinforces itself in the instincts and convictions of an entire people. Au- tocracy may have something in it more melodramatic than this, but falls far short of it in human value and interest. Experience would have bred in us a rooted distrust of improvised statesmanship, even if we did not believe politics to be a science, which, if it cannot always com- mand men of special aptitude and great powers, at least demands the long and steady application of the best powers of such men as it can command to master even its first principles. It is curious, that, in a coun- try which boasts of its intelligence, the theory should be so generally held that the most complicated of hu- man contrivances, and one which every day becomes more complicated, can be worked at sight by any man able to talk for an hour or two without stopping to think. Mr. Lincoln is sometimes claimed as an example of a ready-made ruler. But no case could well be less in point ; for, besides that he was a man of such fair- mindedness as is always the raw material of wisdom, ABRAHAM LINCOLN. 253 lie had in his profession a training precisely the oppo- site of that to which a partisan is subjected. His ex- perience as a lawyer compelled him not only to see that there is a principle underlying every phenomenon in human affairs, but that there are always two sides to every question, both of which must be fully under- stood in order to understand either, and that it is of greater advantage to an advocate to appreciate the strength than the weakness of his antagonist's position. Nothing is more remarkable than the unerring tact with which, in his debate with Mr. Douglas, he went straight to the reason of the question ; nor have we ever had a more striking lesson in political tactics than the fact, that opposed to a man exceptionally adroit in using popular prejudice and bigotry to his purpose, exceptionally unscrupulous in appealing to those baser motives that turn a meeting of citizens into a mob of barbarians, he should yet have won his case before a jury of the people. Mr. Lincoln was as far as possi- ble from an impromptu politician. His wisdom was made up of a knowledge of things as well as of men ; his sagacity resulted from a clear perception and hon- est acknowledgment of difficulties, which enabled him to see that the only durable triumph of political opin- ion is based, not on any abstract right, but upon so much of justice, the highest attainable at any given moment in human affairs, as may be had in the bal- ance of mutual concession. Doubtless he had an ideal, but it was the ideal of a practical statesman, — to aim at the best, and to take the next best, if he is lucky enough to get even that. His slow, but singu- larly masculine intelligence taught him that precedent is only another name for embodied experience, and that it counts for even more in the guidance of com- 254 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. munities of men than in that of the individual life. He was not a man who held it good public economy to pull down on the mere chance of rebuilding better. Mr. Lincoln's faith in God was qualified by a very well-founded distrust of the wisdom of man. Perhaps it was his want of self-confidence that more than any- thing else won him the unlimited confidence of the people, for they felt that there would be no need of retreat from any position he had deliberately taken. The cautious, but steady, advance of his policy during the war was like that of a Roman army. He left be- hind him a firm road on which public confidence could follow ; he took America with him where he went ; what he gained he occupied, and his advanced posts became colonies. The very homeliness of his genius was its distinction. His kingship was conspicuous by its workday homespun. Never was ruler so absolute as he, nor so little conscious of it ; for he was the in- carnate common-sense of the people. With all that tenderness of nature whose sweet sadness touched whoever saw him with something of its own pathos, there was no trace of sentimentalism in his speech or action. He seems to have had but one rule of con- duct, always that of practical and successful politics, to let himself be guided by events, when they were sure to bring him out where he wished to go, though by what seemed to unpractical minds, which let go the possible to grasp at the desirable, a longer road. Undoubtedly the highest function of statesmanship is by degrees to accommodate the conduct of commu- nities to ethical laws, and to subordinate the conflict- ing self-interests of the day to higher and more per- manent concerns. But it is on the understanding, and not on the sentiment, of a nation that all safe ABRAHAM LINCOLN. 255 legislation must be based. Voltaire's saying, that " a consideration of petty circumstances is the tomb of great things," may be true of individual men, but it certainly is not true of governments. It is by a mul- titude of such considerations, each in itself trifling, but all together weighty, that the framers of policy can alone divine what is practicable and therefore wise. The imputation of inconsistency is one to which every sound politician and every honest thinker must sooner or later subject himself. The foolish and the dead alone never change their opinion. The course of a great statesman resembles that of navigable rivers, avoiding immovable obstacles with noble bends of con- cession, seeking the broad levels of opinion on which men soonest settle and longest dwell, following and marking the almost imperceptible slopes of national tendency, yet always aiming at direct advances, always recruited from sources nearer heaven, and sometimes bursting open paths of progress and fruitful human commerce through what seem the eternal barriers of both. It is loyalty to great ends, even though forced to combine the small and opposing motives of selfish men to accomplish them ; it is the anchored cling to solid principles of duty and action, which knows how to swing with the tide, but is never carried away by it, — that we domand in public men, and not sameness of policy, or a conscientious persistency in what is im- practicable. For the impracticable, however theoreti- cally enticing, is always politically unwise, sound statesmanship being the application of that prudence to the public business which is the safest guide in that of private men. No doubt slavery was the most delicate and embar- rassing question with which Mr. Lincoln was called 256 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. on to deal, and it was one which no man in his posi- tion, whatever his opinions, could evade ; for, though he might withstand the clamor of partisans, he must sooner or later yield to the persistent importunacy of circumstances, which thrust the problem upon him at every turn and in every shape. It has been brought against us as an accusation abroad, and repeated here by peoj)le who measure their country rather by what is thought of it than by what it is, that our war has not been distinctly and avowedly for the extinction of slavery, but a war rather for the preservation of our national power and great- ness, in which the emancipation of the negro has been forced upon us by circumstances and accepted as a necessity. We are very far from denying this ; nay, we admit that it is so far true that we were slow to renounce our constitutional obligations even toward those who had absolved us by their own act from the letter of our duty. We are speaking of the govern- ment which, legally installed for the whole country, was bound, so long as it was possible, not to overstep the limits of orderly prescription, and could not, with- out abnegating its own very nature, take the lead in making rebellion an excuse for revolution. There were, no doubt, many ardent and sincere persons who seemed to think this as simple a thing to do as to lead off a Virginia reel. They forgot, what should be for- gotten least of all in a system like ours, that the ad- ministration for the time being represents not only the majority which elects it, but the minority as well, — a minority in this case powerful, and so little ready for emancipation that it was opposed even to war. Mr. Lincoln had not been chosen as general agent of an anti-slavery society, but President of the United ABRAHAM LINCOLN. 257 States, to perform certain functions exactly defined by law. Whatever were liis wishes, it was no less duty than policy to mark out for himself a line of action that would not further distract the country, by raising before their time questions which plainly would soon enough compel attention, and for which every day was making the answer more easy. Meanwhile he must solve the riddle of this new Sphinx, or be devoured. Though Mr. Lincoln's policy in this critical affair has not been such as to satisfy those who demand an heroic treatment for even the most trifling occasion, and who will not cut their coat according to their cloth, unless they can borrow the scissors of Atropos,i it has been at least not unworthy of the long-headed king of Ithaca.^ Mr. Lincoln had the choice of Bassanio ^ offered him. Which of the three caskets held the prize that was to redeem the fortunes of the country ? There was the golden one whose showy speciousness might have tempted a vain man ; the silver of compromise, which might have de- cided the choice of a merely acute one; and the leaden, — dull and homely-looking, as prudence al- ways is, — yet with something about it sure to attract the eye of practical wisdom. Mr. Lincoln dallied with his decision perhaps longer than seemed needful to those on whom its awful responsibility was not to rest, but when he made it, it was worthy of his cau- tious but sure-footed understanding. The moral of the Sphinx-riddle, and it is a deep one, lies in the childish simplicity of the solution. Those who fail in guessing it, fail because they are over-ingenious, and ^ One of the three Fates. 2 Odysseus, or Ulysses, the hero of Homer's Odyssey. 2 See Shakespeare's Merchant of Venice. 258 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. cast about for an answer that sliall suit their own no- tion of the gravity of the occasion and of their own dignity, rather than the occasion itself. In a matter which must be finally settled by public opinion, and in regard to which the ferment of preju- dice and passion on both sides has not yet subsided to that equilibrium of compromise from which alone a sound public opinion can result, it is proper enough for the private citizen to press his own convictions with all possible force of argument and persuasion ; but the popular magistrate, whose judgment must be- come action, and whose action involves the whole country, is bound to wait till the sentiment of the people is so far advanced toward his own point of view, that what he does shall find support in it, in- stead of merely confusing it with new elements of di- vision. It was not unnatural that men earnestly de- voted to the saving of their country, and profoundly convinced that slavery was its only real enemy, should demand a decided policy round which all patriots might rally, — and this might have been the wisest course for an absolute ruler. But in the then unset- tled state of the public mind, with a large party de- crying even resistance to the slaveholders' rebellion as not only unwise, but even unlawful ; with a majority, perhaps, even of the would-be loyal so long accus- tomed to regard the Constitution as a deed of gift conveying to the South their own judgment as to pol- icy and instinct as to right, that they were in doubt at firs-t whether their loyalty were due to the country or to slavery ; and with a respectable body of honest and influential men who still believed in the possibility of conciliation, — Mr. Lincoln judged wisely, that, in laying down a policy in deference to one party, he ABRAHAM LINCOLN. 259 should be giving to the other the very fulcrum for which their disloyalty had been waiting. It behooved a clear-headed man in his position not to yield so far to an honest indignation against the brokers of treason in the North as to lose sight of the materials for misleading which were their stock in trade, and to forget that it is not the falsehood of sophistry which is to be feared, but the grain of truth mingled with it to make it specious, — that it is not the knavery of the leaders so much as the honesty of the followers they may seduce, that gives them power for evil. It was especially his duty to do nothing which might help the people to forget the true cause of the war in fruitless disputes about its inevitable consequences. The doctrine of State rights can be so handled by an adroit demagogue as easily to confound the distinc- tion between liberty and lawlessness in the minds of ignorant persons, accustomed always to be influenced by the sound of certain words, rather than to reflect upon the principles which give them meaning. For, though Secession involves the manifest absurdity of denying to a State the right of making war against any foreign power while permitting it against the United States ; though it supposes a compact of mu- tual concessions and guaranties among States without any arbiter in case of dissension ; though it contra- dicts common-sense in assuming that the men who framed our government did not know what they meant when they substituted Union for Confederation ; though it falsifies history, which shows that the main opposition to the adoption of the Constitution was based on the argument that it did not allow that indepen- dence in the several States which alone would justify 260 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. them in seceding ; — yet, as slavery was universally admitted to be a reserved right, an inference could be drawn from any direct attack upon it (though only in self-defence) to a natural right of resistance, logical enough to satisfy minds untrained to detect fallacy, as the majority of men always are, and now too much disturbed by the disorder of the times, to consider that the order of events had any legitimate bearing on the argument. Though Mr. Lincoln was too sagacious to give the Northern allies of the Rebels the occasion they desired and even strove to provoke, yet from the beginning of the war the most persistent efforts have been made to confuse the public mind as to its origin and motives, and to drag the people of the loyal States down from the national position they had instinctively taken to the old level of party squabbles and antipa- thies. The wholly unprovoked rebellion of an oli- garchy proclaiming negro slavery the corner-stone of free institutions, and in the first flush of over-hasty confidence venturing to parade the logical sequence of their leading dogma, " that slavery is right in princi- ple, and has nothing to do with difference of com- plexion," has been represented as a legitimate and gallant attempt to maintain the true principles of de- mocracy. The rightful endeavor of an established government, the least onerous that ever existed, to defend itself against a treacherous attack on its very existence, has been cunningly made to seem the wicked effort of a fanatical clique to force its doctrines on an oppressed population. Even so long ago as when Mr. Lincoln, not yet con- vinced of the danger and magnitude of the crisis, was endeavoring to ]3ersuade himself of Union majorities at the South, and to carry on a war that was half peace ABRAHAM LINCOLN. 261 in tlie hope of a peace that would have been all war, — while he was still enforcing the Fugitive Slave Law, under some theory that Secession, however it might absolve States from their obligations, could not es- cheat them of their claims under the Constitution, and that slaveholders in rebellion had alone among mortals the privilege of having their cake and eating it at the same time, — the enemies of free government were striving to persuade the people that the war was an Abolition crusade. To rebel without reason was pro- claimed as one of the rights of man, while it was care- fully kept out of sight that to suppress rebellion is the first duty of government. All the evils that have come upon the country have been attributed to the Abolitionists, though it is hard to see how any party can become permanently powerful except in one of two ways, either by the greater truth of its princi- ples, or the extravagance of the party opposed to it. To fancy the ship of state, riding safe at her constitu- tional moorings, suddenly engulfed by a huge kraken of Abolitionism, rising from unknown depths and grasping it with slimy tentacles, is to look at the nat- ural history of the matter with the eyes of Pontop- pidan.i To believe that the leaders in the Southern treason feared any danger from Abolitionism, would be to deny them ordinary intelligence, though there can be little doubt that they made use of it to stir the passions and excite the fears of their deluded accom- plices. They rebelled, not because they thought slav- ery weak, but because they believed it strong enough, not to overthrow the government, but to get posses- sion of it ; for it becomes daily clearer that they used rebellion only as a means of revolution, and if they 1 A Danish antiquary and theologian. 262 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. got revolution, though not in the shape they looked for, is the American people to save them from its con- sequences at the cost of its own existence ? The elec- tion of Mr. Lincoln, which it was clearly in their power to prevent had they wished, was the occasion merely, and not the cause of their revolt. Abolition- ism, till within a year or two, was the despised heresy of a few earnest persons, without political weight enough to carry the election of a parish constable ; and their cardinal principle was disunion, because they were convinced that within the Union the posi- tion of slavery was impregnable. In spite of the proverb, great effects do not follow from small causes, — that is, disproportionately small, — but from ade- quate causes acting under certain required conditions. To contrast the size of the oak with that of the parent acorn, as if the poor seed had paid all costs from its slender strong-box, may serve for a child's wonder ; but the real miracle lies in that divine league which bound all the forces of nature to the service of the tiny germ in fulfilling its destiny. Everything has been at work for the past ten years in the cause of anti-slavery, but Garrison and Phillips have been far less successful propagandists than the slaveholders themselves, with the constantly growing arrogance of their pretensions and encroachments. They have forced the question upon the attention of every voter in the Free States, by defiantly putting freedom and democracy on the defensive. But, even after the Kansas outrages, there was no wide-sj)read desire on the part of the North to commit aggressions, though there was a growing determination to resist them. The popular unanimity in favor of the war three years ago was but in small measure the result of anti-slavery ABRAHAM LINCOLN. 263 sentiment, far less of any zeal for abolition. But every month of the war, every movement of the allies of slavery in the Free States, has been making Aboli- tionists by the thousand. The masses of any people, however intelligent, are very little moved by abstract principles of humanity and justice, until those prin- ciples are interpreted for them by the stinging com- mentary of some infringement upon their own rights, and then their instincts and passions, once aroused, do indeed derive an incalculable reinforcement of impulse and intensity from those higher ideas, those sublime traditions, which have no motive political force till they are allied with a sense of immediate personal wrong or imminent peril. Then at last the stars in their courses begin to fight against Sisera. Had any one doubted before that the rights of human nature are unitary, that oppression is of one hue the world over, no matter what the color of the oppressed, — had any one failed to see what the real essence of the contest was, — the efforts of the advocates of slav- ery among ourselves to throw discredit upon the fun- damental axioms of the Declaration of Independence and the radical doctrines of Christianity, could not fail to sharpen his eyes. While every day was bringing the people nearer to the conclusion which all thinking men saw to be inev- itable from the beginning, it was wise in Mr. Lincoln to leave the shaping of his policy to events. In this country, where the rough and ready understanding of the people is sure at last to be the controlling j^ower, a profound common-sense is the best genius for states- manship. Hitherto the wisdom of the President's measures has been justified by the fact that they have always resulted in more firmly uniting public opinion. 264 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. One of the things particularly admirable in the public utterances of President Lincoln is a certain tone of familiar dignity^ which, while it is perhaps the most difficult attainment of mere style, is also no doubtful indication of personal character. There must be something essentially noble in an elective ruler who can descend to the level of confidential ease without losing respect, something very manly in one who can break through the etiquette of his conventional rank and trust himself to the reason and intelliofcnce of those who have elected him. No higher compliment was ever paid to a nation than the simple confidence, the fireside plainness, with which Mr. Lincoln always addresses himself to the reason of the American people. This was, indeed, a true democrat, who grounded him- self on the assumption that a democracy can think. " Come, let us reason together about this matter," has been the tone of all his addresses to the people ; and accordingly we have never had a chief magistrate who so won to himself the love and at the same time the judgment of his coimtrymen. To us, that simple con- fidence of his in the right-mindedness of his fellow- men is very touching, and its success is as strong an argument as we have ever seen in favor of the theory that men can govern themselves. He never aj^j^eals to any vulgar sentiment, he never alludes to the hum- bleness of his origin ; it probably never occurred to him, indeed, that there was anything higher to start from tlian manhood ; and he put himself on a level with those he addressed, not by going down to them, but only by taking it for granted that they had brains and would come up to a common ground of reason. In an article lately printed in The Nation, Mr. Bay- ard Taylor mentions the striking fact, that in the ABRAHAM LINCOLN. 265 foulest dens of the Five Points lie found the portrait of Lincoln. The wretched population that makes its hive there threw all its votes and more against him, and yet paid this instinctive tribute to the sweet hu- manity of his nature. Their ignorance sold its vote and took its money, but all that was left of manhood in them recognized its saint and martyr. Mr. Lincoln is not in the habit of saying, " This is mi/ opinion, or my theory," but " This is the conclu- sion to which, in my judgment, the time has come, and to which, accordingly, the sooner we come the better for us." His policy has been the policy of public opinion based on adequate discussion and on a timely recognition of the influence of passing events in shap- ing the features of events to come. One secret of Mr. Lincoln's remarkable success in captivating the popular mind is undoubtedly an un- consciousness of self which enables him, though under the necessity of constantly using the capital /, to do it without any suggestion of egotism. There is no single vowel which men's mouths can pronounce with such difference of effect. That which one shall hide away, as it were, behind the substance of his dis- course, or, if he bring it to the front, shall use merely to give an agreeable accent of individuality to what he says, another shall make an offensive challenge to the self-satisfaction of all his hearers, and an unwar- ranted intrusion upon each man's sense of personal importance, irritating every pore of his vanity, like a dry northeast wind, to a goose-flesh of opposition and hostility. Mr. Lincoln has never studied Quin- tilian ; ^ but he has, in the earnest simplicity and un- affected Americanism of his own character, one art ^ A famous Latin writer on the Art of Oratory. 266 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. of oratory worth all tlie rest. He forgets himself so entirely in his object as to give his /the sympathetic and persuasive effect of We with the great body of his countrymen. Homely, dispassionate, showing all the rough-edged process of his thought as it goes along, yet arriving at his conclusions with an honest kind of every-day logic, he is so eminently our repre- sentative man, that, when he speaks, it seems as if the people were listening to their own thinking aloud. The dignity of his thought owes nothing to any cere- monial garb of words, but to the manly movement that comes of settled purpose and an energy of reason that knows not what rhetoric means. There has been nothing of Cleon, still less of Strepsiades ^ striving to underbid him in demagogism, to be found in the pub- lic utterances of Mr. Lincoln. He has always ad- dressed the intelligence of men, never their prejudice, their passion, or their ignorance. On the day of his death, this simple Western attor- ney, who according to one party was a vulgar joker, and whom the doctrinaires among his own supporters accused of wanting every element of statesmanship, was the most absolute ruler in Christendom, and this solely by the hold his good-humored sagacity had laid on the hearts and understandings of his countrymen. Nor was this all, for it appeared that he had drawn the great majority, not only of his fellow-citizens, but of mankind also, to his side. So strong and so per- suasive is honest manliness without a single quality of romance or unreal sentiment to help it ! A civilian 1 Two Athenian demagogues, satirized by the dramatist Aris- tophanes. ABRAHAM LINCOLN'S SPEECH. 267 during times of the most captivating military achieve- ment, awkward, with no skill in the lower technicali- ties of manners, he left behind him a fame beyond that of any conqueror, the memory of a grace higher than that of outward person, and of a gentlemanliness deeper than mere breeding. Never before that star- tled April morning did such multitudes of men shed tears for the death of one they had never seen, as if with him a friendly presence had been taken away from their lives, leaving them colder and darker. Never " was funeral panegyric so eloquent as the silent look of sympathy which strangers exchanged when they met on that day. Their common manhood had lost a kinsman. ABRAHAM LINCOLN'S SPEECH AT THE DEDICATION OF THE NATIONAL CEMETERY, GET- TYSBURG, PENNSYLVANIA, NOVEMBER 19, 1863. [The great battles fought at Gettysburg, Pennsylvania, in July, 1863, made that spot historic ground. It was early perceived that the battles were critical, and they are now looked upon by many as the turning-point of the war for the Union. The ground where the fiercest conflict raged was taken for a national cemetery, and the dedication of the place was made an occasion of great solemnity. The ora- tor of the day was Edward Everett, who was regarded as the most finished public speaker in the country. Mr. Ever- ett made a long and eloquent address, and was followed by the President in a little speech which instantaneously af- fected the country, whether people were educated or unlet- tered, as a great speech. The impression created has deep- ened with time. Ralph Waldo Emerson in his essay on Eloquence says : " I believe it to be true that when any 268 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. orator at the bar or the Senate rises in his thought, he de- scends in his language, that is, when he rises to any height of thought or passion, he comes down to a language level with the ear of all his audience. It is the merit of John Brown and of Abraham Lincoln — one at Charlestown, one at Gettysburg — in the two best specimens of eloquence we have had in this country." It is worth while to listen to Mr. Lincoln's own account of the education which prepared him for public speaking. Before he was nominated for the presidency he had at- tracted the notice of people by a remarkable contest in debate with a famous Illinois statesman, Stephen Arnold Douglas. As a consequence Mr. Lincoln received a great many invitations to speak in the Eastern States, and made, among others, a notable speecli at the Cooper Union, New York. Shortly after, he spoke also at New Haven, and the Rev. J. P. Gulliver, in a paper in the Neiu York Indepen- dent^ Sept. 1, 1864, thus reports a conversation which he held with him when travelling in the same railroad car : — " * Ah, that reminds me,' he said, ' of a most extraordi- nary circumstance, which occurred in New Haven, the other day. They told me that the Professor of Rhetoric in Yale College — a very learned man, is n't he ? ' ' Yes, sir, and a very fine critic, too.' ' Well, I suppose so ; he ought to be, at any rate — They told me that he came to hear me and took notes of my speech, and gave a lecture on it to his class the next day ; and, not satisfied with that, he followed me up to Meriden the next evening, and heard me again for the same purpose. Now, if this is so, it is to my mind very extraordinary. I have been sufficiently astonished at my success in the West. It has been most unexpected. But I had no thought of any marked success at tlie East, and least of all that I should draw out such commendations from lit- erary and learned men ! ' " ' That suggests, Mr. Lincoln, an inquiry which has sev- eral times been upon my lips during this conversation. I ABRAHAM LINCOLN'S SPEECH. 269 want very much to know how you got this unusual power of " putting things." It must have been a matter of educa- tion. No man has it by nature alone. What has your edu- cation been ? ' " ' Well, as to education, the newspapers are correct. I never went to school more than six months in my life. But, as you say, this must be a product of culture in some form. I have been putting the question you ask me to myself while you have been talking. I say this, that among my earliest recollections, I remember how, when a mere child, I used to get irritated when anybody talked to me in a way I could not understand. I don't think I ever got angry at anything else in my life. But that always disturbed my temper, and has ever since. I can remember going to my little bedroom, after hearing the neighbors talk of an evening with my father, and spending no small part of the night walking up and down, and trying to make out what was the exact mean- ing of some of their, to me, dark sayings. I could not sleep, though I often tried to, when I got on such a hunt after an idea, until I had caught it ; and when I thought I had got it, I was not satisfied until I had repeated it over and over, until I had put it in language plain enough, as I thought, for any boy I knew to comprehend. This was a kind of passion with me, and it has stuck by me, for I am never easy now, when I am handling a thought, till I have bounded it north and bounded it south and bounded it east and bounded it west. Perhaps that accounts for the characteristic you observe in my speeches, though I never put the two things together before.' " But to the speech it- self.] Fourscore and seven years ago, our fathers brought forth on this continent a new nation, con- ceived in liberty, and dedicated to the proposition that all men are created equal. Now we are engaged in a great civil war, testing whether that nation, or 270 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. any nation so conceived and so dedicated, can long endure. We are met on a great battlefield of that war. We have come to dedicate a i^ortion of that field as a final resting-place for those who here gave their lives that that nation might live. It is alto- gether fitting and proper that we should do this. But in a larger sense we cannot dedicate, we cannot consecrate, we cannot hallow this ground. The brave men, living and dead, who struggled here, have conse- crated it far above our poor power to add or detract. The world will little note, nor long remember, what we say here, but it can never forget what they did here. It is for us, the living, rather to be dedicated here to the unfinished work which they who fought here have thus far so nobly advanced. It is rather for us to be here dedicated to the great task remain- ing before us, — that from these honored dead we take increased devotion to that cause for which they gave the last full measure of devotion, — that we here highly resolve that these dead shall not have died in vain, — that this nation, under God, shall have a new birth of freedom, — and that government of the peo- ple, by the people, for the people, shall not perish from the earth. THE VISION OF SIR LAUNFAL. [Author's Note. — According to the mythology of the Romancers, the San Greal, or Holy Gi'ail, was the cup out of which Jesus Christ partook of the last supper with his disciples. It was brought into England by Joseph of Arima- thea, and remained there, an object of pilgrimage and ado- ration, for many years, in the keeping of his Imeal descend- ants. It was incumbent upon those who had charge of it THE VISION OF SIR LAUNFAL. 271 to be chaste in thought, word, and deed ; but one of the keepers having broken this condition, the Holy Grail dis- appeared. From that time it was a favorite enterprise of the Knights of Arthur's court to go in search of it. Sir Galahad was at last successful in finding it, as may be read in the seventeenth book of the Romance of King Arthur. Tennyson has made Sir Galahad the subject of one of the most exquisite of his poems. The plot (if I may give that name to anything so slight) of the following 23oem is my own, and, to serve its purposes, I have enlarged the circle of competition in search of the miraculous cup in such a manner as to include not only other persons than the heroes of the Round Table, but also a period of time subsequent to the date of King Arthur's reign.] PRELUDE TO PAET FIRST. Over his keys the musing organist, Beginning doubtfully and far away, First lets Ms fingers wander as they list. And builds a bridge from Dreamland for his lay : Then, as the touch of his loved instrument Gives hope and fervor, nearer draws his theme, First guessed by faint auroral flushes sent Along the wavering vista of his dream. Not only around our infancy Doth heaven with all its splendors lie ; lo 9. In allusion to Wordsworth's " Heaven lies about us in our infancy," in his ode, Intimations of Immortality from Recollections of Early Childhood. 272 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. Daily, witli souls that cringe and plot, We Sinais climb and know it not. Over our manhood bend tlie skies ; Against our fallen and traitor lives The great winds utter prophecies : 15 With our faint hearts the mountain strives ; Its arms outstretched, the druid wood Waits with its benedicite ; And to our age's drowsy blood Still shouts the inspiring sea. * 20 Earth gets its price for what Earth gives us ; The beggar is taxed for a corner to die in, The priest hath his fee who comes and shrives us, We bargain for the graves we lie in ; At the Devil's booth are all things sold, 25 Each ounce of dross costs its ounce of gold ; For a cap and bells our lives we pay. Bubbles we buy with a whole soul's tasking : 'T is heaven alone that is given away, 'T is only God may be had for the asking ; so No price is set on the lavish summer ; June may be had by the poorest comer. And what is so rare as a day in June ? Then, if ever, come perfect days ; Then Heaven tries the earth if it be in tune, 35 And over it softly her warm ear lays : 27. In the Middle Ages kings and noblemen had in their courts jesters to make sport for the company ; as every one then wore a dress indicating his rank or occupation, so the jester wore a cap hung with bells. The fool of Shakespeare's plays is the king's jester at his best. THE VISION OF SIR LAUNFAL. 273 Whether we look, or whether we listen, We hear life murmur, or see it glisten ; Every clod feels a stir of might, An instinct within it that reaches and towers, 40 And, groping blindly above it for light. Climbs to a soul in grass and flowers ; The flush of life may well be seen Thrilling back over hills and valleys ; The cowslip startles in meadows green, 45 The buttercup catches the sun in its chalice. And there 's never a leaf nor a blade too mean To be some happy creature's palace ; The little bird sits at his door in the sun, Atilt like a blossom among the leaves, 50 And lets his illumined being o'errun With the deluge of summer it receives ; His mate feels the eggs beneath her wings. And the heart in her dumb breast flutters and sings ; He sings to the wide world, and she to her nest, — 55 In the nice ear of Nature which song is the best ? Now is the high-tide of the year, And whatever of life hath ebbed away Comes flooding back with a ripply cheer. Into every bare inlet and creek and bay ; eo Now the heart is so full that a drop overfills it. We are happy now because God wills it ; No matter how barren the past may have been, 'T is enough for us now that the leaves are green ; We sit in the warm shade and feel right well 65 How the sap creeps up and blossoms swell ; We may shut our eyes, but we cannot help knowing That skies are clear and grass is growing ; The breeze comes whispering in our ear, 274 ' JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. That dandelions are blossoming near, i That maize has sprouted, that streams are flowing, That the river is bluer than the sky. That the robin is plastering his house hard by ; And if the breeze kept the good news back, For other couriers we should not lack ; i We could guess it all by yon heifer's lowing, — And hark ! how clear bold chanticleer. Warmed with the new wine of the year, Tells all in his lusty crowing ! Joy comes, grief goes, we know not how ; s Everything is happy now. Everything is upward striving ; 'T is as easy now for the heart to be true As for grass to be green or skies to be blue, — 'T is the natural way of living : 8 Who knows whither the clouds have fled ? In the unscarred heaven they leave no wake ; And the eyes forget the tears they have shed. The heart forgets its sorrow and ache ; The soul partakes of the season's youth, s And the sulphurous rifts of passion and woe Lie deep 'neath a silence pure and smooth. Like burnt-out craters healed with snow. What wonder if Sir Launfal now Kemembered the keeping of his vow ? 9 PART FIRST. " My golden spurs now bring to me. And bring to me my richest mail, THE VISION OF SIR LA UNFA L. 275 For to-morrow I go over land and sea In search of the Holy Grail ; Shall never a bed for me be spread, loo Nor shall a pillow be under my head, Till I begin my vow to keep ; Here on the rushes will I sleep, And perchance there may come a vision true Ere day create the world anew." 105 Slowly Sir Launfal's eyes grew dim, Slumber fell like a cloud on him. And into his soul the vision flew. II. The crows flapped over by twos and threes, In the pool drowsed the cattle up to their knees, no The little birds sang as if it were The one day of summer in all the year, And the very leaves seemed to sing on the trees : The castle alone in the landscape lay Like an outpost of winter, dull and gray : U5 'T was the proudest hall in the North Countree, And never its gates might opened be. Save to lord or lady of high degree ; Summer besieged it on every side, But the churlish stone her assaults defied ; 120 She could not scale the chilly wall, Though around it for leagues her pavilions tall Stretched left and right. Over the hills and out of sight ; Green and broad was every tent, 125 And out of each a murmur went Till the breeze fell off at night. 276 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. in. The drawbridge dropped with a surly clang, And through the dark arch a charger sprang, Bearing Sir Launfal, the maiden knight, 130 In his gilded mail, that flamed so bright It seemed the dark castle had gathered all Those shafts the fierce sun had shot over its wall In his siege of three hundred summers long. And, binding them all in one blazing sheaf, 135 Had cast them forth : so, young and strong. And lightsome as a locust-leaf. Sir Launfal flashed forth in his unscarred mail, To seek in all climes for the Holy Grail. IV. It was morning on hill and stream and tree, ho And morning in the young knight's heart ; Only the castle moodily Eebuffed the gifts of the sunshine free, And gloomed by itself apart ; The season brimmed all other things up 145 Full as the rain fills the pitcher-plant's cup. V. As Sir Launfal made morn through the darksome gate, He was 'ware of a leper, crouched by the same. Who begged with his hand and moaned as he sate ; And a loathing over Sir Launfal came ; 150 The sunshine went out of his soul with a thrill. The flesh 'neath his armor 'gan shrink and crawl, And midway its leap his heart stood still Like a frozen waterfall ; For this man, so foul and bent of stature, 155 THE VISION OF SIR LAUNPAL. 277 Rasped harshly against his dainty nature, And seemed the one blot on the summer morn, — So he tossed him a piece of gold in scorn. VI. The leper raised not the gold from the dust : " Better to me the poor man's crust, leo Better the blessing of the poor, Though I turn me empty from his door ; That is no true alms which the hand can hold ; He gives nothing but worthless gold Who gives from a sense of duty ; i65 But he who gives but a slender mite. And gives to that which is out of sight. That thread of the all-sustaining Beauty Which runs through all and doth all unite, — The hand cannot clasp the whole of his alms, no The heart outstretches its eager palms. For a god goes with it and makes it store To the soul that was starving in darkness before." PRELUDE TO PART SECOND. Down swept the chill wind from the mountain peak. From the snow five thousand summers old ; i75 On open wold and hill-top bleak It had gathered all the cold. And whirled it like sleet on the wanderer's cheek : It carried a shiver everywhere 174. Note the different moods that are indicated by the two preUides. The one is of June, the other of snow and winter. By these preludes the poet, like an organist, strikes a key which he holds in the subsequent parts. 278 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. From tlie unleaf ed boughs and pastures bare ; iso The little brook heard it and built a roof 'Neath which he could house him, winter-proof ; All night by the white stars' frosty gleams He groined his arches and matched his beams ; Slender and clear were his crystal spars i85 As the lashes of light that trim the stars ; He sculptured every summer delight In his halls and chambers out of sight ; Sometimes his tinkling waters slipt Down through a frost-leaved forest-crypt, 190 Long, sparkling aisles of steel-stemmed trees Bending to counterfeit a breeze ; Sometimes the roof no fretwork knew But silvery mosses that downward grew ; Sometimes it was carved in sharp relief 195 With quaint arabesques of ice-fern leaf ; Sometimes it was simply smooth and clear For the gladness of heaven to shine through, and here He had caught the nodding bulrush-tops And hung them thickly with diamond-drops, 200 That crystalled the beams of moon and sun, And made a star of every one : No mortal builder's most rare device Could match this winter-palace of ice ; 'T was as if every image that mirrored lay 205 In his depths serene through the summer day, Each fleeting shadow of earth and sky. Lest the happy model should be lost, 203. The Empress of Russia, Catherine II., in a magnificent freak, built a palace of ice, which was a nine-days' wonder. Cowper has given a poetical description of it in The Taskj Book V. lines 131-176. THE VISION OF SIR LAUNFAL. 279 Had been mimicked in fairy masonry By the elfin builders of the frost- , 210 Within the hall are song and laughter, The cheeks of Christmas grow red and jolly, And sprouting is every corbel and rafter With lightsome green of ivy and holly; Through the deep gulf of the chimney wide 215 Wallows the Yule-log's roaring tide ; The broad flame-pennons droop and flap And belly and tug as a flag in the wind ; Like a locust shrills the imprisoned sap, Hunted to death in its galleries blind ; 220 And swift little troops of silent sparks. Now pausing, now scattering away as in fear. Go threading the soot-forest's tangled darks Like herds of startled deer. But the wind without was eager and sharp, 225 Of Sir Launfal's gray hair it makes a harp. And rattles and wrings The. icy strings. Singing, in dreary monotone, A Christmas carol of its own, 230 Whose burden still, as he might guess, ^as — " Shelterless, shelterless, shelterless ! " The voice of the seneschal flared like a torch As he shouted the wanderer away from the porch, 216. The Yule-log was anciently a huge log burned at the feast of Juul (pronounced Yule) by our Scandinavian ancestors in honor of the god Thor. Juul-tid (Yule-time) corresponded in time to Christmas tide, and when Christian festivities took the place of pagan, many ceremonies remained. The great log, still called the Yule-log, was dragged in and burned in the fireplace after Thor had been forgotten. 280 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. And he sat in the gateway and saw all night 235 The great hall-fire, so cheery and bold, Through the window-slits of the castle old, Build out its piers of ruddy light, Against the drift of the cold. PART SECOND. There was never a leaf on bush or tree, 240 The bare boughs rattled shudderingly ; The river was dumb and could not speak, For the weaver Winter its shroud had spun. A single crow on the tree-top bleak From his shining feathers shed off the cold sun ; 245 Again it was morning, but shrunk and cold. As if her veins were sapless and old. And she rose up decrepitly For a last dim look at earth and sea. II. 250 Sir Launfal turned from his own hard gate. For another heir in his earldom sate ; An old, bent man, worn out and frail. He came back from seeking the Holy Grail ; Little he recked of his earldom's loss. No more on his surcoat was blazoned the cross, 255 But deep in his soul the sign he wore. The badge of the suffering and the poor. III. Sir Launfal's raiment thin and spare Was idle mail 'gainst the barbed air. THE VISION OF SIR LAUNFAL, 281 For it was just at the Christmas time ; 260 So he mused, as he sat, of a sunnier clime, And sought for a shelter from cold and snow In the light and warmth of long-ago ; He sees the snake-like caravan crawl O'er the edge of the desert, black and small, 265 Then nearer and nearer, till, one by one, He can count the camels in the sun, As over the red-hot sands they pass To where, in its slender necklace of grass. The little spring laughed and leapt in the shade, 270 And with its own self like an infant played. And waved its signal of palms. IV. " For Christ's sweet sake, I beg an alms ; " — The happy camels may reach the spring. But Sir Launfal sees only the grewsome thing, 275 The leper, lank as the rain-blanched bone. That cowers beside him, a thing as lone And white as the ice-isles of Northern seas In the desolate horror of his disease. And Sir Launfal said, — "I behold in thee 280 An image of Him who died on the tree ; Thou also hast had thy crown of thorns, — Thou also hast had the world's buffets and scorns, — And to thy life were not denied The wounds in the hands and feet and side ; 285 Mild Mary's Son, acknowledge me ; Behold, through him, I give to Thee ! " 282 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. VI. Then the soul of the leper stood up in his eyes And looked at Sir Launfal, and straightway he Remembered in what a haughtier guise 290 He had flung an alms to leprosie, When he girt his young life up in gilded mail And set forth in search of the Holy Grail. The heart within him was ashes and dust ; He parted in twain his single crust, 295 He broke the ice on the streamlet's brink, And gave the leper to eat and drink : 'T was a mouldy crust of coarse brown bread, 'T was water out of a wooden bowl, — Yet with fine wheaten bread was the leper fed, 300 And 't was red wine he drank with his thirsty soul. VII. As Sir Launfal mused with a downcast face, A light shone round about the place ; The leper no longer crouched at his side, But stood before him glorified, 305 Shining and tall and fair and straight As the pillar that stood by the Beautiful Gate, — Himself the Gate whereby men can Enter the temple of God in Man. VIII. His words were shed softer than leaves from the pine, 310 And they fell on Sir Launfal as snows on the brine. That mingle their softness and quiet in one With the shaggy unrest they float down upon ; And the voice that was calmer than silence said. THE VISION OF SIR LAUNFAL. 283 " Lo, it is I, be not afraid ! 315 In many climes, without avail, Thou hast spent thy life for the Holy Grail ; Behold, it is here, — this cup which thou Didst fill at the streamlet for Me but now ; This crust is My body broken for thee, 320 This water His blood that died on the tree ; The Holy Supper is kept, indeed, In whatso we share with another's need : Not what we give, but what we share, — For the gift without the giver is bare ; 325 Who gives himself with his alms feeds three, — Himself, his hungering neighbor, and Me." IX. Sir Launfal awoke as from a swound : — " The Grail in my castle here is found ! Hang my idle armor up on the wall, 330 Let it be the spider's banquet-hall ; He must be fenced with stronger mail Who would seek and find the Holy Grail." X. The castle gate stands open now. And the wanderer is welcome to the hall 335 As the hangbird is to the elm-tree bough : No longer scowl the turrets tall. The Summer's long siege at last is o'er ; When the first poor outcast went in at the door. She entered with him in disguise, 340 And mastered the fortress by surprise ; There is no spot she loves so well on ground. She lingers and smiles there the whole year round ; 284 JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL. The meanest serf on Sir Launfal's land Has hall and bower at his command ; And there 's no poor man in the North Countree But is lord of the earldom as much as he. RALPH WALDO EMERSON. BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. Ralph Waldo Emerson was born in Boston, May 25, 1803. His father, his grandfather, and his great-grand- father were all ministers, and, indeed, on both his father's and mother's side he belongs to a continuous line of minis- terial descent from the seventeenth century. At the time of his birth, his father, the Rev. William Emerson, was minis- ter of the First Church congregation, but on his death a few years afterward, Ralph Waldo Emerson, a boy of seven, went to live in the old manse at Concord, where his grand- father had lived when the Concord fight occurred. The old manse was afterward the home at one time of Hawthorne, who wrote there the stories which he gathered into the vol- ume, Mosses from a7i Old Ma7ise. Emerson was graduated at Harvard in 1821, and after teaching a year or two gave himself to the study of divinity. From 1827 to 1832 he preached in Unitarian churches, and was for four years a colleague pastor in the Second Church in Boston. He then left the ministry and afterward devoted himself to literature. He travelled abroad in 1833, in 1847, and again in 1872, making friends among the leading think- ers during his first journey, and confirming the friendships when again in Europe ; with the exception of these three journeys and occasional lecturing tours in the United States, he lived quietly at Concord until his death, April 27, 1882. He had delivered several special addresses, and in his early manhood was an important lecturer in the Lyceum 286 RALPH WALDO EMERSON. courses which were so popular, especially in New England, forty years ago, but his first published book was Nature, in 1839. Subsequent prose writings were his Essays, under that title, and in several volumes with specific titles, Repre- sentative Men, and English Traits. In form the prose is either the oration or the essay, with one exception. Eng- lish Traits records the observations of the writer after his first two journeys to England ; and while it may loosely be classed among essays, it has certain distinctive features which separate it from the essays of the same writer; there is in it narrative, reminiscence, and description, which make it more properly the note-book of a philosophic traveller. It may be said of his essays as well as of his dehberate orations that the writer never was wholly unmindful of an audience ; he was conscious always that he was not merely delivering his mind, but speaking directly to men. One is aware of a certain pointedness of speech which turns the writer into a speaker, and the printed words into a sounding voice. He wrote poems when in college, but his first publication of verse was through The Dial, a magazine established in 1840, and the representative of a knot of men and women of whom Emerson was the acknowledged or unacknow- ledged leader. The first volume of his poems was pub- lished in 1847, and included those by which he is best known, as The Problem, The Sphinx, The Rhodora, The Humble Bee, Hymn Sung at the Compjletioii of the Con- cord Monument. After the establishment of the Atlantic Monthly in 1857, he contributed to it both prose and poetry, and verses published in the early numbers, mere enigmas to some, profound revelations to others, were fruitful of discus- sion and thought ; his second volume of poems, May Day and other Pieces, was not issued until 1867. Since then a volume of his collected poetry has appeared, containing most of those published in the two volumes, and a few in addi- tion. We are told, however, that the published vrritings of BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. 287 Emerson bear but small proportion to the unpublished. Many lectures have been delivered, but not printed ; many- poems written, and a few read, which have never been pub- lished. The inference from this, borne out by the marks upon what has been published, is that Mr. Emerson set a high value upon literature, and was jealous of the preroga- tive of the poet. He is frequently called a seer, and this old word, indicating etymologically its original intention, is applied well to a poet who saw into nature and human life with a spiritual power which made him a marked man in his own time, and one destined to an unrivalled place in lit- erature. He fulfilled Wordsworth's lines : — " With an eye made quiet by the power Of harmony, and the deep power of joy, We see into the life of things." BEHAVIOR. Grace, Beauty, and Caprice Build this golden portal ; Graceful women, chosen men, Dazzle every mortal : Their sweet and lofty countenance His enchanting food ; He need not go to them, their forms Beset his solitude. He looketh seldom in their face. His eyes explore the ground. The green grass is a looking-glass Whereon their traits are found. Little he says to them, So dances his heart in his breast, Their tranquil mien bereaveth him Of wit, of words, of rest. Too weak too win, to fond to shun The tyrants of his doom, The much-deceived Endymion Slips behind a tomb. The soul which animates Nature is not less signifi- cantly published in the figure, movement, and gesture of animated bodies, than in its last vehicle of articulate speech. This silent and subtile language is Manners ; not wliat^ but liow. Life expresses. A statue has no tongue, and needs none. Good tableaux do not need declamation. Nature tells every secret once. Yes, but in man she tells it all the time, by form, attitude, gesture, mien, face, and parts of the face, and by the whole action of the machine. The visible carriage or action of the individual, as resulting from his organi- zation and his will combined, we call manners. What are they but thought entering the hands and feet, con- trolling the movements of the body, the speech and behavior ? BEHAVIOR. 289 There is always a best way of doing everything, if it be to boil an egg. Manners are the happy ways of doing things ; each once a stroke of genius or of love, — now repeated and hardened into usage. They form at last a rich varnish, with which the routine of life is washed, and its details adorned. If they are super- ficial, so are the dewdrops which give such a depth to the morning meadows. Manners are very communi- cable ; men catch them from each other. Consuelo, in the romance,^ boasts of the lessons she had given the nobles in manners, on the stage ; and, in real life, Talma ^ taught Napoleon the arts of behavior. Genius invents fine manners, which the baron and the baron- ess copy very fast, and, by the advantage of a palace, better the instruction. They stereotype the lesson they have learned into a mode. The power of manners is incessant, — an element as unconcealable as fire. The nobility cannot in any country be disguised, and no more in a republic or a democracy than in a kingdom. No man can resist their influence. There are certain manners which are learned in good society, of that force, that, if a person have them, he or she must be considered, and is every- where welcome, though without beauty, or wealth, or genius. Give a boy address and accomplishments, and you give him the mastery of palaces and fortunes where he goes. He has not the trouble of earning or owning them ; they solicit him to enter and possess. We send girls of a timid, retreating disposition to the boarding-school, to the riding-school, to the ball-room, or wheresoever they can come into acquaintance and nearness of leading persons of their own sex ; where ^ Of the same name, by George Sand. 2 A celebrated actor. 290 RALPH WALDO EMERSON. they might learn address, and see it near at hand. The power of a woman of fashion to lead, and also to daunt and repel, derives from their belief that she knows resources and behaviors not known to them ; but when these have mastered her secret, they learn to confront her, and recover their self-possession. Every day bears witness to their gentle rule. People who would obtrude, now do not obtrude. The medi- ocre circle learns to demand that which belongs to a hieh state of nature or of culture. Your manners are always under examination, and by committees little suspected, — a police in citizens' clothes, — but are awarding or denying you very high prizes when you least think of it. We talk much of utilities, but 't is our manners that associate us. In hours of business, we go to him who knows, or has, or does this or that which we want, and we do not let our taste or feeling stand in the way. But this activity over, we return to the indolent state, and wish for those we can be at ease with ; those who will go where we go, whose manners do not offend us, whose social tone chimes with ours. When we reflect on their persuasive and cheering force ; how they rec- ommend, prepare, and draw people together ; how, in all clubs, manners make the members ; how manners make the fortune of the ambitious youth ; that, for the most part, his manners marry him, and, for the most part, he marries manners ; when we think what keys they are, and to what secrets ; what high lessons and inspiring tokens of character they convey ; and what divination is required in us, for the reading of this fine telegraph, we see what range the subject has, and what relations to convenience, power, and beauty. Their first service is very low, — when they are tlie BEHA VIOR. 291 minor morals : but 't is the beginning of civility, — to make us, I mean, endurable to each other. We prize them for their rough-plastic, abstergent force ; to get people out of the quadruped state ; to get them washed, clothed, and set up on end ; to slough their animal husks and habits ; compel them to be clean ; overawe their spite and meanness, teach them to stifle the base, and choose the generous expression, and make them know how much happier the generous behaviors are. Bad behavior the laws cannot reach. Society is infested with rude, cynical, restless, and frivolous per- sons who prey upon the rest, and whom a public opinion concentrated into good manners — forms accepted by the sense of all — can reach : the contradictors and railers at public and private tables, who are like ter- riers, who conceive it the duty of a dog of lionor to growl at any passer-by, and do the honors of the house by barking him out of sight ; — I have seen men who neigh like a horse when you contradict them, or say something which they do not understand : — then the overbold, who make their own invitation to your hearth ; the persevering talker, who gives you his society in large, saturating doses ; the pitiers of them- selves, — a perilous class ; the frivolous Asmodeus, who relies on you to find him in ropes of sand to twist ; the monotones ; in short, every stripe of ab- surdity ; — these are social inflictions which the magis- trate cannot cure or defend you from, and which must be intrusted to the restraining force of custom, and proverbs, and familiar rules of behavior impressed on young people in their school-days. In ■ the hotels on the banks of the Mississippi, they print, or used to print, among the rules of the house, that " no gentleman can be permitted to come to the 292 RALPH WALDO EMERSON. public table without his coat ; " and in the same coun- try, in the pews of the churches, little placards plead with the worshipper against the fury of expectoration. Charles Dickens self-sacrificingiy undertook the refor- mation of our American manners in unspeakable par- ticulars. I think the lesson was not quite lost ; that it held bad manners up, so that the churls could see the deformity. Unhappily, the book had its own de- formities. It ought not to need to print in a reading- room a caution to strangers not to speak loud ; nor to persons who look over fine engravings, that they should be handled like cobwebs and butterflies' wings ; nor to persons who look at marble statues, that they shall not smite them with canes. But, even in the perfect civilization of this city, such cautions are not quite needless in the Athenaeum and City Library. Manners are factitious, and grow out of circum- stance as well as out of character. If you look at the pictures of patricians and of peasants, of different periods and countries, you will see how well they match the same classes in our towns. The mod'ern aristocrat not only is well drawn in Titian's Venetian doges, and in Roman coins and statues, but also in the pictures which Commodore Perry brought home of dignitaries in Japan. Broad lands and great interests not only arrive to such heads as can manage them, but form manners of power. A keen eye, too, will see nice gradations of rank, or see in the manners the degree of homage the party is wont to receive. A prince who is accustomed every day to be courted and deferred to by the highest grandees, acquires a corre- sponding expectation, and a becoming mode of receiv- ing and replying to this homage. There are always exceptional people and modes. BEHA VIOR. 293 English grandees affect to be farmers. Claverhouse is a fop, and, under the finish of dress, and levity of behavior, hides the terror of his war. But Nature and Destiny are honest, and never fail to leave their mark, to hang out a sign for each and for every qual- ity. It is much to conquer one's face, and perhaps the ambitious youth thinks he has got the whole secret when he has learned that disengaged manners are commanding. Don't be deceived by a facile exterior. Tender men sometimes have strong wills. We had, in Massachusetts, an old statesman, who had sat all his life in courts and in chairs of state, without over- coming an extreme irritability of face, voice, and bear- ing ; when he spoke, his voice would not serve him ; it cracked, it broke, it wheezed, it piped : little cared he ; he knew that it had got to pipe, or wheeze, or screech his argument and his indignation. When he sat down, after speaking, he seemed in a sort of fit, and held on to his chair with both hands ; but underneath all this irritability was a puissant will, firm and advancing, and a memory in which lay in order and method like geologic strata every fact of his history, and under the control of his will. Manners are partly factitious, but, mainly, there must be capacity for culture in the blood. Else all culture is vain. The obstinate prejudice in favor of blood, which lies at the base of the feudal and mon- archical fabrics of the Old World, has some reason in common experience. Every man — mathematician, artist, soldier, or merchant — looks with confidence for some traits and talents in his own child, which he would not dare to presume in the child of a stranger. The Orientalists are very orthodox on this point. "Take a thorn-bush," said the emir Abdel-Kader, 294 RALPH WALDO EMERSON, *' and sjii'inkle it for a whole year with water ; it will yield nothing but thorns. Take a date-tree, leave it without culture, and it will always produce dates. Nobility is the date-tree, and the Arab populace is a bush of thorns." A main fact in the history of manners is the won- derful expressiveness of the human body. If it were made of glass, or of air, and the thoughts were written on steel tablets within, it could not publish more truly its meaning than now. Wise men read very sharply all your private history in your look and gait and be- havior. The whole economy of nature is bent on ex- pression. The tell-tale body is all tongues. Men are like Geneva watches with crystal faces which expose the whole movement. They carry the liquor of life flowing up and down in these beautiful bottles, and announcing to the curious how it is with them. The face and eyes reveal what the spirit is doing, how old it is, what aims it has. The eyes indicate the antiquity of the soul, or through how many forms it has already ascended. It almost violates the proprieties, if we say above the breath here, what the confessing eyes do not hesitate to utter to every street passenger. Man cannot fix his eye on the sun, and so far seems im23erfect. In Siberia, a late traveller found men who could see the satellites of Jupiter with their un- armed eye. In some respects the animals excel us. The birds have a longer sight, beside the advantage by their wings of a higher observatory. A cow can bid her calf, by secret signal, probably of the eye, to run away, or to lie down and hide itself. The jockeys say of certain horses, that " they look over the whole ground." The out-door life, and hunting, and labor, give equal vigor to the human eye. A farmer looks BEHA VIOR. 295 out at you as strong as the horse ; his eye-beam is like the stroke of a staff. An eye can threaten like a loaded and levelled gun, or can insult like hissing or kicking ; or, in its altered mood, by beams of kind- ness, it can make the heart dance with joy. The eye obeys exactly the action of the mind. When a thought strikes us, the eyes fix, and remain gazing at a distance ; in enumerating the names of persons or of countries, as France, Germany, Spain, Turkey, the eyes wink at each new name. There is no nicety of learning sought by the mind which the eyes do not vie in acquiring. " An artist," said Michel Angelo, '' must have his measuring tools not in the hand, but in the eye ; " and there is no end to the catalogue of its performances, whether in indolent vision (that of health and beauty), or in strained vi- sion (that of art and labor). Eyes are bold as lions, — roving, running, leaping, here and there, far and near. They speak all lan- guages. They wait for no introduction ; they are no Englishmen ; ask no leave of age or rank ; they re- spect neither poverty nor riches, neither learning nor power, nor virtue, nor sex, but intrude, and come again, and go through and through you, in a moment of time. What inundation of life and thought is dis- charged from one soul into another, through them ! The glance is natural magic. The mysterious com- munication established across a house between two entire strangers, moves all the springs of wonder. The communication by the glance is in the greatest part not subject to the control of the will. It is the bodily symbol of identity of nature. We look into the eyes to know if this other form is another self, and the eyes will not lie, but make a faithful confes- 296 RALPH WALDO EMERSON. sion what inhabitant is there. The, revelations are sometimes terrific. The confession of a low, usurping devil is there made, and the observer shall seem to feel the stirring of owls, and bats, and horned hoofs, where he looked for innocence and simplicity. 'T is remarkable, too, that the spirit that appears at the windows of the house does at once invest himself in a new form of his own, to the mind of the beholder. The eyes of men converse as much as their tongues, with the advantage, that the ocular dialect needs no dictionary, but is understood all the world over. When the eyes say one thing, and the tongue another, a practised man relies on the language of the first. If the man is off his centre, the eyes show it. You can read in the eyes of your companion, whether your argument hits him, though his tongue will not confess it. There is a look by which a man shows he is going to say a good thing, and a look when he has said it. Vain and forgotten are all the fine offers and offices of hospitality, if there is no holiday in the eye. How many furtive inclinations avowed by the eye, though dissembled by the lips ! One comes away from a company, in which, it may easily happen, he has said nothing, and no important remark has been addressed to him, and yet, if in sympathy with the society, he shall not have a sense of this fact, such a stream of life has been flowing into him, and out from him, through the eyes. There are eyes, to be sure, that give no more admission into the man than blue- berries. Others are liquid and deep, — wells that a man might fall into ; — others are aggressive and de- vouring, seem to call out the police, take all too much notice, and require crowded Broadways, and the se- curity of millions, to protect individuals against them. BEHA VI OR. 297 The military eye I meet, now darkly sparkling under clerical, now under rustic, brows. Tis the city of Lacedaemon ; 't is a stack of bayonets. There are asking eyes, asserting eyes, prowling eyes ; and eyes full of fate, — some of good, and some of sinister, omen. The alleged power to charm down insanity, or ferocity in beasts, is a power behind the qjq. It must be a victory achieved in the will, before it can be sig- nified in the eye. 'T is very certain that each man carries in his eye the exact indication of his rank in the immense scale of men, and we are always learning to read it. A complete man should need no auxilia- ries to his personal j)resence. Whoever looked on him would consent to his will, being certified that his aims were generous and universal. The reason why men do not obey us, is because they see the mud at the bottom of our eye. If the organ of sight is such a vehicle of power, the other features have their own. A man finds room in the few square inches of the face for the traits of all his ancestors ; for the expression of all his history, and his wants. The sculptor, and Winckelmann, and Lavater, will tell you how significant a feature is the nose ; how its form expresses strength or weakness of will and good or bad temper. The nose of Ju- lius Caesar, of Dante, and of Pitt suggest " the ter- rors of the beak." What refinement, and what limitations, the teeth betray ! " Beware you don't laugh," said the wise mother, " for then you show all your faults." Balzac left in manuscript a chapter, which he called " Theorie de la demarche.,'' in which he says : '' The look, the voice, the respiration, and the attitude or walk are identical. But, as it has nq^ been given to 298 RALPH WALDO EMERSON. man, the power to stand guard, at once, over these four different simultaneous expressions of his thought, watch that which one speaks out the truth, and you will know the whole man." Palaces interest us mainly in the exhibition of man- ners, which in the idle and expensive society dwelling in them are raised to a high art. The maxim of courts is that manner is power. A calm and resolute bearing, a polished speech, and embellishment of tri- fles, and the art of hiding all uncomfortable feeling, are essential to the courtier, and Saint Simon, and Cardinal de Retz, and Roederer, and an encyclojDsedia of Ilemoires will instruct you, if you wish, in those potent secrets. Thus, it is a point of pride with kings to remember faces and names. It is reported of one prince, that his head had the air of leaning down- wards, in order not to humble the crowd. There are people who come in ever like a child with a piece of good news. It was said of the late Lord Holland, that he always came down to breakfast with the air of a man who had just met with some signal good for- tune. In Notre Dame the grandee took his place on the dais, with the look of one who is thinking of something else. But we must not peep and eavesdrop at palace-doors. Fine manners need the support of fine manners in others. A scholar may be a well-bred man, or he may not. The enthusiast is introduced to polished scholars in society, and is chilled and silenced by finding him- self not in their element. They all have somewhat which he has not, and, it seems, ought to have. But if he finds the scholar apart from his companions, it is then the enthusiast's turn, and the scholar has no defence, but must deal on his terms. Now they must BEHA VIOR. 299 fight the battle out on their private strength. What is the talent of that character so common, — the suc- cessful man of the world, — in all marts, senates, and drawing-rooms ? Manners : manners of power ; sense to see his advantage, and manners up to it. See him approach his man. He knows that troops behave as they are handled at first ; — that is his cheap secret ; just what happens to every two persons who meet on any affair, one instantly perceives that he has the key of the situation, that his will comprehends the other's will, as the cat does the mouse, and he has only to use courtesy, and furnish good-natured reasons to his vic- tim to cover up the chain, lest he be shamed into re- sistance. The theatre in which this science of manners has a formal importance is not with us a court, but dress- circles, wherein, after the close of the day's business, men and women meet at leisure, for mutual entertain- ment, in ornamented drawing-rooms. Of course, it has every variety of attraction and merit ; but, to earnest persons, to youths or maidens who have great objects at heart, we cannot extol it highly. A well- dressed, talkative company, where each is bent to amuse the other, — yet the high-born Turk who came hither fancied that every woman seemed to be suffer- ing for a chair ; that all talkers were brained and ex- hausted by the de-oxygenated air ; it spoiled the best persons : it put all on stilts. Yet here are the secret biographies written and read. The aspect of that man is repulsive ; I do not wish to deal with him. The other is irritable, shy, and on his guard. The youth looks humble and manly : I choose him. Look on this woman. There is not beauty, nor brilliant say- ings, nor distinguished power to serve you ; but all see 300 RALPH WALDO EMERSON. her gladly ; her whole air and impression are health- ful. Here come the sentimentalists, and the invalids. Here is Elise, who caught cold in coming into the world, and has always increased it since. Here are creep-mouse manners ; and thievish manners. " Look at Northcote," said Fuseli ; " he looks like a rat that has seen a cat." In the shallow company, easily ex- cited, easily tired, here is the columnar Bernard : the Alleghanies do not express more repose than his be- havior. Here are the sweet, following eyes of Cecile : it seemed always that she demanded the heart. No- thing can be more excellent in kind than the Corin- thian grace of Gertrude's manners, and yet Blanche, who has no manners, has better manners than she ; for the movements of Blanche are the sallies of a spirit which is sufficient for the moment, and she can afford to express every thought by instant action. Manners have been somewhat cynically defined to be a contrivance of wise men to keep fools at a dis- tance. Fashion is shrewd to detect those who do not belong to her train, and seldom wastes her attentions. Society is very swift in its instincts, and, if you do not belong to it, resists and sneers at you ; or quietly drops you. The first weapon enrages the party at- tacked ; the second is still more effective, but is not to be resisted, as the date of the transaction is not easily found. People grow up and grow old under this infliction, and never suspect the truth, ascribing the solitude which acts on them very injuriously to any cause but the right one. The basis of good manners is self-reliance. Neces- sity is the law of all who are not self-possessed. Those who are not self-possessed obtrude and pain us. Some men appear to feel that they belong to a Pariah caste. BEHA VI OR. 301 They fear to offend, they bend and apologize, and walk through life with a timid step. As we sometimes dream that we are in a well- dressed company without any coat, so Godfrey acts ever as if he suffered from some mortifying circum- stance. The hero should find himself at home, wher- ever he is ; should impart comfort by his own security and good-nature to all beholders. The hero is suffered to be himself. A person of strong mind comes to per- ceive that for him an immunity is secured so long as he renders to society that service wdiich is native and proper to him, — an immunity from all the observ- ances, yea, and duties, which society so tyrannically im- poses on the rank and file of its members. " Euripi- des," says Aspasia, " has not the fine manners of Sophocles : " but," she adds, good-humoredly, '' the movers and masters of our souls have surely a right to throw out their limbs as carelessly as they please on the world that belongs to them, and before the crea- tures they have animated." ^ Manners require time, as nothing is more vulgar than haste. Friendship should be surrounded with ceremonies and respects, and not crushed into corners. Friendship requires more time than poor busy men can usually command. Here comes to me Roland, with a delicacy of sentiment leading and inwrapping him like a divine cloud or holy ghost. 'T is a great destitution to both that this should not be entertained with large leisures, but contrariwise should be balked by importunate affairs. But through this lustrous varnish, the reality is ever shining. 'T is hard to keep the what from breaking through this pretty painting of the hou\ The core ^ Laudor, Pericles and Aspasia. 302 RALPH WALDO EMERSON. will come to the surface. Strong will and keen per- ception overpower old manners, and create new ; and the thought of the present moment has a greater value than all the past. In persons of character we do not remark manners, because of their instantaneousness. We are surprised by the thing done, out of all power to watch the way of it. Yet nothing is more charming than to recognize the great style which runs through the action of such. People masquerade before us in their fortunes, titles, offices, and connections, as aca- demic or civil presidents, or senators, or professors, or great lawyers, and impose on the frivolous, and a good deal on each other, by these fames. At least, it is a point of prudent good manners to treat these reputa- tions tenderly, as if they were merited. But the sad realist knows these fellows at a glance, and they know him ; as when in Paris the chief of the police enters a ball-room, so many diamonded pretenders shrink and make themselves as inconspicuous as they can, or give him a supplicating look as they pass. " I had re- ceived," said a sibyl, — "I had received at birth the fatal gift of penetration ; " and these Cassandras are always born. Manners impress as they indicate real power. A man who is sure of his point carries a broad and con- tented expression, which everybody reads. And you cannot rightly train one to an air and manner except by making him the kind of man of whom that manner is the natural expression. Nature forever puts a pre- mium on reality. What is done for effect is seen to be done for effect ; what is done for love is felt to be done for love. A man inspires affection and honor, because he was not lying in wait for these. The things of a man for which we visit him, were done in BEHA VI OR. 303 the dark and the cold. A little integrity is better than any career. So deep are the sources of this sur- face-action, that even the size of your companion seems to vary with his freedom of thought. Not only is he larger, when at ease, and his thoughts generous, but everything around him becomes variable with expres- sion. No carpenter's rule, no rod and chain, will measure the dimensions of any house or house-lot : go into the house : if the proprietor is constrained and deferring, 't is of no importance how large his house, how beautiful his grounds, — you quickly come to the end of all ; but if the man is self-possessed, happy, and at home, his house is deep-founded, indefinitely large and interesting, the roof and dome buoyant as the sky. Under the humblest roof, the commonest person in plain clothes sits there massive, cheerful, yet formi- dable like the Egyptian colossi. Neither Aristotle, nor Leibnitz, nor Junius, nor Champollion has set down the grammar-rules of this dialect, older than Sanscrit ; but they who cannot yet read English, can read this. Men take each other's measure, when they meet for the first time, — and every time they meet. How do they get this rapid knowledge, even before they speak, of each other's power and dispositions ? One would say that the per- suasion of their speech is not in what they say, — or, that men do not convince by their argument, — but by their personality, by who they are, and what they said and did heretofore. A man already strong is listened to, and everything he says is applauded. Another opposes him with sound argument, but the argument is scouted, until by and by it gets into the mind of some weighty person ; then it begins to tell on the community. 304 RALPH WALDO EMERSON. Self-reliance is the basis of behavior, as it is the guaranty that the powers are not squandered in too much demonstration. In this country, where school education is universal, we have a superficial culture, and a profusion of reading and writing and expres- sion. We parade our nobilities in poems and ora- tions, instead of working them up into happiness. There is a whisper out of the ages to him who can understand it, — " Whatever is known to thyself alone has always very great value." There is some reason to believe that, when a man does not write his poetry, it escapes by other vents through him, instead of the one vent of writing; clings to his form and manners, whilst poets have often nothing poetical about them except their verses. Jacobi said, that " when a man has fully expressed his thought, he has somewhat less possession of it." One would say, the rule is, — AVhat a man is irresistibly urged to say, helps him and us. In explaining his thought to others, he explains it to himself : but when he opens it for show, it corrupts him. Society is the stage on which manners are shown ; novels are their literature. Novels are the journal or record of manners ; and the new importance of these boaks derives from the fact that the novelist begins to penetrate the surface, and treat this part of life more worthily. The novels used to be all alike, and had a quite vulgar tone. The novels used to lead us on to a foolish interest in the fortunes of the boy and girl they described. The boy was to be raised from a humble to a high position. He was in want of a wife and a castle, and the object of the story was to supply him with one or both. We watched sympathetically, step by step, his climbing, until, at last, the point is BEHA VI OR. 305 gained, tlie wedding day is fixed, and we follow the gala procession home to the bannered portal, when the doors are slammed in our face, and the poor reader is left outside in the cold, not enriched by so much as an idea, or a virtuous impulse. But the victories of character are instant, and vic- tories for all. Its greatness enlarges all. We are fortified by every heroic anecdote. The novels are as useful as Bibles, if they teach you the secret, that the best of life is conversation, and the greatest success is confidence, or perfect understanding between sincere people. 'T is a French definition of friendship, rien que s'entendre.) good understanding. The highest compact we can make with our fellow is, — " Let there be truth between us two for evermore." That is the charm in all good novels, as it is the charm in all good histories, that the heroes mutually understand, from the first, and deal loyally and with a profound trust in each other. It is sublime to feel and say of another, I need never meet, or speak, or write to him : we need not reinforce ourselves, or send tokens of remem- brance : I rely on him as on myself : if he did thus, or thus, I know it was right. In all the superior people I have met, I notice di- rectness, truth spoken more truly, as if everything of obstruction, of malformation, had been trained away. What have they to conceal ? What have they to ex- hibit ? Between simple and noble persons there is al- ways a quick intelligence : they recognize at sight, and meet on a better ground than the talents and skills they may chance to possess, namely, on sincerity and uprightness. For, it is not what talents or genius a man has, but how he is to his talents, that consti- tutes friendship and character. The man that stands 306 RALPH WALDO EMERSON. by himself, the universe stands by him also. It is re- lated of the monk Basle, that, being excommunicated by the Pope, he was, at his death, sent in charge of an angel to find a fit place of suffering in hell ; but, such was the eloquence and good-humor of the monk, that wherever he went he was received gladly, and civilly treated, even by the most uncivil angels : and, when he came to discourse with them, instead of contradict- ing or forcing him, they took his part, and adopted his manners ; and even good angels came from far, to see him, and take up their abode with him. The an- gel that was sent to find a place of torment for him attempted to remove him to a worse pit, but with no better success ; for such was the contented spirit of the monk, that he found something to praise in every place and company, though in hell, and made a kind of heaven of it. At last the escorting angel returned with his prisoner to them that sent him, saying that no phlegethon could be found that would burn him ; for that in whatever condition, Basle remained incor- rigibly Basle. The legend says, his sentence was re- mitted, and he was allowed to go into heaven, and was canonized as a saint. There is a stroke of magnanimity in the correspon- dence of Bonaparte with his brother Joseph, when the latter was King of Spain, and complained that he missed in Napoleon's letters the affectionate tone which had marked their childish correspondence. " I am sorry," replies Napoleon, "you think you shall find your brother again only in the Elysian Fields. It is natural, that at forty, he should not feel towards you as he did at twelve. But his feelings towards you have greater truth and strength. His friendship has the features of his mind." BEHA VIOR. 307 How much we forgive in those who yield us the rare spectacle of heroic manners ! We will pardon them the want of books, of arts, and even of the gen- tler virtues. How tenaciously we remember them ! Here is a lesson which I brought along with me in boyhood from the Latin School, and which ranks with the best of Roman anecdotes. Marcus Scaurus was accused by Quintus Varius Hispanus, that he had ex- cited the allies to take arms against the Kepublic. But he, full of firmness and gravity, defended himself in this manner : *' Quintus Yarius Hispanus alleges that Marcus Scaurus, President of the Senate, excited the allies to arms ; Marcus Scaurus, President of the Senate, denies it. There is no witness. Which do you believe, Romans ? " " Utri CTeditis, Quirites f " When he had said these words, he was absolved by the assembly of the people. I have seen manners that make a similar impression with personal beauty ; that give the like exhilaration, and refine us like that; and, in memorable experi- ences, they are suddenly better than beauty, and make that superfluous and ugly. But they must be marked by fine perception, the acquaintance with real beauty. They must always show self-control : you shall not be facile, apologetic, or leaky, but king over your word ; and every gesture and action shall indicate power at rest. Then they must be inspired by the good heart. There is no beautifier of complexion, or form, or be- havior, like the wish to scatter joy and not pain around us. 'T is good to give a stranger a meal, or a night's lodging. 'T is better to be hospitable to his good meaning and thought, and give courage to a companion. We must be as courteous to a man as we are to a picture, which we are willing to give the 308 RALPH WALDO EMERSON. advantage of a good light. SiDecial precepts are not to be thought of : the talent of well-doing contains them all. Every hour will show a duty as paramount as that of my whim just now ; and yet I will write it, — that there is one topic peremptorily forbidden to all well-bred, to all rational mortals, namely, their distempers. If you have not slept, or if you have sle23t, or if you have headache, or sciatica, or leprosy, or thunder-stroke, I beseech you, by all angels, to hold your peace, and not pollute the morning, to which all the housemates bring serene and pleasant thoughts, by corruption and groans. Come out of the azure. Love the day. Do not leave the sky out of your land- scape. The oldest and the most deserving person should come very modestly into any newly awaked company, respecting the divine communications, out of which all must be j)i'esumed to have newly come. An old man, who added an elevating culture to a large experience of life, said to me : " When you come into the room, I think I will study how to make humanity beautiful to you." As respects the delicate question of culture, I do not think that any other than negative rules can be laid down. For positive rules, for suggestion. Nature alone inspires it. Who dare assume to guide a youth, a maid, to perfect manners ? — the golden mean is so delicate, difficult, — '■ say frankly, unattainable. What finest hands would not be clumsy to sketch the genial precepts of the young girl's demeanor ? The chances seem infinite against success ; and yet success is con- tinually attained. There must not be secondariness, and 't is a thousand to one that her air and manner will at once betray that she is not primary, but that there is some other one or many of her class, to whom BOSTON HYMN. 309 she habitually postpones herself. But Nature lifts her easily, and without knowing it, over these impos- sibilities, and we are continually surprised with graces and felicities not only unteachable, but undescribable. BOSTON HYMN. READ IN MUSIC HALL, JANUARY 1, 1863. The word of the Lord by night To the watching Pilgrims came, As they sat by the seaside, And filled their hearts with flame. God said, I am tired of kings, 5 I suffer them no more ; Up to my ear the morning brings The outrage of the poor. Think ye I made this ball A field of havoc and war, lo Where tyrants great and tyrants small Might harry the weak and poor ? My angel, — his name is Freedom, — Choose him to be your king ; He shall cut pathways east and west is And fend you with his wing. Lo ! I uncover the land Which I hid of old time in the West, As the sculptor uncovers the statue When he has wrought his best ; 20 310 RALPH WALDO EMERSON. I show Columbia, of the rocks Which dip their foot in the seas And soar to the air-borne flocks Of clouds and the boreal fleece. I will divide my goods ; 25 Call in the wretch and slave : None shall rule but the humble, And none but Toil shall have. I will have never a noble, No lineage counted great ; 30 Fishers and choppers and j)loughmen Shall constitute a state. Go, cut down trees in the forest And trim the straightest boughs ; Cut down trees in the forest 35 And build me a wooden house. Call the people together, The young men and the sires. The digger in the harvest field, Hireling and him that hires ; 4g And here in a pine state-house They shall choose men to rule In every needful faculty, In church and state and school. Lo, now ! if these poor men 45 Can govern the land and sea And make just laws below the sun, As planets faithful be. BOSTON HYMN. 311 And ye shall succor men ; 'T is nobleness to serve ; so Help them who cannot help again : Beware from right to swerve. I break your bonds and masterships, And I unchain the slave : Free be his heart and hand henceforth 55 As wind and wandering wave. I cause from every creature His proper good to flow : As much as he is and doeth, So much he shall bestow. ^ But, laying hands on another To coin his labor and sweat. He goes in pawn to his victim For eternal years in debt. To-day unbind the captive, » So only are ye unbound ; Lift up a people from the dust. Trump of their rescue, sound ! Pay ransom to the owner And fill the bag to the brim. ^o Who is the owner ? The slave is owner, And ever was. Pay him. O North ! give him beauty for rags, And honor, O South ! for his shame ; Nevada ! coin thy golden crags 75 With Freedom's ima^e and name. 312 RALPH WALDO EMERSON. Up ! and the dusky race That sat in darkness long, — Be swift their feet as antelopes, And as behemoth strong. so Come, East and West and North, By races, as snow-flakes. And carry my purj)ose forth, Which neither halts nor shakes. My wiU fulfilled shall be, 85 For, in daylight or in dark, My thunderbolt has eyes to see His way home to the mark. DANIEL WEBSTER. BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. " In the last year of the Revolutionary War, on the 18th of January, 1782, Daniel Webster was born, in the home which his father had established on the outskirts of civiUza- tion.^ If the character and situation of the place, and the circumstances under which he passed the first years of his life, might seem adverse to the early cultivation of his ex- traordinary talent, it still cannot be doubted that they pos- sessed influences favorable to elevation and strength of char- acter. The hardships of an infant settlement and border life, the traditions of a long series of Indian wars, and of two mighty national contests, in which an honored parent had borne his part, the anecdotes of Fort William Henry, of Quebec, of Bennington, of West Point, of Wolfe and Stark and Washington, the great Iliad and Odyssey of American Independence, — this was the fireside entertain- ment of the long winter evenings of the secluded village home. . . . " Something that was called a school was kept for two or three months in the winter, frequently by an itinerant, too often a pretender, claiming only to teach a little reading, writing, and ciphering, and wholly incompetent to give any valuable assistance to a clever youth in learning either. " Such as the village school was, Mr. Webster enjoyed its advantages, if they could be called by that name. It was, 1 Salisbury (now Franklin), N. H. 314 DANIEL WEBSTER. however, of a migratory character. When it was near his father's residence it was easy to attend ; but it was sonie- times in a distant part of the town, and sometimes in another town. . . . Poor as these opportunities of education were, they were bestowed on Mr. Webster more Hberally than on his brothers. He showed a greater eagerness for learning ; and he was thought of too frail a constitution for any robust pursuit. ... It is probable that the best part of his educa- tion was derived from the judicious and experienced father, and the strong-minded, affectionate, and ambitious mo- ther." 1 His attitude toward books is well shown by the following extract from his AutobiograiDhy : "I remember that my father brought home from some of the lower towns Pope's Essay on Man, published in a sort of pamphlet. I took it, and very soon could repeat it from beginning to end. We had so few books, that to read them once or twice was no- thing. We thought they were all to be got by heart." In 1796 Webster went to Exeter Academy, but poverty at home caused his withdrawal in February, 1797. He then studied in the neighboring town of Boscawen, under the Rev. Samuel Wood, whose entire charge for board and in- struction was $1.00 a week. In 1797 he entered Dart- mouth College, where he was graduated in 1801, after four years of hard and telling work ; his winter vacations were spent in teaching school. Webster next studied law, but the need of money by him- self and his brother Ezekiel compelled him to accept an offer to take charge of an academy at Fryeburg, Maine, at a salary of about a dollar a day ; he supported himself by copying deeds, and was thus able to save all his salary as a fund for the further education of himself and his brother. ^ See Biographical Memoir, by Edward Everett. From this Memoir, and from Lodge's Life of Webster, in the American Statesmen Series, most of the material of this sketch has been taken. BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. 315 He began the study of law again in September, 1802, and in the spring of 1805 was admitted to the bar at Boston. He opened an office at Boscawen, N. H., but in September, 1807, moved to Portsmouth, where he at once rose to the head of his profession, and for nine successive years had a large though not very lucrative practice. In 1808 he was married to Miss Grace Fletcher of Hop- kinton, Mass. In November, 1812, he was elected a member of the Na- tional House of Representatives, where his great talents were at once recognized ; he was reelected in 1814. From 1823 until his death in 1852, with the exception of about two years, he was constantly in public life, as congressman, senator, and secretary of state. In 1816 he moved to Boston and soon took a position in the law above which no one has ever risen in this country. He had a choice of the best business of the whole country. He distinguished himself especially in the realm of Con- stitutional Law, by which the rights of States and individ- uals granted by the Constitution were defined. In 1818 he argued the famous Dartmouth College case, and secured a decision declaring unconstitutional, on the ground of impair- ing the obligation of a contract, an act of the New Hamp- shire Legislature altering the charter of the college. He was thereafter retained in almost every important case argued before the Supreme Court at Washington. On December 22, 1820, the two hundredth anniversary of the landing of the Pilgrims, he delivered his famous Plinnouth Oration, the first of a series of noble, patriotic addresses which showed him to be the greatest orator Amer- ica ever produced. On June 17, 1825, he delivered an ora- tion at the laying of the corner-stone of the Bunker Hill Monument, and on August 2, 1826, his eulogy on the Ex- Presidents John Adams and Thomas Jefferson, who died within a few hours of each other, on July 4, 1826, the fiftieth anniversary of the Declaration of Independence. In 316 DANIEL WEBSTER. 1830, he made, in the United States Senate, his celebrated Reply to Hayne, in which he repelled insinuations against New England, and argued against the right of nullification. In 1850 he delivered in the Senate Chamber, at Wash- ington, what is known as his Seventh of March Speech. Henry Cabot Lodge says, in his Life of Webster, that at this time Webster's place was at the head of a new party based on the principles which he had himself formulated against the extension of slavery ; that he did not change his party, and therefore had to change his opinions. In the Seventh of March Speech, he spoke in favor of enforcing the Fugitive Slave Law, and against the Wilmot Proviso, by which slavery was to be excluded from all territory thereafter ac- quired. He depicted at length the grievances of the South, and said but little about those of the North. Mr. George T. Curtis, in his Biography, says that a great majority of Webster's constituents, if not of the whole North, disap- proved of this speech. Webster as an orator had no equal, and as a lawyer no superior. His reputation as a statesman, though for the most part grand and glorious, was, in the eyes of many, dhnmed by his change of base on the slavery question. His personal appearance was very remarkable ; he had a swarthy complexion and straight black hair ; his head was large and of noble shape, with a broad and lofty brow ; his features were finely cut and full of massive strength, and his eyes were dark and deep set. Mr. Lodge says, " There is no man in all history who came into the world so equipped physically for speech." Webster died at Marshfield, Mass., October 24, 1852, while holding the office of secretary of state under Presi- dent Fillmore. THE BUNKER HILL MONUMENT. AN ADDRESS DELIVERED AT THE LAYING OP THE CORNER- STONE OF THE BUNKER HILL MONUMENT AT CHARLES- TOWN, MASS., ON THE 17TH OF JUNE, 1825. [As early as 1776, some steps were taken toward the com- memoration of the Battle of Bunker Hill and the fall of General Warren, who was buried upon the hill the day after the action. The Massachusetts Lodge of Masons, over which Warren had presided, applied to the provisional gov- ernment of Massachusetts for permission to take up his re- mains and to bury them with the usual solemnities. The council granted this request, on condition that it should be carried into effect in such a manner that the government of the Colony might have an opportunity to erect a monument to his memory. A funeral procession was had, and a eulogy on General Warren was delivered by Perez Morton, but no measures were taken toward building a monument. A resolution was adopted by the Congress of the United States on the 8th of April, 1777, directing that monuments should be erected to the memory of General Warren, in Boston, and of General Mercer, at Fredericksburg ; but this resolution has remained to the present time unexecuted. On the 11th of November, 1794, a committee was ap- pointed by King Solomon's Lodge, "at Charlestown,^ to take measures for the erection of a monument to the memory of General Joseph Warren, at the expense of the lodge. This resolution was promptly carried into effect. The land for 1 General Warren, at the time of his decease, was Grand Master of the Masonic Lodges in America. 318 DANIEL WEBSTER. tills purpose was presented to the lodge by the Hon. James Russell, of Charlestown, and it was dedicated with appro- priate ceremonies on the 2d of December, 1794. It was a wooden pillar of the Tuscan order, eighteen feet in height, raised on a pedestal eight feet square, and of an elevation of ten feet from the ground. The pillar was surmounted by a gilt urn. An appropriate inscription was placed on the south side of the pedestal. In February, 1818, a committee of the legislature of Massachusetts was appointed to consider the expediency of building a monument of American marble to the memory of General Warren, but this proposal was not carried into effect. As the half-century from the date of the battle drew to- ward a close, a stronger feeling of the duty of commemo- rating it began to be awakened in the community. Among those who from the first manifested the greatest interest in the subject was the late William Tudor, Esq. He expressed the wish, in a letter still preserved, to see upon the battle- ground " the noblest monument in the world," and he was so ardent and persevering in urging the project, that it has been stated that he first conceived the idea of it. The steps taken in execution of the project, from the earliest private conferences among the gentlemen first engaged in it to its final completion, are accurately sketched by Mr. Richard Frothingham, Jr., in his valuable History of the Siege of Boston. All the material facts contained in this note are derived from his chapter on the Bunker Hill Monument. After giving an account of the organization of the society, the measures adopted for the collection of funds, and the deliberations on the form of the monument, Mr. Frothing- ham proceeds as follows : — " It was at this stage of the enterprise that the directors proposed to lay the corner-stone of the monument, and ground was broken (June 7th) for this purpose. As a mark of respect to the liberality and patriotism of King THE BUNKER HILL MONUMENT. 319 Solomon's Lodge, they invited the Grand Master of the Grand Lodge of Massachusetts to perform the ceremony. They also invited General Lafayette to accompany the President of the Association, Hon. Daniel Webster, and assist in it. , . •£ ^ u„ "This celebration was unequalled m magnificence by anything of the kind that had been seen in New England. The morning proved propitious. The air was cool the sky was clear, and timely showers the previous day had bright- ened the vesture of nature into its loveliest hue. Dehgiited thousands flocked into Boston to bear a part in the proceed- ings, or to witness the spectacle. At about ten o clock a pxocession moved from the State House towards Bunker Hill. The military, in their fine uniforms, formed the van. About two hundred veterans of the Revolution, of whom forty were survivors of the battle, rode in barouches next to the escort. These venerable men, the relics of a past generation, with emaciated frames, tottering limbs, and trembling voices, constituted a touching spectacle, home wore, as honorable decorations, their old fighting equip- ments, and some bore the scars of stiU more honorable wounds. Glistening eyes constituted their answer to the en- thusiastic cheers of the grateful multitudes who lined their pathwav and cheered their progress. To this patriot band succeeded the Bunker Hill Monument Association, ihen the Masonic fraternity, in their splendid regalia, thousands in number. Then Lafayette, continually welcomed by tokens of love and gratitude, and the invited guests. Then a long array of societies, with their various badges and banners. It was a splendid procession, and of such length that the front nearly reached Charlestown Bridge ere the rear had left Boston Common. It proceeded to Breed's Hill, where the Grand Master of the Freemasons, the President of the Monument Association, and General Lafayette performed the ceremony of laying the corner-stone, in the presence of a vast concourse of people." 320 DANIEL WEBSTER. The procession then moved to a spacious amphitheatre on the northern declivity of the hill, where the following address was delivered by Mr. Webster, in the presence of as great a multitude perhaps as was ever assembled within the sound of a human voice.] This uncounted multitude before me and around me proves the feeling which the occasion has excited. These thousands of human faces, glowing with sym- pathy and joy, and from the impulses of a common gratitude turned reverently to heaven in this spacious temple of the firmament, proclaim that the day, the place, and the purpose of our assembling have made a deep impression on our hearts. If, indeed, there be anything in local association fit to affect the mind of man, we need not strive to re- press the emotions which agitate us here. We are among the sepulchres of our fathers. We are on ground distinguished by their valor, their constancy, and the shedding of their blood. We are here, not to fix an uncertain date in our annals, nor to draw into notice an obscure and unknown spot. If our humble purpose had never been conceived, if we our- selves had never been born, the 17th of June, 1775, would have been a day on which all subsequent his- tory would have poured its light, and the eminence where we stand a point of attraction to the eyes of successive generations. But we are Americans. We live in what may be called the early age of this great continent ; and we know that our posterity, through all time, are here to enjoy and suffer the allotments of humanity. We see before us a probable train of great events ; we know that our own fortunes have been happily cast ; and it is natural, therefore, that THE BUNKER HILL MONUMENT. 321 we should be moved by the contemplation of occur- rences which have guided our destiny before many of us were born, and settled the condition in wliich we should pass that portion of our existence which God allows to men on earth. We do not read even of the discovery of this con- tinent, without feeling something of a personal inter- est in the event ; without being reminded how much it has affected our own fortunes and our own exist- ence. It would be still more unnatural for us, there- fore, than for others, to contemplate with unaffected minds that interesting, I may say that most touch- ing and pathetic scene, when the great discoverer of America stood on the deck of his shattered bark, the shades of night falling on the sea, yet no man sleep- ing ; tossed on the billows of an unknown ocean, yet the stronger billows of alternate hope and despair tossing his own troubled thoughts ; extending forward his harassed frame, straining westward his anxious and eager eyes, till Heaven at last granted him a mo- ment of rapture and ecstasy, in blessing his vision with the sight of the unknown world. Nearer to our times, more closely connected with our fates, and therefore still more interesting to our feelings and affections, is the settlement of our own country by colonists from England. We cherish every memorial of these worthy ancestors ; we celebrate their patience and fortitude ; we admire their daring enter- prise ; we teach our children to venerate their piety ; and we are justly proud of being descended from men who have set the world an example of founding civil institutions on the great and united principles of human freedom and human knowledge. To us, their children, the story of their labors and sufferings can 322 DANIEL WEBSTER. never be without interest. We shall not stand un- moved on the shore of Plymouth, while the sea con- tinues to wash it ; nor will our brethren in another early and ancient Colony forget the place of its first establishment, till their river shall cease to flow by it.^ No vigor of youth, no maturity of manhood, will lead the nation to forget the spots where its infancy was cradled and defended. But the great event in the history of the continent, which we are now met here to commemorate, that prodigy of modern times, at once the wonder and the blessing of the world, is the American Revolution. In a day of extraordinary prosperity and happiness, of high national honor, distinction, and power, we are brought together, in this place, by our love of country, by our admiration of exalted character, by our grati- tude for signal services and patriotic devotion. The Society whose organ I am ^ was formed for the purpose of rearing some honorable and durable monu- ment to the memory of the early friends of American Independence. They have thought that for this ob- ject no time could be more propitious than the present prosperous and peaceful period ; that no place could 1 An interesting account of the voyage of the early emigrants to the Maryland Colony, and of its settlement, is given in the official report of Father White, written probably within the first month after the landing at St. Mary's. The original Latin man- uscript is still preserved among the archives of the Jesuits at Rome. The Ark and the Dove are remembered with scarcely less interest by the descendants of the sister colony, than is the Mayflower in New England, which thirteen years earlier, at the same season of the year, bore thither the Pilgrim Fathers. 2 Mr. Webster was at this time President of the Bunker Hill Monument Association, chosen on the death of Governor John Brooks, the first President. THE BUNKER HILL MONUMENT. 323 claim preference over this memorable spot ; and that no day could be more auspicious to the undertaking, than the anniversary of the battle which was here fouo'ht. The foundation of that monument we have now laid. With solemnities suited to the occasion, with prayers to Almighty God for his blessing, and in the midst of this cloud of witnesses, we have begun the work. We trust it will be prosecuted, and that, springing from a broad foundation, rising high in mas- sive solidity and unadorned grandeur, it may remain as long as Heaven permits the works of man to last, a fit emblem, both of the events in memory of which it is raised, and of the gratitude of those who have reared it. We know, indeed, that the record of illustrious ac- tions is most safely deposited in the imiversal remem- brance of mankind. We know, that if we could cause this structure to ascend, not only till it reached the skies, but till it pierced them, its broad surfaces could still contain but part of that which, in an age of know- ledge, hath already been spread over the earth, and which history charges itself with making known to all future times. We know that no inscription on entab- latures less broad than the earth itself can carry in- formation of the events we commemorate where it has not already gone ; and that no structure, which shall not outlive the duration of letters and knowledge among men, can prolong the memorial. But our ob- ject is, by this edifice, to show our own deep sense of the value and importance of the achievements of our ancestors ; and, by presenting this work of gratitude to the eye, to keep alive similar sentiments, and to foster a constant regard for the principles of the Rev- olution. Human beings are composed, not of reason 324 DANIEL WEBSTER. only, but of imagination also, and sentiment ; and that is neither wasted nor misapplied which is appropri- ated to the purjiose of giving right direction to senti- ments, and opening proper springs of feeling in the heart. Let it not be supposed that our object is to perpetuate national hostility, or even to cherish a mere military spirit. It is higher, purer, nobler. We con- secrate our work to the spirit of national indepen- dence, and we wish that the light of peace may rest upon it for ever. We rear a memorial of our convic- tion of that unmeasured benefit which has been con- ferred on our own land, and of the happy influences which have been produced, by the same events, on the general interests of mankind. We come, as Ameri- cans, to mark a spot which must forever be dear to us and our posterity. We wish that whosoever, in all coming time, shall turn his eye hither, may behold that the j)lace is not undistinguished where the first great battle of the Revolution was fought. We wish that this structure may proclaim the magnitude and importance of that event to every class and every age. We wish that infancy may learn the purpose of its erection from maternal lips, and that weary and with- ered age may behold it, and be solaced by the recol- lections which it suggests. We wish that labor may look up here, and be j)roud, in the midst of its toil. We wish that, in those days of disaster, which, as they come upon all nations, must be expected to come upon us also, desj)onding patriotism may turn its eyes hith- erward, and be assured that the foundations of our national power are still strong. We wish that this column, rising towards heaven among the pointed spires of so many temples dedicated to God, may con- tribute also to produce, in all minds, a pious feeling THE BUNKER HILL MONUMENT. 325 of dependence and gratitude. We wish, finally, that the last object to the sight of him who leaves his na- tive shore, and the first to gladden him who revisits it, may be something which shall remind him of the lib- erty and the glory of his country. Let it rise ! let it rise, till it meet the sun in his coming ; let the earliest light of the morning gild it, and parting day linger and play on its summit. We live in a most extraordinary age. Events so various and so important that they might crowd and distinguish centuries are, in our times, compressed within the compass of a single life. When has it happened that history has had so much to record, in the same term of years, as since the 17th of June, 1775 ? Our own revolution, which, under other cir- cumstances, might itself have been expected to occa- sion a war of half a century, has been achieved; twenty-four sovereign and independent States erected ; and a general government established over them, so safe, so wise, so free, so practical, that we might well wonder its establishment should have been accom- plished so soon, were it not far the greater wonder that it should have been established at all. Two or three millions of people have been augmented to twelve, the great forests of the West prostrated be- neath the arm of successful industry, and the dwellers on the banks of the Ohio and the Mississippi become the fellow-citizens and neighbors of those who culti- vate the hills of New England.i ^e have a commerce 1 That which was spoken of figuratively in 1825 has, in the lapse of a quarter of a century, by the introduction of railroads and telegraphic lines, become a reality. It is an interesting circumstance, that the first railroad on the Western Continent was constructed for the purpose of accelerating the erection of this monument. — Edward Everett, in 1850. 326 DANIEL WEBSTER. that leaves no sea unexplored ; navies which take no law from superior force ; revenues adequate to all the exigencies of government, ahnost without taxation ; and peace with all nations, founded on equal rights and mutual respect. Europe, within the same period, has been agitated by a mighty revolution, which, while it has been felt in the individual condition and happiness of almost every man, has shaken to the centre her political fab- ric, and dashed against one another thrones which had stood tranquil for ages. On this, our continent, our own example has been followed, and colonies have sprung up to be nations. Unaccustomed sounds of liberty and free government have reached us from be- yond the track of the sun ; and at this moment the dominion of European power in this continent, from the place where we stand to the south pole, is annihil- ated for ever.i In the mean time, both in Europe and America, such has been the general progress of knowledge, such the improvement in legislation, in commerce, in the arts, in letters, and, above all, in liberal ideas and the general spirit of the age, that the whole world seems changed. Yet, notwithstanding that this is but a faint ab- stract of the things which have hajDpened since the day of the battle of Bunker Hill, we are but fifty years removed from it ; and we now stand here to enjoy all the blessings of our own condition, and to look abroad on the brightened prospects of the world, while we still have among us some of those who were active agents in the scenes of 1775, and who are now here, ^ See President Monroe's Message to Congress, in 1823, and Mr. Webster's speech on the Panama Mission, in 1826. THE BUNKER HILL MONUMENT. 327 from every quarter of New England, to visit once more, and under circumstances so affecting, I had almost said so overwhelming, this renowned theatre of their courage and patriotism. Venerable men ! you have come down to us from a former generation. Heaven, has bounteously length- ened out your lives, that you might behold this joyous day. You are now where you stood fifty years ago, this very hour, with your brothers and your neighbors? shoulder to shoulder, in the strife for your country. Behold, how altered ! The same heavens are indeed over your heads ; the same ocean rolls at your feet ; but all else how changed ! You hear now no roar of hostile cannon, you see no mixed volumes of smoke and flame rising from burning Charlestown. The ground strewed with the dead and the dying ; the impetuous charge ; the steady and successful repulse ; the loud call to repeated assault ; the summoning of all that is manly to repeated resistance ; a thousand bosoms freely and fearlessly bared in an instant to whatever of terror there may be in war and death ; — all these you have witnessed, but you witness them no more. All is peace. The heights of yonder metropolis, its towers and roofs, which you then saw filled with wives and children and countrymen in distress and terror, and looking with unutterable emotions for the issue of the combat, have presented you to-day with the sight of its whole happy population, come out to welcome and greet you with a universal jubilee. Yon- der proud ships, by a felicity of position appropriately lying at the foot of this mount, and seeming fondly to cling around it, are not means of annoyance to you, but your country's own means of distinction and B28 DANIEL WEBSTER. defence.^ All is peace ; and God has granted you tliis sight of your country's happiness, ere you slumber in the grave. He has allowed you to behold and to partake the reward of your patriotic toils ; and he has allowed us, your sons and countrymen, to meet you here, and in the name of the present generation, in the name of your country, in the name of liberty, to thank you! But, alas ! you are not all here ! Time and the sword have thinned your ranks. Prescott, Putnam, Stark, Brooks, Read, Pomeroy, Bridge ! our eyes seek for you in vain amid this broken band. You are gathered to your fathers, and live only to your coun- try in her grateful remembrance and your own bright example. But let us not too much grieve, that you have met the common fate of men. You lived at least long enough to know that your work had been nobly and successfully accomplished. You lived to see your country's independence established, and to sheathe your swords from war. On the light of Lib- erty you saw arise the light of Peace, like *' another morn, Risen on mid-noon ; " and the sky on which you closed your eyes was cloud- less. But, ah ! Him ! the first great martyr in this great cause ! Him ! the premature victim of his own self- devoting heart ! Him ! the head of our civil councils, and the destined leader of our military bands, whom nothing brought hither but the unquenchable fire of his own spirit ! Him ! cut off by Providence in the ^ It is necessary to inform those only who are unacquainted with the localities, that the United States Navy Yard at Charlestown is situated at the base of Bunker Hill. THE BUNKER HILL MONUMENT. 329 hour of overwhelming anxiety and thick gloom ; fall- ing ere he saw the star of his country rise ; pouring out his generous blood like water, before he knew whether it would fertilize a land of freedom or of bondage!— how shall I struggle with the emotions that stifle the utterance of thy name ! ^ Our poor work may perish ; but thine shall endure ! This mon- ument may moulder away ; the solid ground it rests upon may sink down to a level with the sea ; but thy memory shall not fail ! Wheresoever among men a heart shall be found that beats to the transports of patriotism and liberty, its aspirations shall be to claim kindred with thy spirit. But the scene amidst which we stand does not per- mit us to confine our thoughts or our sympathies to those fearless spirits who hazarded or lost their lives on this consecrated spot. We have the happiness to rejoice here in the presence of a most worthy repre- sentation of the survivors of the whole Revolutionary army. Veterans ! you are the remnant of many a well- fought field. You bring with you marks of honor from Trenton and Monmouth, from Yorktown, Cam- den, Bennington, and Saratoga. Veterans of half A century! when in your youthful days you put every thing at hazard in your country's cause, good as that cause was, and sanguine as youth is, still your fondest hopes did not stretch onward to an hour like this ! At a period to which you could not reasonably have expected to arrive, at a moment of national pros- perity such as you could never have foreseen, you are now met here to enjoy the fellowship of old soldiers, and to receive the overflowings of a universal gratitude. 1 See the North American Review, vol. xli. p. 242. 330 DANIEL WEBSTER. But your agitated countenances and your heaving breasts inform me that even this is not an unmixed joy. I perceive that a tumult of contending feelings rushes upon you. The images of the dead, as well as the persons of the living, present themselves before you. The scene overwhelms you, and I turn from it. May the Father of all mercies smile upon your declin- ing years, and bless them ! And when you shall here have exchanged your embraces, when you shall once more have pressed the hands which have been so often extended to give succor in adversity, or grasped in the exultation of victory, then look abroad upon this lovely land which your young valor defended, and mark the happiness with which it is filled ; yea, look abroad upon the whole earth, and see what a name you have contributed to give to your country, and what a praise you have added to freedom, and then rejoice in the sympathy and gratitude which beam upon your last days from the improved condition of mankind ! The occasion does not require of me any particular account of the battle of the 17th of June, 1775, nor any detailed narrative of the events which immedi- ately preceded it. These are familiarly known to all. In the progress of the great and interesting contro- versy, Massachusetts and the town of Boston had be- come early and marked objects of the displeasure of the British Parliament. This had been manifested in the act for altering the government of the Pro- vince, and in that for shutting up the port of Boston. Nothing sheds more honor on our early history, and nothing better shows how little the feelings and sen- timents of the Colonies were known or regarded in England, than the impression which these measures everywhere produced in America. It had been anti- THE BUNKER HILL MONUMENT. 331 cipated, that while the Colonies in general would be terrified by the severity of the punishment inflicted on Massachusetts, the other seaports would be gov- erned by a mere spirit of gain ; and that, as Boston was now cut off from all commerce, the unexpected advantage which this blow on her was calculated to confer on other towns would be greedily enjoyed. How miserably such reasoners deceived themselves ! How little they knew of the depth, and the strength, and the intenseness of that feeling of resistance to illegal acts of power, which possessed the whole Amer- ican people ! Everywhere the unworthy boon was rejected with scorn. The fortunate occasion was seized, everywhere, to show to the whole world that the Colonies were swayed by no local interest, no par- tial interest, no selfish interest. The temptation to profit by the punishment of Boston was strongest to our neighbors of Salem. Yet Salem was precisely the place where this miserable proffer was spurned, in a tone of the most lofty self-respect and the most indignant patriotism. "We are deeply affected," said its inhabitants, "with the sense of our public calamities ; but the miseries that are now rapidly has- tening on our brethren in the capital of the Province greatly excite our commiseration. By shutting up the port of Boston some imagine that the course of trade might be turned hither and to our benefit ; but we must be dead to every idea of justice, lost to all feel- ings of humanity, could we indulge a thought to seize on wealth and raise our fortunes on the ruin of our suffering neighbors." These noble sentiments were not confined to our immediate vicinity. In that day of general affection and brotherhood, the blow given to Boston smote on every patriotic heart from one 332 DANIEL WEBSTER. end of the country to tlie other. Virginia and the Carolinas, as well as Connecticut and New Hampshire, felt and proclaimed the cause to be their own. The Continental Congress, then holding its first session in Philadelphia, expressed its sympathy for the suffering inhabitants of Boston, and addresses were received from all quarters, assuring them that the cause was a common one, and should be met by common efforts and common sacrifices. The Congress of Massachu- setts responded to these assurances ; and in an address to the Congress at Philadelphia, bearing the official signature, perhaps among the last, of the immortal Warren, notwithstanding the severity of its suffering and the magnitude of the dangers which threatened it, it was declared that this Colony " is ready, at all times, to spend and to be spent in the cause of America." But the hour drew nigh which was to put profes- sions to the proof, and to determine whether the au- thors of these mutual pledges were ready to seal them in blood. The tidings of Lexington and Concord had no sooner spread, than it was universally felt that the time was at last come for action. A spirit pervaded all ranks, not transient, not boisterous, but deep, sol- emn, determined, — " Totamque infusa per artus Mens agitat molem, et magno se corpore miscet." ^ War on their own soil and at their own doors, was, indeed, a strange work to the yeomanry of New Eng- land ; but their consciences were convinced of its ne- cessity, their country called them to it, and they did not withhold themselves from the perilous trial. The ^ "And a Mind, diffused throughout the members, gives en- ergy to the whole mass, and mingles with the vast body." THE BUNKER HILL MONUMENT. 333 ordinary occupations of life were abandoned ; the plough was stayed in the unfinished furrow; wives gave up their husbands, and mothers gave up their sons, to the battles of a civil war. Death might come in honor, on the field ; it might come, in disgrace, on the scaffold. For either and for both they were pre- pared. The sentiment of Quincy was full in their hearts. " Blandishments," said that distinguished son of genius and patriotism, "will not fascinate us nor will threats of a halter intimidate ; for, under (rod, we are determined, that, wheresoever, whensoever, or howsoever, we shall be called to make our exit, we will die free men." i n i.. The ITth of June saw the four New England Colo- nies standing here, side by side, to triumph or to fal together ; and there was with them from that moment to the end of the war, what I hope will remain with them for ever, -one cause, one country, one heart The battle of Bunker Hill was attended with the most important effects beyond its immediate results as a military engagement. It created at once a state of open, public war. There could now be no longer a question of proceeding against individuals, as guilty of treason or rebellion. That fearful crisis was jKist. The appeal lay to the sword, and the only question was, whether the spirit and the resources of the people would hold out till the object should be accomplished. Nor were its general consequences confined to our own country. Tht previous proceedings of the Colonies, Iheir appeals, resolutions, and addresses had made Lir cau'se known to Europe. Without boastmg, - may say, that in no age or coun ry has the public cavfse been maintained with more force of argument more power of illustration, or more of that persuasion 334 DANIEL WEBSTER. wMcli excited feeling and elevated principle can alone bestow, than the Revolutionary state paper.s exhibit. These papers will forever deserve to be studied, not only for the spirit which they breathe, but for the ability with which they were written. To this able vindication of their cause, the Colonies had now added a practical and severe proof of their own true devotion to it, and given evidence also of the power which they could bring to its support. All now saw, that if America fell, she would not fall without a struggle. Men felt sympathy and regard, as well as surprise, when they beheld these infant states, remote, unknown, unaided, encounter the power of England, and, in the first considerable battle, leave more of their enemies dead on the field, in proportion to the number of combatants, than had been recently known to fall in the wars of Europe. Information of these events, circulating throughout the world, at length reached the ears of one who now hears me.^ He has not forgotten the emotion which the fame of Bunker Hill, and the name of Warren, excited in his youthful breast. Sir, we are assembled to commemorate the establish- ment of great public principles of liberty, and to do honor to the distinguished dead. The occasion is too severe for eulogy of the living. But, Sir, your inter- esting relation to this country, the peculiar circum- stances which surround you and surround us, call on me to express the happiness which we derive from your presence and aid in this solemn commemoration. 1 Among the earliest of the arrangements for the celebration of the 17th of June, 1825, was the invitation to General La- fayette to be present ; and he had so timed his progress through the other States as to return to Massachusetts in season for the great occasion. THE BUNKER HILL MONUMENT. 335 Fortunate, fortunate man ! with what measure of devotion will you not thank God for the circumstances of your extraordinary life ! You are connected with both hemispheres and with two generations. Heaven saw fit to ordain that the electric spark of liberty should be conducted, through you, from the New World to the Old ; and we, who are now here to per- form this duty of patriotism, have all of us long ago received it in charge from our fathers to cherish your name and your virtues. You will account it an in- stance of your good fortune. Sir, that you crossed the seas to visit us at a time which enables you to be pres- ent at this solemnity. You now behold the field, the renown of which reached you in the heart of France, and caused a thrill in your ardent bosom. You see the lines of the little redoubt thrown up by the incred- ible diligence of Prescott; defended, to the last ex- tremity, by his lion-hearted valor ; and within which the corner-stone of our monument has now taken its position. You see where Warren fell, and where Parker, Gardner, McCleary, Moore, and other early patriots fell with him. Those who survived that day, and whose lives have been prolonged to the present hour, are now around you. Some of them you have known in the trying scenes of the war. Behold ! they now stretch forth their feeble arms to embrace you. Behold! they raise their trembling voices to invoke the blessing of God on you and yours forever. Sir, you have assisted us in laying the foundation of this structure. You have heard us rehearse, with our feeble commendation, the names of departed patri- ots. Monuments and eulogy belong to the dead. We give then this day to Warren and his associates. On other occasions they have been given to your more 336 DANIEL WEBSTER. immediate companions in arms, to Washington, to Greene, to Gates, to Sullivan, and to Lincoln. We have become reluctant to grant these, our highest and last honors, further. We would gladly hold them yet back from the little remnant of that immortal band. " Serus in coelimi redeas.''' ^ Illustrious as are your merits, yet far, O, very far distant be the day, when any inscription shall bear your name, or any tongue pronounce its eulogy ! The leading reflection to which this occasion seems to invite us, respects the great changes which have happened in the fifty years since the battle of Bunker Hill was fought. And it peculiarly marks the char- acter of the present age, that, in looking at these changes, and in estimating their effect on our condi- tion, we are obliged to consider, not what has been done in our country only, but in others also. In these interesting times, while nations are making separate and individual advances in improvement, they make, too, a common progress; like vessels on a common tide, propelled by the gales at different rates, accord- ing to their several structure and management, but all moved forward by one mighty current, strong enough to bear onward whatever does not sink beneath it. A chief distinction of the present day is a commun- ity of opinions and knowledge amongst men in differ- ent nations, existing in a degree heretofore unknown. Knowledge has, in our time, triumphed, and is tri- umphing, over distance, over difference of languages, over diversity of habits, over prejudice, and over big- otry. The civilized and Christian world is fast learn- ing the great lesson, that difference of nation does not imply necessary hostility, and that all contact need not ^ "Late may you return to heaven." THE BUNKER HILL MONUMENT. 337 be war. The whole world is becoming a common field for intellect to act in. Energy of mind, genius, power, wheresoever it exists, may speak out in any tongue, and the world will hear it. A great chord of senti- ment and feeling runs through two continents, and vibrates over both. Every breeze wafts intelligence from country to country, every wave rolls it ; all give it forth, and all in turn receive it. There is a vast commerce of ideas ; there are marts and exchanges for intellectual discoveries, and a wonderful fellowship of those individual intelligences which make up the mind and opinion of the age. Mind is the great lever of all things ; human thought is the process by which human ends are ultimately answered ; and the diifu- sion of knowledge, so astonishing in the last half- century, has rendered innumerable minds, variously gifted by nature, competent to be competitors or fellow- workers on the theatre of intellectual operation. From these causes important improvements have taken place in the personal condition of individuals. Generally speaking, mankind are not only better fed and better clothed, but they are able also to enjoy more leisure ; they possess more refinement and more self-respect. A superior tone of education, manners, and habits prevails. This remark, most true in its application to our own country, is also partly true when applied elsewhere. It is proved by the vastly augmented consumption of those articles of manufac- ture and of commerce which contribute to the comforts and the decencies of life ; an augmentation which has far outrun the progress of population. And while the unexampled and almost incredible use of machinery would seem to supply the place of labor, labor still finds its occupation and its reward; so wisely has 338 DANIEL WEBSTER. Providence adjusted men's wants and desires to their condition and their capacity. Any adequate survey, however, of the progress made during the last half-century in the polite and the me- chanic arts, in machinery and manufactures, in com- merce and agriculture, in letters and in science, would require volumes. I must abstain wholly from these subjects, and turn for a moment to the contemplation of what has been done on the great question of poli- tics and government. This is the master topic of the age ; and during the whole fifty years it has intensely occupied the thoughts of men. The nature of civil government, its ends and uses, have been canvassed and investigated ; ancient opinions attacked and de- fended ; new ideas recommended and resisted, by whatever power the mind of man could bring to the controversy. From the closet and the public halls the debate has been transferred to the field ; and the world has been shaken by wars of unexampled magnitude, and the greatest variety of fortune. A day of peace has at length succeeded ; and now that the strife has subsided, and the smoke cleared away, we may be- gin to see what has actually been done, permanently changing the state and condition of human society. And, without dwelling on particular circumstances, it is most apparent, that, from the before-mentioned causes of augmented knowledge and improved indi- vidual condition, a real, substantial, and important change has taken place, and is taking place, highly favorable, on the whole, to human liberty and human happiness. The great wheel of political revolution began to move in America. Here its rotation was guarded, regular, and safe. Transferred to the other continent, THE BUNKER HILL MONUMENT. 339 from unfortunate but natural causes, it received an irregular and violent impulse ; it whirled along with a fearful celerity; till at length, like the chariot- wheels in the races of antiquity, it took fire from the rapidity of its own motion, and blazed onward, spread- ing conflagration and terror around. We learn from the result of this experiment, how fortunate was our own condition, and how admirably the character of our people was calculated for setting the great example of popular governments. The pos- session of power did not turn the heads of the Amer- can people, for they had long been in the habit of ex- ercising a great degree of self-control. Although the paramount authority of the parent state existed over them, yet a large field of legislation had always been open to our Colonial assemblies. They were accus- tomed to representative bodies and the forms of free government ; they understood the doctrine of the divi- sion of power among different branches, and the neces- sity of checks on each. The character of our country- men, moreover, was sober, moral, and religious ; and there was little in the change to shock their feelings of justice and humanity, or even to disturb an honest prejudice. We had no domestic throne to overturn, no privileged orders to cast down, no violent changes of property to encounter. In the American Revolu- tion, no man sought or wished for more than to de- fend and enjoy his own. None hoped for plunder or for spoil. Rapacity was unknown to it ; the axe was not among the instruments of its accomplishment ; and we all know that it could not have lived a single day under any well-founded imputation of possessing a tendency adverse to the Christian religion. It need not surprise us, that, under circumstances 340 DANIEL WEBSTER. less auspicious, political revolutions elsewhere, even when well intended, have terminated differently. It is, indeed, a great achievement, it is the masterwork of the world, to establish governments entirely popu- lar on lasting foundations ; nor is it easy, indeed, to introduce the popular principle at all into govern- ments to which it has been altogether a stranger. It cannot be doubted, however, that Europe has come out of the contest, in which she has been so long en- gaged, with greatly superior knowledge, and, in many respects, in a highly improved condition. Whatever benefit has been acquired is likely to be retained, for it consists mainly in the acquisition of more enlight- ened ideas. And although kingdoms and provinces may be wrested from the hands that hold them, in the same manner they were obtained ; although ordinary and vulgar power may, in human affairs, be lost as it has been won ; yet it is the glorious prerogative of the empire of knowledge, that what it gains it never loses. On the contrary, it increases by the multiple of its own power ; all its ends become means ; all its attain- ments, helps to new conquests. Its whole abundant harvest is but so much seed wheat, and nothing has limited, and nothing can limit, the amount of ultimate product. Under the influence of this rapidly increasing know- ledge, the people have begun, in all forms of govern- ment, to think, and to reason, on affairs of state. Re- garding government as an institution for the public good, they demand a knowledge of its operations, and a participation in its exercise. A call for the repre- sentative system, wherever it is not enjoyed, and where there is already intelligence enough to estimate its value, is perseveringly made. Where men may speak THE BUNKER HILL MONUMENT. 341 out, they demand it; where the bayonet is at their throats, they pray for it. When Louis the Fourteenth said, " I am the State," he expressed the essence of the doctrine of unlimited power. By the rules of that system, the people are disconnected from the state ; they are its subjects, it is their lord. These ideas, founded in the love of power, and long supported by the excess and the abuse of it, are yielding, in our age, to other opinions ; and the civilized world seems at last to be proceeding to the conviction of that fundamental and manifest truth, that the powers of government are but a trust, and that they cannot be lawfully exercised but for the good of the community. As knowledge is more and more extended, this conviction becomes more and more general. Knowledge, in truth, is the great sun in the firmament. Life and power are scattered with all its beams. The prayer of the Grecian champion, when enveloped in unnatural clouds and darkness, is the appropriate political su])plication for the people of every country not yet blessed with free institutions : — " Dispel this cloud, the light of heaven restore, Give me to see, — and Ajax asks no more." We may hope that the growing influence of en- lightened sentiment will promote the permanent peace of the world. Wars to maintain family alliances, to uphold or to cast down dynasties, and to regulate suc- cessions to thrones, which have occupied so much room in the history of modern times, if not less likely to happen at all, will be less likely to become general and involve many nations, as the great principle shall be more and more established, that the interest of the world is peace, and its first great statute, that every nation possesses the power of establishing a govern- 342 DANIEL WEBSTER. ment for itself. But public opinion has attained also an influence over governments which do not admit the popular principle into their organization. A neces- sary respect for the judgment of the world operates, in some measure, as a control over the most unlimited forms of authority. It is owing, perhaps, to this truth, that the interesting struggle of the Greeks has been suffered to go on so long, without a direct inter- ference, either to wrest that country from its present masters, or to execute the system of pacification by force ; and, with united strength, lay the neck of Christian and civilized Greek at the foot of the bar- barian Turk. Let us thank God that we live in an age when something has influence besides the bayonet, and when the sternest authority does not venture to encounter the scorching power of public reproach. Any attempt of the kind I have mentioned should be met by one universal burst of indignation ; the air of the civilized world ought to be made too warm to be comfortably breathed by any one who would hazard it. It is, indeed, a touching reflection, that, while, in the fulness of our country's happiness, we rear this monument to her honor, we look for instruction in our undertaking to a country which is now in fearful con- test, not for works of art or memorials of glory, but for her own existence. Let her be assured, that she is not forgotten in the world ; that her efforts are ap- plauded, and that constant prayers ascend for her success. And let us cherish a confident hope for her final triumph. If the true spark of religious and civil liberty be kindled, it will burn. Human agency can- not extinguish it. Like the earth's central fire, it may be smothered for a time ; the ocean may over- whelm it : mountains may press it down ; but its in- THE BUNKER HILL MONUMENT. 343 herent and unconquerable force will heave both the ocean and the land, and at some time or other, m some place or other, the volcano will break out and flame up to heaven. Among the great events of the half-century, we must reckon, certainly, the revolution of South Amer-. ica ; and we are not likely to overrate the importance of that revolution, either to the people of the country itself or to the rest of the world. The late Spanish colonies, now independent states, under circumstances less favorable, doubtless, than attended our own revo- lution, have yet successfully commenced their national existence. They have accomplished the great object of establishing their independence ; they are known and acknowledged in the world ; and although in re- gard to their systems of government, their sentiments on religious toleration, and their provision for public instruction, they may have yet much to learn, it must be admitted that they have risen to the condition of settled and established states more rapidly than could have been reasonably anticipated. They already fur- nish an exhilarating example of the difference between free governments and despotic misrule. Their com- merce, at this moment, creates a new activity in all the great marts of the world. They show themselves able, by an exchange of commodities, to bear a useful part in the intercourse of nations. A new spirit of enterprise and industry begins to prevail; all the great interests of society receive a salutary impulse ; and the progress of information not only testifies to an improved condition, but itself con- stitutes the highest and most essential improvement. When the battle of Bunker Hill was fought, the existence of South America was scarcely felt in the 844 DANIEL WEBSTER. civilized world. The thirteen little colonies of North America habitually called themselves the "continent." Borne down by colonial subjugation, monopoly, and bigotry, these vast regions of the South were hardly visible above the horizon. But in our day there has been, as it were, a new creation. The southern hemi- sphere emerges from the sea. Its lofty mountains be- gin to lift themselves into the light of heaven ; its broad and fertile plains stretch out, in beauty, to the eye of civilized man, and at the mighty bidding of the voice of jDolitical liberty the waters of darkness retire. And now, let us indulge an honest exultation in the conviction of the benefit which the example of our country has produced, and is likely to produce, on hu- man freedom and human happiness. Let us endeavor to comprehend in all its magnitude, and to feel in all its importance, the part assigned to us in the great drama of human affairs. We are j)laced at the head of the system of representative and popular govern- ments. Thus far our example shows that such govern- ments are compatible, not only with respectability and power, but with repose, with peace, with security of personal rights, with good laws, and a just adminis- tration. We are not propagandists. Wherever other sys- tems are preferred, either as being thought better in themselves, or as better suited to existing conditions, we leave the preference to be enjoyed. Our history hitherto proves, however, that the popular form is practicable, and that with wisdom and knowledge men may govern themselves ; and the duty incumbent on us is to preserve the consistency of this cheering ex- ample, and take care that nothing may weaken its authority with the world. If, in our case, the repre- THE BUNKER HILL MONUMENT. 845 sentative system ultimately fail, popular governments must be pronounced impossible. No combination of circumstances more favorable to the experiment can ever be expected to occur. The last hopes of man- kind, therefore, rest with us ; and if it should be pro- claimed, that our example had become an argument against the experiment, the knell of popular liberty would be sounded throughout the earth. These are excitements to duty ; but they are not suggestions of doubt. Our history and our condition, all that is gone before us, and all that surrounds us, authorize the belief, that popular governments, though subject to occasional variations, in form perhaps not always for the better, may yet, in their general char- acter, be as durable and permanent as other systems. We know, indeed, that in our country any other is impossible. The 2)rinci2)Ie of free governments adheres to the American soil. It is bedded in it, immovable as its mountains. And let the sacred obligations which have devolved on this generatioi^ and on us, sink deep into our hearts. Those who established our liberty and our government are daily dropping from among us. The great trust now descends to new hands. Let us apply ourselves to that which is presented to us, as our ap- propriate object. We can win no laurels in a war for independence. Earlier and worthier hands have gathered them all. Nor are there places for us by the side of Solon, and Alfred, and other founders of states. Our fathers have filled them. But there remains to us a great duty of defence and preservation ; and there is opened to us, also, a noble pursuit, to which the spirit of the times strongly invites us. Our proper business is improvement. Let our age be the age of 346 DANIEL WEBSTER. improvement. In a day of peace, let us advance the arts of peace and the works of peace. Let us develop the resources of our land, call forth its powers, build up its institutions, promote all its great interests, and see whether we also, in our day and generation, may not perform something worthy to be remembered. Let us cultivate a true spirit of union and harmony. In pursuing the great objects which our condition points out to us, let us act under a settled conviction, and an habitual feeling, that these twenty-four States are one country. Let our conceptions be enlarged to the circle of our duties. Let us extend our ideas over the whole of the vast field in which we are called to act. Let our object be, our country, our whole COUNTRY, AND NOTHING BUT OUR COUNTRY. And, by the blessing of God, may that country itself be- come a vast and splendid monument, not of oppression and terror, but of Wisdom, of Peace, and of Liberty, upon which the world may gaze with admiration for- ever ! EDWARD EVERETT. BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. Edwakd Everett was born at Dorchester, Mass., April 11, 1794. At the age of eight he was, for a short time, a pupil of Daniel Webster, who was twelve years his senior. The acquaintance then begun between these embryo orators ripened into a lasting friendship. His son, Dr. William Everett, says in a speech made at the Harvard Commencement Dinner of 1891 : " My father's connection with Harvard College began eighty-seven years ago, when he was a child of ten. His older brother was in college, living in the south entry of HoUis. The child was to begin the study of Greek in the winter vacation. The family were too poor to afford two Greek grammars ; and little Edward had to walk in the depth of winter from the corner of Essex and Washington streets in Boston over the then most lonely road to the college and secure the prized volume. From that day his connection with Har- vard College was scarcely broken till his death. He was four years an undergraduate, . . . two years a tutor, nine years a professor, three years president, and at two differ- ent times an overseer ; at his death he held an appointment as college lecturer." The older brother referred to above was Alexander Hill Everett, who was graduated with the highest honors at the age of fourteen. Five years later (in 1811) Edward was graduated with the highest honors at the age of seventeen ; he was regarded in college as a prodigy of youthful genius. 348 EDWARD EVERETT. In 1812 he became a tutor at Harvard, and at the same time a student of theology. On February 9, 1814, at the youthful age of nineteen, he was ordained as pastor of the Brattle Street Church, at Boston, where he immediately rose to distinction as an eloquent and impressive pulpit orator. In March, 1815, he accepted the Eliot Professorship of Greek at Harvard College. In order to become better pre- pared for the duties of the position he travelled and studied in Europe until 1819. While abroad he pursued an exten- sive range of study at the principal centres of learning, and he took the degree of Ph. D. at the University of Gottingen. His return to Cambridge was hailed with delight, and gave a wonderful impulse to American scholarship. In addition to his duties as professor he took charge of the North American Revieiv, which he conducted for five years. In 1824 he delivered his celebrated Phi Beta Kappa ora- tion at Cambridge, Mass., to an immense audience, including General Lafayette, in which he portrayed in eloquent and patriotic terms the political, social, and literary future of our country. In the same year he was elected a member of the National House of Representatives ; after four re- elections and a valuable service of ten years as Congressman he was chosen Governor of Massachusetts. He was annu- ally reelected Governor until 1839, when he was defeated by a majority of one vote. In 1841, after nearly a year's sojourn in Europe, he was appointed Minister Plenipotentiary to Great Britain, under General Harrison as President and his friend Daniel Web- ster as Secretary of State. In 1845 he returned to America and became for three years President of Harvard College. In 1850 he published his speeches and orations in two vol- umes, and at about the same time edited Daniel Webster's works in six volumes, for which he prepared an elaborate memoir. Upon the death of Webster in 1852, Everett took his place as Secretary of State under President Fillmore. BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. 349 From March, 1853, to May, 1854, he was in the United States Senate. On February 22, 1856, he delivered in Boston an address, on the Character of Washington, which he repeated in dif- ferent cities and towns nearly one hundred and fifty times. He gave the entire proceeds of this address toward the pur- chase of Mt. Vernon, the home of Washington, for the gen- eral government. He also gave for the same purpose $10,000 received for articles written for the New York Ledger, thus raising the entire amount contributed by him to over $100,000. In 1857 and 1858 he gave to different charitable associations the proceeds of other addresses, amounting to nearly $20,000. In 1860 he was nominated for the Vice-Presidency on the ticket- with John Bell, of Tennessee, but was defeated. Though anxious for peace while there was a chance to avoid war, he threw the whole weight of his powers into a support of the Union after the War of Secession began, and won the gratitude of his countrymen by the fervent, patriotic eloquence of his speeches in all the principal cities of the North. His death occurred on January 15, 1865, and re- sulted from a cold caught on the evening of January 9, while delivering an address in aid of the suffering inhabi- tants of Savannah, which had just been captured by Gen. Sherman. Edward Everett's life of seventy-one years spanned a large portion of the youth of our nation. Born in the administra- tion of Washington, he lived to see the War of Secession practically ended under Lincoln. Although thirty-six years old before the first locomotive engine made its appearance in the United States, he lived to see our country covered with a network of over thirty-five thousand miles of rail- ways. During his life the population of the United States increased from about four to thirty millions, and the number of States from fifteen to thirty-six. It is not to be wondered at that he was fired with an in- 350 EDWARD EVERETT. tense feeling of patriotism, or that his noble utterances struck responsive chords in the hearts of his listeners. He had a theory that man can do fairly well anything that he honestly tries to do ; his own practice was to undertake whatever work lay before him, and so extraordinary was the versatility of his great mental power that he did remarkably well what- ever he undertook. He achieved distinction as an orator, a man of letters, a statesman, and a diplomatist, but the single title which describes him best is that of orator. Had he labored continuously in some chosen field he would have left behind him even a greater monument of his remarkable power than is to be found in his numerous speeches and orations. FROM "THE CHARACTER OF WASHINGTON." Common sense was eminently a characteristic of Washington ; so called, not because it is so very com- mon a trait of character of public men, but because it is the final judgment on great practical questions to which the mind of the community is pretty sure even- tually to arrive. Few qualities of character in those who influence the fortunes of nations are so conducive both to stability and progress. But it is a quality which takes no hold of the imagination ; it inspires no enthusiasm, it wins no favor ; it is well if it can stand its ground against the plausible absurdities, the hol- low pretences, the stupendous impostures of the day. But, however these unobtrusive and austere virtues may be overlooked in the popular estimate, they be- long unquestionably to the true type of sterling great- ness, reflecting as far as it can be done within the narrow limits of humanity that deep repose and silent equilibrium of mental and moral power which governs the universe. To complain of the character of Wash- ington that it is destitute of brilliant qualities, is to complain of a circle that it has no salient points and no sharp angles in its circumference ; forgetting that it owes all its wonderful properties to the unbroken curve of which every point is equidistant from the centre.^ Instead, therefore, of being a mark of infe- ^ I was not aware, when I wrote this sentence, that I had ever read Dryden's "Heroic Stanzas consecrated to the Memory of his Highness Oliver, late Lord Protector of this Commonwealth, 352 EDWARD EVERETT. riority, this sublime adjustment of powers and virtues in the character of Washington is in reality its glory. It is this which chiefly puts him in harmony with more than human greatness. The higher we rise in the scale of being, — material, intellectual, and moral, — the more certainly we quit the region of the bril- liant eccentricities and dazzling contrasts which belong- to a vulgar greatness. Order and proportion charac- terize the primordial constitution of the terrestrial sys- tem ; ineffable harmony rules the heavens. All the great eternal forces act in solemn silence. The brawl- ing torrent that dries up in summer deafens you with its roaring whirlpools in March ; while the vast earth on which we dwell, with all its oceans and all its con- tinents and its thousand millions of inhabitants, re- volves unheard upon its soft axle at the rate of a thou- sand miles an hour, and rushes noiselessly on its orbit a million and a half miles a day. Two storm-clouds en- camped upon opposite hills on a sultry summer's even- ings at the expense of no more electricity, according to Mr. Faraday, than is evolved in the decomposition of a single drop of water, will shake the surrounding atmosphere with their thunders, which, loudly as they rattle on the spot, will yet not be heard at the distance of twenty miles ; while those tremendous and unutter- able forces which ever issue from the throne of God, and drag the chariot-wheels of Uranus and Neptune along the uttermost pathwaj^s of the solar system, per- vade the illimitable universe in silence. written after celebrating his funeral," one of which is as fol- lows : — " How shall I then begin or where conclude, To draw a fame so truly circular, For in a round what order can be shewed, When all the parts so equal perfect are ? " THE CHARACTER OF WASHINGTON. 353 This calm and well-balanced temperament of Wash- ington's character is not badly shadowed forth in the poet's description of Cicero : — " This magistrate hath struck an awe into me, And by his sweetness won a more regard Unto his place, than all the boisterous moods That ignorant greatness practiseth to fill The large unfit authority it wears. How easy is a noble spirit discerned From harsh and sulphurous matter, that flies out In contumelies, makes a noise, and bursts." ^ And did I say, my friends, that I was nnable to fur- nish an entirely satisfactory answer to the question, in what the true excellence of the character of Washing- ton consists? Let me recall the word as unjust to myself and unjust to you. The answer is plain and siinple enough ; it is this, that all the great qualities of disposition and action, which so eminently fitted him for the service of his fellow-men, were founded on the basis of a pure Christian morality, and derived their strength and energy from that vital source. He was great as he was good ; he was great because he was good ; and I believe, as I do in my existence, that it was an important part in the design of Providence in raising him up to be the leader of the Kevolution- ary struggle, and afterwards the first President of the United States, to rebuke prosperous ambition and suc- cessful intrigue ; to set before the people of America, in the morning of their national existence, a living ex- ample to prove that armies may be best conducted, and governments most ably and honorably adminis- tered, by men of sound moral principle ; to teach to gifted and aspiring individuals, and the parties they lead, that, though a hundred crooked paths may con- 1 Ben Jonson's Catiline. 354 EDWARD EVERETT. duct to a temporary success, tlie one plain and straight path of public and private virtue can alone lead to a pure and lasting fame and the blessings of posterity. Born beneath an humble but virtuous roof, brought up at the knees of a mother not unworthy to be named with the noblest matrons of Rome or Israel, the " good boy," as she delighted to call him, passed uncorrupted through the temptations of the solitary frontier, the camp, and the gay world, and grew up into the good man. Engaging in early youth in the service of the country, rising rapidly to the highest trusts, office and influence and praise passing almost the bounds of hu- man desert did nothing to break down the austere sim- plicity of his manners or to shake the solid basis of his virtues. Placed at the head of the suffering and dis- contented armies of his country, urged by the tempter to change his honest and involuntary dictatorship of influence into a usurped dictatorship of power, reluc- tantly consenting to one reelection to the Presidency and positively rejecting a second, no suspicion ever crossed the mind of an honest man, — let the libellers say what they would, for libellers I am sorry to say there were in that day as in this, — men who pick their daily dishonorable bread out of the characters of men as virtuous as themselves, — and they spared not Washington, — but the suspicion never entered into the mind of an honest man, that his heart was open to the seductions of ambition or interest ; or that he was capable in the slightest degree, by word or deed, of shaping his policy with a view to court popular favor or serve a selfish end ; that a wish or purpose ever entered his mind inconsistent with the spotless purity of his character. THE CHARACTER OF WASHINGTON. 355 " No veil He needed, virtue proof, no thought infirm Altered his cheek." And is the judgment of mankind so depraved, is their perception of moral worth so dull, that the}^ can with- hold their admiration from such a character and be- stow it, for instance, upon the hard-hearted, wondrous youth of ancient renown, who when he had trampled the effeminate rabble of the East under the iron feet of his Macedonian Phalanx, and that world which he wept to conquer was in fact grovelling at his footstool ; when he might have founded a dynasty at Babylon which would have crushed the Roman domination in the bud, and changed the history of the world from that time to this, could fool away the sceptre of uni- versal dominion which Providence was forcing into his hand in one night's debauch, and quench power and glory and reason and life in the poisonous cup of wine and harlotry ? Can men coldly qualify their applause of the patriot hero of the American Revolution, who never drew his sword but in a righteous defensive war, and magnify the name of the great Roman Dictator who made the '' bravo's trade " the merciless profession of his life, and trained his legions in the havoc of unoffending foreign countries for the " more than civil wars " in which he prostrated the liberties of his own ? Can they seriously disparage our incorruptible Washington, who would not burden the impoverished treasury of the Union by accepting even the frugal pay of his rank ; whose entire expenditure charged to the public for the whole war was less than the cost of the stationery of Congress for a single year ; whom all the gold of California and Australia could not have 356 EDWARD EVERETT. bribed to a mean act, — can they seriously disparage him in comparison with such a man as the hero of Blenheim, the renowned English commander, the ablest general, the most politic statesman, the most adroit negotiator of the day, — of whom it has been truly said that he never formed the plan of a campaign which he failed to execute, never besieged a city which he did not take, never fought a battle which he did not gain, and who, alas ! caused the muster-rolls of his victorious army to be fraudently made out, and pock- eted the pay which he drew in the names of men who had fallen in his own sight four years before. There is a splendid monumental pile in England, the most magnificent perhaps of her hundred palaces, founded in the time of Queen Anne at the public cost, to perpetuate the fame of Marlborough. The grand building, with its vast wings and spacious courts, cov- ers seven acres and a half of land. It is approached on its various sides by twelve gates or bridges, some of them triumphal gates, in a circumference of thirteen miles, enclosing the noble park of twenty-seven hun- dred acres (Boston Common has forty-three), in which the castle stands, surrounded by the choicest beauties of forest and garden and fountain and lawn and stream. All that gold could buy, or the bounty of his own or foreign princes could bestow, or taste de- vise, or art execute, or ostentation could lavish, to per- fect and adorn the all but regal structure, without and within, is there. Its saloons and its galleries, its library and its museum, among the most spacious in England for a private mansion, are filled with the rarities and wonders of ancient and modern art. Elo- quent inscriptions from the most gifted pens of the age — the English by Lord Bolingbroke, the Latin, I THE CHARACTER OF WASHINGTON. 357 believe, by Bishop Hoadley — set forth on triumphal arches and columns the exploits of him to whom the whole edifice and the domains which surround it are one gorgeous monument. Lest human adulation should prove unequal to the task, Nature herself has been called in to record his achievements. They have been planted, rooted in the soil. Groves and coppices, curiously disposed, represent the position, the num- bers, the martial array of the hostile squadrons at Blenheim. Thus, with each returning year. Spring hangs out his triumphant banners. May's ^olian lyre sings of his victories through her gorgeous foli- age ; and the shrill trump of November sounds " Mal- brook " through her leafless branches. Twice in my life I have visited the magnificent res- idence, — not as a guest ; once when its stately porticos afforded a grateful shelter from the noonday sun, and again, after thirty years' interval, when the light of a full harvest moon slept sweetly on the bank once shaded by fair Rosamond's bower, — so says tradition, — and poured its streaming bars of silver through the branches of oaks which were growing before Columbus discovered America. But to me, at noontide or in the evening, the gorgeous pile was as dreary as death, its luxurious grounds as melancholy as a churchyard. It seemed to me, not a splendid palace, but a dismal mausoleum, in which a great and blighted name lies embalmed like some old Egyptian tyrant, black and ghastly in the asphaltic contempt of ages, serving but to rescue from an enviable oblivion the career and character of the magnificent peculator and miser and traitor to whom it is dedicated ; needy in the midst of his ill-gotten millions ; mean at the head of his victo- rious armies : despicable under the shadow of his 358 EDWARD EVERETT. tliick-woven laurels ; and poor and miserable and blind and naked amidst the lying shams of his tinsel great- ness. The eloquent inscriptions in Latin and English as I strove to read them seemed to fade from arch and column, and three dreadful words of palimpsestic infamy came out in their stead, like those which caused the knees of the Chaldean tyrant to smite to- gether, as he beheld them traced by no mortal fingers on the vaulted canopy which sj^read like a sky over his accursed revels ; and those dreadful words were, — Avarice, Plunder, Eternal Shame ! There is a modest private mansion on the bank of the Potomac, the abode of George Washington and Martha his beloved, his loving, faithful wife. It boasts no spacious portal nor gorgeous colonnade, nor massy elevation, nor storied tower. The porter's lodge at Blenheim Castle, nay, the marble dog-ken- nels, were not built for the entire cost of Mount Ver- non. No arch nor column, in courtly English or courtlier Latin, sets forth the deeds and the worth of the Father of his Country ; he needs them not ; the unwritten benedictions of millions cover all the walls. No gilded dome swells from the lowly roof to catch the morning or evening beam ; but the love and grati- tude of united America settle upon it in one eternal sunshine. From beneath that humble roof went forth the intrepid and unselfish warrior, — the magistrate who knew no glory but his country's good ; to that he returned happiest when his work was done. There he lived in noble simplicity ; there he died in glory and peace. While it stands the latest generations of the grateful children of America will make their pil- grimage to it as to a shrine ; and when it shall fall, if THE CHARACTER OF WASHINGTON. 359 fall it must, the memory and the name of Washington shall shed an eternal glory on the spot. Yes, my friends, it is the pure morality of Wash- ington's character in which its pecular excellence re- sides ; and it is this which establishes its intimate rela- tions with general humanity. On this basis he ceases to be the hero of America, and becomes the hero of mankind. I have seen it lately maintained by a re- spectable foreign writer, that he could not have led the mighty host which Napoleon marched into Russia in 1812 ; not so much one army as thirteen armies, each led by its veteran chief, some of them by tribu- tary kings, and all conducted to their destination across continental Europe without confusion and without mutual interference, by the master mind, the greatest military array the world has ever seen. That Washington, who never proved unequal to any task, however novel or arduous, could not have led that gigantic army into Russia I am slow to believe. I see not why he who did great things with small means is to be supposed to be incompetent to do great things with large means. That he would not, if it depended on him, have plunged France and Europe into that dreadful war, I readily grant. But allowing what cannot be shown, that he was not as a strategist equal to the task in question, I do not know that his mili- tary reputation is more impeached by this gratuitous assumption, that he could not have got that mighty host into Russia, than Napoleon's by the historical fact that he could not and did not get it out of Russia. At any rate, whatever idle comparisons between Napoleon and Washington, unfavorable to the mili- tary genius of the latter, may be instituted, Washing- 360 EDWARD EVERETT. ton himself, modest as he was, deriving conscious strength from the pure patriotism which formed the great motive of his conduct, did not fear to place him- self in a position which he must have thought would, in all human probability, bring him into collision with the youthful conqueror of Italy, fresh from the triumphs of his first, and, all things considered, his most brilliant campaigns. The United States, I need not remind you, were on the verge of a war with France in 1798. The command of the armies of the Union was pressed by President Adams on Washing- ton, and he consented to take command in the event of an invasion. In a very remarkable letter written in July, 1798, he mentions the pi'actice " adopted by the French (with whom we are now to contend), and with great and astonishing success, to appoint generals of juvenile years to command their armies." ^ He had every reason at that time to suppose, and no doubt did suppose, that in the event of a French invasion, the armies of France would have been commanded by the youngest and most successful of those youthful gen- erals. A recent judicious French writer (M. Edouard La- boulaye), though greatly admiring the character of Washington, denies him the brilliant military genius of Julius Caesar. For my own part, considering the disparity of the means at their command respectively and of their scale of operations, I believe that after times will, on the score of military capacity, assign as high a place to the patriot chieftain who founded the Republic of America, as to the ambitious usurper who overturned the liberties of Rome. Washington would not most certainly have carried an unprovoked and 1 Wasliingtonh Works, vol. xi. p. 249. THE CHARACTER OF WASHINGTON. 361 desolating war into the provinces of Gallia, chopping off the right hands of whole populations gnilty of no crime but that of defending their homes ; he would not have thrown his legions into Britain as Caesar did, though the barbarous natives had never heard of his name. Though, to meet the invaders of his coun- try, he could push his way across the broad Delaware, through drifting masses of ice in a December night, he could not, I grant, in defiance of the laws of his country, have spurred his horse across the " little Eu- bicon " beneath the mild skies of an Ausonian winter.^ It was not talent which he wanted for brilliant mili- tary achievement ; he wanted a willingness to shed the blood of fellow-men for selfish ends ; he wanted unchastened ambition ; he wanted an ear deaf as the adder's to the cry of suffering humanity ; he wanted a remorseless thirst for false glory ; he wanted an iron heart. But it is time, my friends, to draw these contem- plations to a close. When the decease of this illus- trious and beloved commander-in-chief, in 1799, was officially announced to the army of the United States by General Hamilton, who of all his honored and trusted associates stood highest, I think, in his affec- tions and confidence, it was truly said by him in his general orders, that "the voice of praise would in vain endeavor to exalt a name unrivalled in the lists of true glory." It is for us, citizens of the country which he lived but to serve, children of parents who saw him face to face, enjoying ourselves the inestima- ble blessings which he did so much to secure and per- petuate, to reflect lustre upon his memory in the only way in which it is possible for us to do so, by showing "'■ Ut ventum est parvi Rubicontis ad undam. — Lucan, i. 185. 362 EDWARD EVEB.ETT. that his example and his counsels, instead of losing their influence by the lapse of years, are possessed of an ever-during vitality. Born into the family of na- tions in these latter days, inheriting from ancient times and from foreign countries the bright and in- structive example of all their honored sons, it has been the privilege of America, in the first generation of her national existence, to give back to the world many names whose lustre will never fade, one of which the whole family of Christendom- is willing to acknow- ledge the preeminence ; a name of which neither Greece nor Eome, nor republican Italy, Switzerland nor Holland, nor constitutional England can boast the rival. " A character of virtues so happily tempered by one another " (I use the words of Charles James Fox), " and so wholly unalloyed with any vices as that of Washington, is hardly to be found on the pages of history." HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. Henry Wadsworth Longfellow was born in Portland, Maine, February 27, 1807. He was a classmate of Haw- thorne at Bowdoin College, graduating there in the class of 1825. He began the study of law in the office of his father, Hon. Stephen Longfellow ; but receiving shortly the ap- pointment of professor of modern languages at Bowdoin, he devoted himself after that to literature, and to teaching in connection with literature. Before beginning his work at Bowdoin he increased his qualifications by travel and study in Europe, where he stayed three years. Upon his return he gave his lectures on modern languages and litera- ture at the college, and wrote occasionally for the North American Revieiu and other periodicals. The first volume which he published was an Essay on the Moral and Devo- tional Poetry of Sj^am, accompanied by translations from Spanish verse. This was issued in 1833, but has not been kept in print as a separate work. It appears as a chapter in Outre-Mer, a reflection of his European life and travel, the first of his prose writings. In 1835 he was invited to succeed Mr. George Ticknor as professor of modern lan- guages and literature at Harvard College, and again went to Europe for preparatory study, giving especial attention to Switzerland and the Scandinavian countries. He held his professorship until 1854, but continued to live in Cam- bridge until his death, March 24, 1882, occupying a house known from a former occupant as the Craigie house, and 364 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. also as Washington's headquarters, that general having so used it while organizing the army that held Boston in siege at the beginning of the Revolution. Everett, Sparks, and Worcester, the lexicographer, at one time or another lived in this house, and here Longfellow wrote most of his works. In 1839 appeared Hyperion, a Romance, which, with more narrative form than Outi^e-Mer, like that gave the results of a poet's entrance into the riches of the Old World life. In the same year was published Voices of the Night, a little volume containing chiefly poems and translations which had been printed separately in periodicals. The Psahn of Life, perhaps the best known of Longfellow's short poems, was in this volume, and here too were The Beleaguered City and Footsteps of Angels. Ballads and other Poems and Poems on Slavery appeared in 1842; The Spanish Student, a play in three acts, in 1843 ; The Belfry of Bruges and other Poems in 1846; Evangeline in 1847 ; Kavanagh, a Tale, in prose, in 1849. Besides the various volumes comprising short poems, the list of Mr. Longfellow's works includes The Golden Legend, The Song of Hiawatha, The Courtship of Miles Standish, Tales of a Wayside l7in, The New England Tragedies, and a trans- lation of Dante's Divina Commedia. Mr. Longfellow's literary life began in his college days, and he wrote poems almost to the day of his death. A classification of his poems and longer works would be an interesting task, and would help to disclose the wide range of his sympathy and taste ; a collection of the metres which he has used would show the versatility of his art, and similar studies would lead one to discover the many countries and ages to which he went for subjects. It would not be difficult to gather from the volume of Longfellow's poems hints of personal experience, that biography of the heart wdiich is of more worth to us than any record, however full, of external change and adven- ture. Such hints may be found, for example, in the early lines, To the River Charles, which may be compared with BIOGRAPHICAL SKETCH. 365 his recent Three Friends of Mine, iv., v. ; in A Gleam of Sunshine, To a CliUd, The Day is Done, The Fire of DrifUvood, Resignatio7i, The Open Windoiv, The Ladder of St. Augustine, My Lost Youth, The Children's Hour, Weariness, and other poems ; not that we are to take all sentiments and statements made in the first person as the poet's, for often the form of the poem is so far dramatic that the poet is assuming a character not necessarily his own, but the recurrence of certain strains, joined with personal allusions, helps one to penetrate the slight veil with which the poet, here as elsewhere, half conceals and half reveals himself. The friendly associations of the poet may also be discovered in several poems directly addressed to persons or distinctively alluding to them, and the reader will find it pleasant to construct the companionship of the poet out of such poems as The Herons of Elmivood, To William E. Channing, The Fiftieth Birthday of Agassiz, To Charles Simmer, the Prelude to Tales of a Wayside Inn, Haw- thorne, and other poems. An interesting study of Mr. Longfellow's writings will be found in a paper by W. D. HoweUs, in the North American Review, vol. civ. EVANGELINE: A TALE OF ACADIE. HISTORICAL INTRODUCTION. [The country now known as Nova Scotia, and called formerly Acadie by the French, was in the hands of the French and English by turns until the year 1713, when, by the Peace of Utrecht, it was ceded by France to Great Brit- ain, and has ever since remained in the possession of the English. But in 1713 the inhabitants of the peninsula were mostly French farmers and fishermen, living about Minas Basin and on Annapolis River, and the English government exercised only a nominal control over them. It was not till 1749 that the English themselves began to make settlements in the country, and that year they laid the foundations of the town of Halifax. A jealousy soon sprang up between the English and French settlers, which was deepened by the great conflict which was impending between the two mother countries ; for the treaty of peace at Aix-la-Chapelle in 1748, which confirmed the English title to Nova Scotia, was scarcely more than a truce between the two powers which had been struggling for ascendency during the beginning of the century. The French engaged in a long controversy with the English respecting the boundaries of Acadie, which had been defined by the treaties in somewhat general terms, and intrigues were carried on with the Indians, who were generally in sympathy with the French, for the annoyance of the English settlers. The Acadians were allied to the French by blood and by religion, but they claimed to have the rights of neutrals, and that these rights had been EVANGELINE. 367 granted to them by previous English officers of the crown. The one point of special dispute was the oath of allegiance demanded of the Acadians by the English. This they re- fused to take, except in a form modified to excuse them from bearing arms against the French. The demand was repeatedly made, and evaded with constant ingenuity and persistency. Most of the Acadians were probably simple- minded and peaceful people, who desired only to live undis- turbed upon their farms ; but there were some restless spir- its, especially among the young men, who compromised the reputation of the community, and all were very much under the influence of their priests, some of whom made no secret of their bitter hostility to the English, and of their deter- mination to use every means to be rid of them. As the English interests grew and the critical relations between the two countries approached open warfare, the question of how to deal with the Acadian problem became the commanding one of the colony. There were some who coveted the rich farms of the Acadians ; there were some who were inspired by religious hatred ; but the prevailing spirit was one of fear for themselves from the near presence of a community which, calling itself neutral, might at any time offer a convenient ground for hostile attack. Yet to require these people to withdraw to Canada or Louisburg would be to strengthen the hands of the French, and make these neutrals determined enemies. The colony finally re- solved, without consulting the home government, to remove the Acadians to other parts of North America, distributing them through the colonies in such a way as to preclude any concert amongst the scattered families by which they should return to Acadia. To do this required quick -and secret preparations. There were at the service of the English governor a number of New England troops, brought thither for the capture of the forts lying in the debatable land about the head of the Bay of Fundy. These were under the com- mand of Lieutenant-Colonel John Winslow, of Massachu- 368 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. setts, a great-grandson of Governor Edward Winslow, of Plymouth, and to this gentleman and Captain Alexander Murray was intrusted the task of removal. They were in- structed to use stratagem, if possible, to bring together the various families, but to prevent any from escaping to the woods. On the 2d of September, 1755, Winslow issued a written order, addressed to the inhabitants of Grand-Prd, Minas, River Canard, etc., " as well ancient as young men and lads," — a proclamation summoning all the males to attend him in the church at Grand-Pre on the 5th instant, to hear a communication which the governor had sent. As there had been negotiations respecting the oath of allegiance, and much discussion as to the withdrawal of the Acadians from the country, though none as to their removal and dis- persal, it was understood that this was an important meet- ing, and upon the day named four hundred and eighteen men and boys assembled in the church. Winslow, attended by his officers and men, caused a guard to be placed round the church, and then announced to the people his majesty's decision that they were to be removed with their families out of the country. The church became at once a guard- house, and all the prisoners were under strict surveillance. At the same time similar plans had been carried out at Pisi- quid under Captain Murray, and less successfully at Chig- necto. Meanwhile there were whispers of a rising among the prisoners, and although the transports which had been ordered from Boston had not yet arrived, it was determined to make use of the vessels which had conveyed the troops, and remove the men to these for safer keeping. This was done on the 10th of September, and the men remained on the vessels in the harbor until the arrival of the transports, when these were made use of, and about three thousand souls sent out of the country to North Carolina, Virginia, Maryland, Pennsylvania, New York, Connecticut, and Mas- sachusetts. In the haste and confusion of sending them off, — a haste which was increased by the anxiety of the offi- EVANGELINE. 369 cers to be rid of the distasteful business, and a confusion which was greater from the difference of tongues, — many- families were separated, and some at least never came to- gether again. The story of Evangeline is the story of such a separation. The removal of the Acadians was a blot upon the govern- ment of Nova Scotia and upon that of Great Britain, which never disowned the deed, although it was probably done without direct permission or command from England. It proved to be unnecessary, but it must also be remembered that to many men at that time the English power seemed trembling before France, and that the colony at Halifax regarded the act as one of self-preservation. The authorities for an historical inquiry into this subject are best seen in a volume published by the government of Nova Scotia at Halifax in 1869, entitled Selections froiii the Public Documents of the Province of Nova Scotia, edited by Thomas B. Akins, D. C. L., Commissioner of Public Records ; and in a manuscript journal kept by Col- onel Winslow, now in the cabinet of the Massachusetts His- torical Society in Boston. At the State House in Boston are two volumes of records, entitled French Neutrals, which contain voluminous papers relating to the treatment of the Acadians who were sent to Massachusetts. Probably the work used by the j^oet in writing EvangeVme was An His- torical and Statistical Account of Nova Scotia, by Thomas C. Haliburton, who is best known as the author of The Clock- Maker, or The Sayings and Doings of Samuel Slick of Slickville, a book which, written apparently to prick the Nova Scotians into more enterprise, was for a long while the chief representative of Yankee smartness. Judge Halibur- ton's history was published in 1829. A later history, which takes advantage more freely of historical documents, is A History of Nova Scotia, or Acadie, by Beamish Murdock, Esq., Q. C, Halifax, 1866. Still more recent is a smaller, well-written work, entitled The History of Acadia from its 370 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. First Discovery to its Surrender to England by the Treaty of Paris, by James Hannay, St. John, N. B., 1879. W. J. Anderson published a paper in the Transactions of the Lit- erary and Historical Society of Quebec, New Series, part 7, 1870, entitled Evangeline and the Archives of Nova Sco- tia, in which he examines the poem by the light of the vol- ume of Nova Scotia Archives, edited by T. B. Akins. The sketches of travellers in Nova Scotia, as Acadia, or a Month among the Blue Noses, by F. S. Cozzens, and Baddeck, by C. D. Warner, give the present appearance of the country and inhabitants. The measure of Evangeline is what is commonly known as English dactylic hexameter. The hexameter is the mea- sure used by Homer in the Iliad and the Odyssey, and by Virgil in the JEneid, but the difference between the Eng- lish language and the Latin or Greek is so great, especially when we consider that in English poetry every word must be accented according to its customary pronounciation, while in scanning Greek and Latin verse accent follows the quantity of the vowels, that in applying this term of hexa- meter to Evangeline it must not be supposed by the reader that he is getting the effect of Greek hexameters. It is the Greek hexameter translated into English use, and some have maintained that the verse of the Iliad is better repre- sented in the English by the trocliaic measure of fifteen syl- lables, of which an excellent illustration is in Tennyson's Locksley Hall ; others have compared the Greek hexameter to the ballad metre of fourteen syllables, used notably by Chapman in his translation of Homer's Iliad. The mea- sure adopted by Mr. Longfellow has never become very popular in English poetry, but has repeatedly been at- tempted by other poets. The reader will find the subject of hexameters discussed by Matthew Arnold in his lectures On Translating Homer ; by James Spedding in English Hexameters, in his recent volume. Reviews and Discus- sions, Literary, Political and Historical, not relating to EVANGELINE. 371 Bacon ; and by John Stuart Blackie in Remarks on Eng- lish Hexameters, contained in his volume HorcB Helle- niece. The measure lends itself easily to the lingering melan- choly which marks the greater part of the poem, and the poet's fine sense of harmony between subject and form is rarely better shown than in this poem. The fall of the verse at the end of the line and the sharp recovery at the beginning of the next will be snares to the reader, who must beware of a jerking style of delivery. The voice nat- urally seeks a rest in the middle of the line, and this rest, or c^sural pause, should be carefully regarded; a little practice will enable one to acquire that habit of reading the hexameter, which we may liken, roughly, to the climbing of a hill, resting a moment on the summit, and then descend- ing the other side. The charm in reading Evangeline aloud, after a clear understanding of the sense, which is the essential in all good reading, is found in this gentle labor of the former half of the line, and gentle acceleration of the latter half.] This is the forest primeval. The murmuring pines and the hemlocks, Bearded with moss, and in garments green, indistinct in the twilight. Stand like Druids of eld, with voices sad and pro- phetic, 1. A primeval forest is, strictly speaking, one which has never been disturbed by the axe. 3. Druids were priests of the Celtic inhabitants of ancient Gaul and Britain. The name was probably of Celtic origin, but its form may have been determined by the Greek word drus, an oak, since their places of worship were consecrated groves of oak. Perhaps the choice of the image was governed by the analogy of a religion and tribe that were to disappear before a stronger power. 372 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Stand like harpers hoar, with beards that rest on their bosoms. Loud from its rocky caverns, the deep-voiced neigh- boring ocean r, Speaks, and in accents disconsolate answers the wail of the forest. This is the forest primeval ; but where are the hearts that beneath it Leaped like the roe, when he hears in the woodland the voice of the huntsman ? Where is the thatch-roofed village, the home of Aca- dian farn\ers, — Men whose lives o-Hded on like rivers that water the woodlands, lo Darkened by shadows of earth, but reflecting an image of heaven ? Waste are those pleasant farms, and the farmers for- ever departed ! Scattered like dust and leaves, when the mighty blasts of October Seize them, and whirl them aloft, and sprinkle them far o'er the ocean. Naught but tradition remains of the beautiful village of Grand-Pre. is Ye who believe in affection that hopes, and endures, and is patient, 4. A poetical description of an ancient harper will be found in the Introduction to the Lay of the Last Minstrel, by Sir Walter Scott. 8. Observe how the tragedy of the story is anticipated by this picture of the startled roe. EVANGELINE. ^'^^ Ye who believe in the beauty and strength of woman's devotion, List to the mournful tradition still sung by the pnies of the forest ; List to a Tale of Love in Acadie, home of the happy. PART THE FIRST. I. In the Acadian land, on the shores of the Basin of Minas, • '' Distant, secluded, still, the little village of Grand-Pre Lay in the fruitful valley. Vast meadows stretched to the eastward. Giving the village its name, and pasture to flocks without number. Dikes, that the hands of the farmers had raised with labor incessant, 19 111 the earliest records Acadie is called Cadie ; it after- wards was called Arcadia, Accadia, or L' Acadie. The name is probably a Freiich adaptation of a word common among the Micmac Indians living there, signifying place or region, and used as an affix to other words as indicating the place where various things, as cranberries, eels, seals, were found in abundance. Ihe French turned this Indian term into Cadie or Acadie ; the Ji.ng- lish into Quoddy, in which form it remains when applied to the Quoddy Indians, to Quoddy Head, the last point of the United States next to Acadia, and in the compound Passamaquoddy, or Pollock-Ground. . ^ -,, .^, , rri. 21. Compare, for effect, the first Ime of Goldsmith s T^e Traveller. Grand-Prd will be found on the map as part ot the township of Horton. i . c ^u^ 24 The people of Acadia are mainly the descendants ot the colonists who were brought out to La Have and Port ^^jalhy Isaac de Razilly and Charnisay between the years 1633 and lbd». 374 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Shut out the turbulent tides ; but at stated seasons the flood-gates 25 Opened and welcomed the sea to wander at will o'er the meadows. West and south there were fields of flax, and orchards and cornfields Spreading afar and unf enced o'er the plain ; and away to the northward Blomidon rose, and the forests old, and aloft on the mountains Sea-fogs pitched their tents, and mists from the mighty ^lantic 30 Looked on the happy valley, but ne'er from their sta- tion descended. There, in the midst of its farms, reposed the Acadian village. Strongly built were the houses, with frames of oak and of hemlock. Such as the peasants of Normandy built in the reign of the Henries. These colonists came from Rochelle, Saintonge, and Poitou, so that they were drawn from a very limited area on the west coast of France, covered by the modern departments of Vendue and Charente Infdrieure. This circumstance had some influence on their mode of settling the lands of Acadia, for they came from a country of marshes, where the sea was kept out by artificial dikes, and they found in Acadia similar marshes, which they dealt with in the same way that they had been accustomed to practise in France. Hannay's History of Acadia, pp. 282, 283. An excel- lent account of dikes and the flooding of lowlands, as practised in Holland, may be found in A Farmer'' s Vacation, by George E. Waring, Jr. 29. Blomidon is a mountainous headland of red sandstone, sur- mounted by a perpendicular wall of basaltic trap, the whole about four hundred feet in height, at the entrance of the Basin of Minas. EVANGELINE. 375 Thatched were the roofs, with dormer-windows ; and gables projecting ^5 Over the basement below protected and shaded the doorway. There in the tranquil evenings of summer, when brightly the sunset Lighted the village street, and gilded the vanes on the chimneys, Matrons and maidens sat in snow-white caps and in kirtles Scarlet and blue and green, with distaffs spinning the golden Flax for the gossiping looms, whose noisy shuttles within doors Mingled their sound with the whir of the wheels and the songs of the maidens. Solemnly down the street came the parish priest, and the children Paused in their play to kiss the hand he extended to bless them. Reverend walked he among them ; and up rose ma- trons and maidens, Hailing his slow approach with words of affectionate welcome. Then came the laborers home from the field, and se- renely the sun sank 36 The characteristics of a Normandy village may be further learned by reference to a pleasant little sketch-book, pubhsl^d a few years since, called Normandy Picturesque, by Henry Black- burn, and to Through Normandy, by Katharine S Macquoid. 39. The term kirtle was sometimes applied to the 3acket only, sometimes to the train or upper petticoat attached to it. A full kirtle wa« always both; a half kirtle was a term apphed o either. A man's jacket was sometmies called a kirtle ; here the reference is apparently to the full kirtle worn by women. 376 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Down to his rest, and twilight prevailed. Anon from the belfry Softly the Angelus sounded, and over the roofs of the village Columns of pale blue smoke, like clouds of incense ascending, 50 Rose from a hundred hearths, the homes of peace and contentment. Thus dwelt together in love these simple Acadian farmers, — Dwelt in the love of God and of man. Alike were they free from Fear, that reigns with the tyrant, and envy, the vice of republics. Neither locks had they to their doors, nor bars to their windows ; 55 But their dwellings were open as day and the hearts of the owners ; There the richest was poor, and the poorest lived in abundance. Somewhat apart from the village, and nearer the Basin of Minas, Benedict Bellefontaine, the wealthiest farmer of Grand-Pre, Dwelt on his goodly acres ; and with him, directing his household, eo Gentle Evangeline lived, his child, and the pride of the village. 49. Angelus Domini is the full name given to the bell which, at morning, noon, and night, called the people to prayer, in com- memoration of the visit of the angel of the Lord to the Virgin Mary. It was introduced into France in its modern form in the sixteenth century. EVANGELINE, 377 Stalworth and stately in form was tbe man of seventy winters ; Hearty and hale was he, an oak that is covered with snow-flakes ; White as the snow were his locks, and his cheeks as brown as the oak-leaves. Fair was she to behold, that maiden of seventeen sum- mers ; 65 Black were her eyes as the berry that grows on the thorn by the wayside. Black, yet how softly they gleamed beneath the brown shade of her tresses ! Sweet was her breath as the breath of kine that feed in the meadows. When in the harvest heat she bore to the reapers at noontide Flagons of home-brewed ale, ah ! fair in sooth was the maiden. 70 Fairer was she when, on Sunday morn, while the bell from its turret Sprinkled with holy sounds the air, as the priest with his hyssop Sprinkles the congregation, and scatters blessings upon them, Down the long street she passed, with her chaplet of beads and her missal, Wearing her Norman cap and her kirtle of blue, and the ear-rings 75 Brought in the olden time from France, and since, as an heirloom. Handed down from mother to child, through long gen- erations. But a celestial brightness — a more ethereal beauty — Shone on her face and encircled her form, when, after confession, 378 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW, Homeward serenely she walked with God's benedic- tion upon her. so When she had passed, it seemed like the ceasing of exquisite music. Firmly builded with rafters of oak, the house of the farmer Stood on the side of a hill commanding the sea ; and a shady Sycamore grew by the door, with a woodbine wreath- ing around it. Rudely carved was the porch, with seats beneath ; and a footpath 85 Led through an orchard wide, and disappeared in the meadow. Under the sycamore-tree were hives overhung by a penthouse. Such as the traveller sees in regions remote by the roadside. Built o'er a box for the poor, or the blessed image of Mary. Farther down, on the slope of the hill, was the well with its moss-grown 90 Bucket, fastened with iron, and near it a trongh for the horses. Shielding the house from storms, on the north, were the barns and the farm-yard ; There stood the broad-wheeled wains and the antique ploughs and the harrows ; There were the folds for the sheep ; and there, in his feathered seraglio, 93. The accent is on the first syllable of antique, where it re- mains in the form antic, which once had the same general mean- ing. EVANGELINE. 379 Strutted the lordly turkey, and crowed the cock, with the selfsame 95 Voice that in ages of old had startled the penitent Peter. Bursting with hay were the barns, themselves a vil- lage. In each one Far o'er the gable projected a roof of thatch ; and a staircase. Under the sheltering eaves, led up to the odorous corn- loft. There too the dove-cot stood, with its meek and inno- cent inmates 100 Murmuring ever of love ; while above in the variant breezes Numberless noisy weathercocks rattled and sang of mutation. Thus, at peace with God and the world, the farmer of Grand-Pre Lived on his sunny farm, and Evangeline governed his household. Many a youth, as he knelt in the church and opened his missal, 105 Fixed his eyes upon her as the saint of his deepest devotion ; 99. Odorous. The accent here, as well as in line 403, is upon the first syllable, where it is commonly placed ; but Milton, who of all poets had the most refined ear, writes " So from the root Springs lighter the green stalk, from thence the leaves More airy, last the bright consummate flower Spirits odorous breathes." Par. Lost, Book V., lines 479-482. But he also uses the more familiar accent in other passages, as, " An amber scent of ddorous perfume," in Samson Agonistes, line 720. 380 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Happy was he who might touch her hand or the hem of her garment ! Many a suitor came to her door, by the darkness be- friended, And, as he knocked and waited to hear the sound of her footsteps, Knew not which beat the louder, his heart or the knocker of iron ; uo Or, at the joyous feast of the Patron Saint of the vil- lage, Bolder grew, and pressed her hand in the dance as he whispered Hurried words of love, that seemed a part of the music. But among all who came young Gabriel only was welcome ; Gabriel Lajeunesse, the son of Basil the black- smith, n5 Who was a mighty man in the village, and honored of all men ; For since the birth of time, throughout all ages and nations, Has the craft of the smith been held in repute by the people. Basil was Benedict's friend. Their children from earliest childhood Grew up together as brother and sister ; and Father Felician, 120 Priest and pedagogue both in the village, had taught them their letters Out of the selfsame book, with the hymns of the church and the plain-song. 122. The plain-song is a monotonic recitative of the collects. EVANGELINE. 381 But when the hymn was sung, and the daily lesson completed, Swiftly they hurried away to the forge of Basil the blacksmith. There at the door they stood, with wondering eyes to behold him 12.5 Take in his leathern lap the hoof of the horse as a plaything. Nailing the shoe in its place ; while near him the tire of the cart-wheel Lay like a fiery snake, coiled round in a circle of cinders. Oft on autumnal eves, when without in the gathering darkness Bursting with light seemed the smithy, through every cranny and crevice, 130 Warm by the forge within they watched the laboring bellows. And as its panting ceased, and the sparks expired in the ashes, Merrily laughed, and said they were nuns going into the chapel. Oft on sledges in winter, as swift as the swoop of the eagle, Down the hillside bounding, they glided away o'er the meadow. i^s Oft in the barns they climbed to the populous nests on the rafters. Seeking with eager eyes that wondrous stone, which the swallow Brings from the shore of the sea to restore the sight of its fledglings ; 133. The French have another saying similar to this, that they were guests going into the wedding. 382 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Lucky was lie who found that stone in the nest of the swallow ! Thus passed a few swift years, and they no longer were children. i40 He was a valiant youth, and his face, like the face of the morning. Gladdened the earth with its light, and ripened thought into action. She was a woman now, with the heart and hopes of a woman. " Sunshine of Saint Eulalie " was she called ; for that was the sunshine Which, as the farmers believed, would load their orchards with apples ; i45 She too would bring to her husband's house delight and abundance. Filling it full of love and the ruddy faces of children. II. Now had the season returned, when the nights grow colder and longer. And the retreating sun the sign of the Scorpion en- ters. 139. In Pluquet's Contes Populaires we are told that if one of a swallow's young is blind the mother bird seeks on the shore of the ocean a little stone, with which she restores its sight ; and he adds, " He who is fortunate enough to find that stone in a swallow's nest holds a wonderful, remedy." Pluquet's book treats of Norman superstitions and popular traits. 144. Pluquet also gives this proverbial saying : — ** Si le soleil rit le jour Sainte-Eulalie, II y aura pomnies et cidre a folie." (If the sun smiles on Saint Eulalie's day, there will be plenty of apples, and cider enough.) Saint Eulalie's day is the 12th of February. EVANGELINE. 383 Birds of passage sailed through the leaden air, from the ice-bound, 150 Desolate northern bays to the shores of tropical is- lands. Harvests were gathered in ; and wild with the winds of September Wrestled the trees of the forest, as Jacob of old with the angel. All the signs foretold a winter long and inclement. Bees, with prophetic instinct of want, had hoarded their honey 155 Till the hives overflowed ; and the Indian hunters as- serted Cold would the winter be, for thick was the fur of the foxes. Such was the advent of autumn. Then followed that beautiful season, Called by the pious Acadiay peasants the Summer of All-Saints ! Filled was the air with a dreamy and magical light ; and the landscape leo Lay as if new-created in all the freshness of child- hood. Peace seemed to reign upon earth, and the restless heart of the ocean Was for a moment consoled. All sounds were in harmony blended. Voices of children at play, the crowing of cocks in the farm-yards, 159. The Summer of All-Saints is our Indian Summer, All- Saints Day being November 1st. The French also give this sea- son the name of Saint Martin's Summer, Saint Martin's Day being November 11th. 384 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Whir of wings in the drowsy air, and the cooing of pigeons, i65 All were subdued and low as the murmurs of love, and the great sun Looked with the eye of love through the golden va- pors around him ; While arrayed in its robes of russet and scarlet and yellow, Bright with the sheen of the dew, each glittering tree of the forest Flashed like the plane-tree the Persian adorned with mantles and jewels. no Now recommenced the region of rest and affection and stillness. Day with its burden and heat had departed, and twi- light descending Brought back the evening star to the sky, and the herds to the homestead. Pawing the ground they came, and resting their necks on each other. And with their nostrils distended inhaling the fresh- ness of evening. 175 Foremost, bearing the bell, Evangeline's beautiful heifer. Proud of her snow-white hide, and the ribbon that waved from her collar. Quietly paced and slow, as if conscious of human affection. 170. Herodotus, in his account of Xerxes' expedition against Greece, tells of a beautiful plane-tree which Xerxes found, and was so enamored with that he dressed it as one might a woman, and placed it under the care of a guardsman (vii. 31). Another writer, j^^lian, improving on this, says he adorned it with a neck- lace and bracelets. EVANGELINE. 385 Then came the shepherd back with his bleating flocks from the seaside, Where was their favorite pasture. Behind them fol- lowed the watch-dog, iso Patient, full of importance, and grand in the pride of his instinct. Walking from side to side with a lordly air, and superbly- Waving his bushy tail, and urging forward the strag- glers ; Regent of flocks was he when the shepherd slept; their protector, When from the forest at night, through the starry silence, the wolves howled. iss Late, with the rising moon, returned the wains from the marshes. Laden with briny hay, that filled the air with its odor. Cheerily neighed the steeds, with dew on their manes and their fetlocks, While aloft on their shoulders the wooden and pon- derous saddles. Painted with brilliant dyes, and adorned with tassels of crimson, wo Nodded in bright array, like hollyhocks heavy with blossoms. Patiently stood the cows meanwhile, and yielded their udders Unto the milkmaid's hand ; whilst loud and in regular cadence 193. There is a charming milkmaid's song in Tennyson's drama of Queen Mary, Act III., Scene 5, where the streaming of the milk into the sounding pails is caught in the tinkling k's of such lines as " Aud you came and kissed me, milking the cow." 386 HENRY WADS WORTH LONGFELLOW. Into the sounding pails the foaming streamlets de- scended. Lowing of cattle and peals of laughter were heard in the farm-3^ard, 195 Echoed back by the barns. Anon they sank into stillness ; Heavily closed, with a jarring sound, the valves of the barn-doors, Rattled the wooden bars, and all for a season was silent. In-doors, warm by the wide-mouthed fireplace, idly the farmer Sat in his elbow-chair, and watched how the flames and the smoke-wreaths 200 Struggled together like foes in a burning city. Be- hind him, Nodding and mocking along the wall with gestures fantastic. Darted his own huge shadow, and vanished away into darkness. Faces, clumsily carved in oak, on the back of his arm- chair Laughed in the flickering light, and the pewter plates on the dresser 205 Caught and reflected the flame, as shields of armies the sunshine. Fragments of song the old man sang, and carols of Christmas, Such as at home, in the olden time, his fathers before him Sang in their Norman orchards and bright Burgundian vineyards. Close at her father's side was the gentle Evangeline seated, 210 E VA NGEL INE. 387 Spinning flax for the loom that stood in the corner behind her. Silent awhile were its treadles, at rest was its dihgent shuttle, While the monotonous drone of the wheel, like the drone of a bagpipe. Followed the old man's song, and united the fragments together. As in a church, when the chant of the choir at inter- vals ceases, 215 Footfalls are heard in the aisles, or words of the priest at the altar. So, in each pause of the song, with measured motion the clock clicked. Thus as they sat, there were footsteps heard, and, suddenly lifted. Sounded the wooden latch, and the door swung back on its hinges. Benedict knew by the hob-nailed shoes it was Basil the blacksmith, 22.) And by her beating heart Evangeline knew who was with him. " Welcome I " the farmer exclaimed, as their footsteps paused on the threshold, " Welcome, Basil, my friend ! Come, take thy place on the settle Close by the chimney-side, which is always empty without thee ; Take from the shelf overhead thy pipe and the box of tobacco ; ^^^ Never so much thyself art thou as when, through the curling Smoke of the pipe or the forge, thy friendly and jovial face gleams 388 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Kound and red as the harvest moon through the mist of the marshes." Then, with a smile of content, thus answered Basil the blacksmith. Taking with easy air the accustomed seat by the fire- side : 230 " Benedict Bellefontaine, thou hast ever thy jest and thy ballad ! Ever in cheerfullest mood art thou, when others are filled with Gloomy forebodings of ill, and see only ruin before them. Happy art thou, as if every day thou hadst picked up a horseshoe." Pausing a moment, to take the pipe that Evangeline brought him, 235 And with a coal from the embers had lighted, he slowly continued : — *' Four days now are passed since the English ships at their anchors Ride in the Gaspereau's mouth, with their cannon pointed against us. What their design may be is unknown ; but all are commanded On the morrow to meet in the church, where his Majesty's mandate 240 Will be proclaimed as law in the land. Alas ! in the mean time Many surmises of evil alarm the hearts of the peo- ple." Then made answer the farmer : — " Perhaps some friendlier purpose 239. The text of Colonel Winslow's proclamation will be found in Hallburton, i. 175. EVANGELINE. 389 Brings these ships to our shores. Perhaps the har- vests in England By untimely rains or untimelier heat have been blighted, 245 And from our bursting barns they would feed their cattle and children." " Not so thinketh the folk in the village," said warmly the blacksmith. Shaking his head as in doubt ; then, heaving a sigh, he continued : — " Louisburg is not forgotten, nor Beau Sejour, nor Port Royal. Many already have fled to the forest, and lurk on its outskirts, ~ 250 Waiting with anxious hearts the dubious fate of to- morrow. Arms have been taken from us, and warlike weapons of all kinds ; Nothing is left but the blacksmith's sledge and the scythe of the mower." Then with a pleasant smile made answer the jovial farmer : — 249. Louisburg, on Cape Breton, was built by the French as a military and naval station early in the eighteenth century, but was taken by an expedition from Massachusetts under General Pepperell in 1745. It was restored by England to France in the treaty of Aix-la-Chapelle, and recaptured by the English in 1757. Beau Sejour was a French fort upon the neck of land connecting Acadia with the mainland which had just been cap- tured by Winslow's forces. Port Royal, afterwards called Anna- polis Royal, at the outlet of Annapolis River into the Bay of Fundy, had been disputed ground, being occupied alternately by French and English, but in 1710 was attacked by an expedition from New England, and after that held by the English govern- ment and made a fortified place. 390 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. *' Safer are we unarmed, in the midst of our flocks and our cornfields, 255 Safer within these peaceful dikes besieged by the ocean, Than our fathers in forts, besieged by the enemy's cannon. Fear no evil, my friend, and to-night may no shadow of sorrow Fall on this house and hearth ; for this is the night of the contract. Built are the house and the barn. The merry lads of the village 260 Strongly have built them and well ; and, breaking the glebe round about them, Filled the barn with hay, and the house with food for a twelvemonth. Rene Leblanc will be here anon, with his papers and inkhorn. Shall we not then be glad, and rejoice in the joy of our children ? " As apart by the window she stood, with her hand in her lover's, 265 Blushing Evangeline heard the words that her father had spoken, And, as they died on his lips, the worthy notary en- - tered. III. Bent like a laboring oar, that toils in the surf of the ocean, 267. A notary is an officer authorized to attest contracts or writings of any kind. His authority varies in different coun- tries ; in France he is the necessary maker of all contracts where the subject-matter exceeds 150 francs, and his instruments, which are preserved and registered by himself, are the origi- nals, the parties preserving only copies. 275 EVANGELINE. 391 Bent, but not broken, by age was the form of the no- tary public ; Shocks of yellow hair, like the silken floss of the maize, hung ^ 270 Over his shoulders; his forehead was high; and glasses with horn bows Sat astride on his nose, with a look of wisdom supernal. Father of twenty children was he, and more than a hundred Children's children rode on his knee, and heard his great watch tick. Tour long years in the times of the war had he Ian guished a captive, ^ 27 Suffering much in an old French fort as the friend of the English. Now, though warier grown, without all guile or sus- picion. Ripe in wisdom was he, but patient, and simple, and childlike. He was beloved by all, and most of all by the chil- dren ; For he told them tales of the Loup-garou in the for- est, 280 275. King George's War, which broke out in 1744 in Cape Breton, in an attack by the French upon an English garrison, and closed with the peace of Aix-la-Chapelle in 1748 ; or, the reference may possibly be to Queen Anne's war, 1702-1713, when the French aided the Indians in their warfare with the col- onists. 280. The Loup-garou, or were-wolf, is, according to an old su- perstition especially prevalent in France, a man with power to turn himself into a wolf, which he does that he may devour chil- dren. In later times the superstition passed into the more inno- cent one of men having a power to charm wolves. 392 HENRY WADS WORTH LONGFELLOW. And of the goblin that came in the night to water the horses, And of the white Letiche, the ghost of a child who unchristened Died, and was doomed to haunt unseen the chambers of children ; And how on Christmas eve the oxen talked in the stable. And how the fever was cured by a spider shut up in a nutshell, 235 And of the marvellous powers of four-leaved clover and horseshoes. With whatsoever else was writ in the lore of the vilWe. Then up rose from his seat by the fireside Basil the blacksmith. Knocked from his pipe the ashes, and slowly extend- ing his right hand, " Father Leblanc," he exclaimed, " thou hast heard the talk in the village, 290 And, perchance, canst tell us some news of these ships and their errand." Then with modest demeanor made answer the notary public, — " Gossip enough have I heard, in sooth, yet am never the wiser ; 282. Pluquet relates this superstition, and conjectures that the white, fleet erniine gave rise to it. 284. A belief still lingers among the peasantry of England, as well as on the Continent, that at midnight, on Christmas eve, the cattle in the stalls fall down on their knees in adoration of the infant Saviour, as the old legend says was done in the stable at Bethlehem. 285. In like manner a popular superstition prevailed in Eng- land that ague could be cured by sealing a spider in a goose- quill and hanging it about the neck. EVANGELINE. 393 And what their errand may be I know no better than others. Yet am I not of those who imagine some evil inten- tion 295 Brings them here, for we are at peace ; and why then molest us ? " " God's name ! " shouted the hasty and somewhat iras- cible blacksmith ; " Must we in all things look for the how, and the why, and the wherefore ? Daily injustice is done, and might is the right of the strongest ! " But, without heeding his warmth, continued the notary public, — =^00 " Man is unjust, but God is just ; and finally justice Triumphs ; and well I remember a story, that often consoled me. When as a captive I lay in the old French fort at Port Royal." This was the old man's favorite tale, and he loved to repeat it When his neighbors complained that any injustice was done them. ^^^ " Once in an ancient city, whose name I no longer re- member. Raised aloft on a column, a brazen statue of Justice Stood in the public square, upholding the scales in its left hand. And in its right a sword, as an emblem that justice presided Over the laws of the land, and the hearts and homes of the people. ^lo 302. This is an old Florentine story ; in an altered form it is the theme of Rossini's opera of La Gazza Ladra. 394 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Even the birds had built their nests in the scales of the balance, Having no fear of the sword that flashed in the sun- shine above them. But in the course of time the laws of the land were corrupted ; Might took the place of right, and the weak were oppressed, and the mighty Ruled with an iron rod. Then it chanced in a noble- man's palace 315 That a necklace of pearls was lost, and ere long a sus- picion Fell on an orphan girl who lived as maid in the house- hold. She, after form of trial condemned to die on the scaf- fold, Patiently met her doom at the foot of the statue of Justice. As to her Father in heaven her innocent spirit as- cended, 320 Lo ! o'er the city a tempest rose ; and the bolts of the thunder Smote the statue of bronze, and hurled in wrath from its left hand Down on the pavement below the clattering scales of the balance. And in the hollow thereof was found the nest of a magpie. Into whose clay-built walls the necklace of pearls was inwoven." 325 Silenced, but not convinced, when the story was ended, the blacksmith Stood like a man who fain would speak, but findeth no language ; EVANGELINE. 395 All his thoughts were congealed into lines on his face, as the vapors Freeze in fantastic shapes on the window-panes in the winter. Then Evangeline lighted the brazen lamp on the table, 330 Filled, till it overflowed, the pewter tankard with home-brewed Nut-brown ale, that was famed for its strength in the village of Grand-Pre ; While from his pocket the notary drew his papers and inkhorn. Wrote with a steady hand the date and the age of the parties. Naming the dower of the bride in flocks of sheep and in cattle. 335 Orderly all things proceeded, and duly and well were completed. And the great seal of the law was set like a sun on the margin. Then from his leathern pouch the farmer threw on the table Three times the old man's fee in solid pieces of sil- ver; And the notary rising, and blessing the bride and bridegroom, 340 Lifted aloft the tankard of ale and drank to their welfare. Wiping the foam from his lip, he solemnly bowed and departed. While in silence the others sat and mused by the fire- side, 396 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Till Evangeline brought the draught-board out of its corner. Soon was the game begun. In friendly contention the old men 345 Laughed at each lucky hit, or unsuccessful manoeuvre, Laughed when a man was crowned, or a breach was made in the king-row. Meanwhile apart, in the twilight gloom of a window's embrasure. Sat the lovers and whispered together, beholding the moon rise Over the pallid sea and the silvery mist of the mead- ows. 350 Silently one by one, in the infinite meadows of heaven, Blossomed the lovely stars, the forget-me-nots of the angels. Thus was the evening passed. Anon the bell from the belfry Rang out the hour of nine, the village curfew, and straightway Rose the guests and departed ; and silence reigned in the household. 355 344. The word draughts is derived from the circumstance of drawing the men from one square to another. 354. Curfew is a corruption of couvre-feu, or cover fire. In the Middle Ages, when police patrol at night was almost un- known, it was attempted to lessen the chances of crime by mak- ing it an offence against the laws to be found in the streets in the night, and the curfcAv bell was tolled, at various hours, ac- cording to the custom of the place, from seven to nine o'clock in the evening. It warned honest people to lock their doors, cover their fires, and go to bed. The custom still lingers in many places, even in America, of ringing a bell at nine o'clock in the evening. EVANGELINE. 397 Many a farewell word and sweet good-niglit on the door- step Lingered long in Evangeline's heart, and filled it with gladness. Carefully then were covered the embers that glowed on the hearth-stone, And on the oaken stairs resounded the tread of the farmer. Soon with a soundless step the foot of Evangeline fol- lowed. 360 Up the staircase moved a luminous space in the dark- ness, Lighted less by the lamp than the shining face of the maiden. Silent she passed through the hall, and entered the door of her chamber. Simple that chamber was, with its curtains of white, and its clothes-press Ample and high, on whose spacious shelves were care- fully folded 365 Linen and woollen stuffs, by the hand of Evangeline woven. This was the precious dower she would bring to her husband in marriage, Better than flocks and herds, being proofs of her skill as a housewife. Soon she extinguished her lamp, for the mellow and radiant moonlight Streamed through the windows, and lighted the room, till the heart of the maiden 370 Swelled and obeyed its power, like the tremulous tides of the ocean. Ah ! she was fair, exceeding fair to behold, as she stood with 398 HENRY WADS WORTH LONGFELLOW. Naked snow-white feet on the gleaming floor of her chamber ! Little she dreamed that below, among the trees of the orchard, Waited her lover and watched for the gleam of her lamp and her shadow. 375 Yet were her thoughts of him, and at times a feeling of sadness Passed o'er her soul, as the sailing shade of clouds in the moonlight Flitted across the floor and darkened the room for a moment. And, as she gazed from the window, she saw serenely the moon pass Forth from the folds of a cloud, and one star follow her footsteps, 380 As out of Abraham's tent young Ishmael wandered with Hagar. IV. Pleasantly rose next morn the sun on the village of Grand-Pre. Pleasantly gleamed in the soft, sweet air the Basin of Minas, Where the ships, with their wavering shadows, were riding at anchor. Life had long been astir in the village, and clamorous labor 385 Knocked with its hundred hands at the golden gates of the morning. Now from the country around, from the farms and neighboring hamlets. Came in their holiday dresses the blithe Acadian peasants. EVANGELINE. 399 Many a glad good-morrow and jocund laugh from the young folk Made the bright air brighter, as up from the numer- ous meadows, 390 Where no path could be seen but the track of wheels in the greensward, Group after group appeared, and joined, or passed on the highway. Long ere noon, in the village all sounds of labor were silenced. Thronged were the streets with people; and noisy groups at the house-doors Sat in the cheerful sun, and rejoiced and gossiped to- gether. 395 Every house was an inn, where all were welcomed and feasted ; For with this simple people, who lived like brothers together, All things were held in common, and what one had was another's. Yet under Benedict's roof hospitality seemed more abundant : 396. "Real misery was wholly unknown, and benevolence anticipated the demands of poverty. Every misfortune was re- lieved as it were before it could be felt, without ostentation on the one hand, and without meanness on the other. It was, in short, a society of brethren, every individual of which was equally ready to give and to receive what he thought the com- mon right of mankind." — From the Abbd Raynal's account of the Acadians. The Abbd Guillaume Thomas Francis Raynal was a French writer (1711-1796), who published A Philosophi- cal History of the Settlements and Trade of the Europeans in the East and West Indies, in which he included also some account of Canada and Nova Scotia. His picture of life among the Aca- dians, somewhat highly colored, is the source from which after writers have drawn their knowledge of Acadian manners. 400 HENRY WADS WORTH LONGFELLOW. For Evangeline stood among the guests of her father ; 400 Bright was her face with smiles, and words of wel- come and gladness Fell from her beautiful lips, and blessed the cup as she gave it. Under the open sky, in the odorous air of the orchard, Stript of its golden fruit, was spread the feast of be- trothal. There in the shade of the porch were the priest and the notary seated ; 405 There good Benedict sat, and sturdy Basil the black- smith. Not far withdrawn from these, by the cider-press and the beehives, Michael the fiddler was placed, with the gayest of hearts and of waistcoats. Shadow and light from the leaves alternately played on his snow-white Hair, as it waved in tlie wind ; and the jolly face of the fiddler 410 Glowed like a living coal when the ashes are blown from the embers. Gayly the old man sang to the vibrant sound of his fiddle, Toils les Bou7'geois de Chartres^ and Le Carillon de Dunherque^ 413. Tons les Bourgeois de Chartres was a song written by Ducauroi, ma'dre de chapelle of Henri IV., the words of which are : — Vous connaissez Cyb^le, Qui sut fixer le Temps ; On la disait fort belle, M@me dans ses vieux ans. EVANGELINE. 401 And anon witli his wooden shoes beat time to the music. Merrily, merrily whirled the wheels of the dizzying dances 415 Under the orchard-trees and down the path to the meadows ; Old folk and young together, and children mingled among them. Fairest of all the maids was Evangeline, Benedict's daughter ! Noblest of all the youths was Gabriel, son of the blacksmith ! So passed the morning away. And lo ! with a sum- mons sonorous 420 Sounded the bell from its tower, and over the mead- ows a drum beat. Throno^ed ere long: was the church with men. With- out, in the churchyard, Cette divinity, quoique deja grand' mere Avait les yeux doux, le teint frais, Avait meme certains attraits Fernies comma la Terre. Le Carillon de Dunkerque was a popular song to a tune played on the Dunkirk chimes. The words are : — Imprudent, tt^mi^raire A I'instaut, je I'espere Dans mon juste courroux, Tu vas tomber sous mes coups ! — Je brave ta menace. — Etre moi ! quelle audace ! Avance done, poltron ! Tu trembles? non, non, non. — J'^touffe de colere ! , — Je ris de ta colere. The music to which the old man sang these songs will be found in La Cle du Caveau, by Pierre Capelle, Nos. 564 and 739. Paris : A. Cotelle. 402 HENRY WADS WORTH LONGFELLOW. Waited the women. They stood by the graves, and hung- on the headstones Garlands of autumn-leaves and evergreens fresh from the forest. Then came the guard from the ships, and marching proudly among them 425 Entered the sacred portal. With loud and dissonant clangor Echoed the sound of their brazen drums from ceiling and casement, — Echoed a moment only, and slowly the ponderous por- tal Closed, and in silence the crowd awaited the will of the soldiers. Then uprose their commander, and spake from the steps of the altar, 430 Holding aloft in his hands, with its seals, the royal commission. " You are convened this day," he said, " by his Maj- esty's orders. Clement and kind has he been ; but how you have answered his kindness Let your own hearts reply ! To my natural make and my temper Painful the task is I do, which to you I know must be grievous. 435 Yet must I bow and obey, and deliver the will of our monarch : Namely, that all your lands, and dwellings, and cattle of all kinds Forfeited be to the crown ; and that you yourselves from this province 432. Colonel Wiuslow has preserved in his Diary the speech which he delivered to the assembled Acadians, and it is copied by Haliburton in his History of Nam Scotia, i. 16G, 167. EVANGELINE. 403 Be transported to other lands. God grant you may dwell there Ever as faithful subjects, a happy and peaceable peo- ple ! 440 Prisoners now I declare you, for such is his Majesty's pleasure ! " As, when the air is serene in the sultry solstice of summer. Suddenly gathers a storm, and the deadly sling of the hailstones Beats down the farmer's corn in the field, and shatters his windows, Hiding the sun, and strewing the ground with thatch from the house-roofs, 445 Bellowing fly the herds, and seek to break their en- closures ; So on the hearts of the people descended the words of the speaker. Silent a moment they stood in speechless wonder, and then rose Louder and ever louder a wail of sorrow and anger. And, by one impulse moved, they madly rushed to the door-way. 450 Vain was the hope of escape; and cries and fierce imprecations Rang through the house of prayer ; and high o'er the heads of the others Kose, with his arms uplifted, the figure of Basil the blacksmith. As, on a stormy sea, a spar is tossed by the billows. Flushed was his face and distorted with passion ; and wildly he shouted, — 455 " Down witli the tyrants of England ! we never have sworn them allegiance ! 404 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Death to these foreign soMiers, who seize on our homes and our harvests ! " More he fain would have said, but the merciless hand of a soldier Smote him upon the mouth, and dragged him down to the pavement. In the midst of the strife and tumult of angry con- tention, 460 Lo ! the door of the chancel opened, and Father Feli- cian Entered, with serious mien, and ascended the steps of the altar. Raising his reverend hand, with a gesture he awed into silence All that clamorous throng ; and thus he spake to his people ; Deep were his tones and solemn ; in accents measured and mournful 465 Spake he, as, after the tocsin's alarum, distinctly the clock strikes. " What is this that ye do, my children ? what madness has seized you ? Forty years of my life have I labored among you, and taught you. Not in word alone, but in deed, to love one another ! Is this the fruit of my toils, of my vigils and prayers and privations ? 470 Have 3^ou so soon forgotten all lessons of love and forgiveness ? This is the house of the Prince of Peace, and would you profane it Thus with violent deeds and hearts overflowing with hatred ? EVANGELINE, 405 Lo ! where the crucified Christ from His cross is gaz- ing upon you ! See ! in those sorrowful eyes what meekness and holy compassion ! 475 Hark ! how those lips still repeat the prayer, ' O Father, forgive them ! ' Let us repeat that prayer in the hour when the wicked assail us. Let us repeat it now, and say, ' O Father, forgive them!'" Few were his words of rebuke, but deep in the hearts of his people Sank they, and sobs of contrition succeeded the pas- sionate outbreak, 48o While they repeated his prayer, and said, " O Father, forgive them ! " Then came the evening service. The tapers gleamed from the altar ; Fervent and deep was the voice of the priest, and the people responded, Not with their lips alone, but their hearts; and the Ave Maria Sang they, and fell on their knees, and their souls, with devotion translated, 485 Rose on the ardor of prayer, like Elijah ascending to heaven. Meanwhile had spread in the village the tidings of ill, and on all sides Wandered, wailing, from house to house the women and children. Long at her father's door Evangeline stood, with her right hand 406 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Shielding her eyes from the level rays of the sun, that, descending, 490 Lighted the village street with mysterious splendor, and roofed each Peasant's cottage with golden thatch, and emblazoned its windows. Long within had been spread the snow-white cloth on the table ; There stood the wheaten loaf, and the honey fragrant with wild flowers ; There stood the tankard of ale, and the cheese fresh brought from the dairy ; 495 And at the head of the board the great arm-chair of the farmer. Thus did Evangeline wait at her father's door, as the sunset Threw the long shadows of tnees o'er the broad am- brosial meadows. Ah ! on her spirit within a deeper shadow had fallen, And from the fields of her soul a fragrance celestial ascended, — 500 Charity, meekness, love, and hope, and forgiveness, and patience ! Then, all forgetful of self, she wandered into the vil- lage. Cheering with looks and words the mournful hearts of the women. As o'er the darkening fields with lingering steps they departed. Urged by their household cares, and the weary feet of their children. 505 492. To emblazon is literally to adorn anything with ensigns armorial. It was often the custom to work these ensigns into the design of painted windows. EVANGELINE. 407 Down sank the great red sun, and in golden, glimmer- ing vapors Veiled the light of his face, like the Prophet descend- ing from Sinai. Sweetly over the village the bell of the Angelas sounded. Meanwhile, amid the gloom, by the church Evange- line lingered. All was silent within ; and in vain at the door and the windows sio Stood she, and listened and looked, until, overcome by emotion, " Gabriel ! " cried she aloud with tremulous voice ; but no answer Came from the graves of the dead, nor the gloomier grave of the living. Slowly at length she returned to the tenantless house of her father. Smouldered the fire on the hearth, on the board was the supper untasted. 515 Empty and drear was each room, and haunted with phantoms of terror. Sadly echoed her step on the stair and the floor of her chamber. In the dead of the night she heard the disconsolate rain fall Loud on the withered leaves of the sycamore-tree by the window. Keenly the lightning flashed ; and the voice of the echoing thunder 520 Told her that God was in heaven, and governed the world He created! 408 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Then she remembered the tale she had heard of the justice of Heaven ; Soothed was her troubled soul, and she peacefully slumbered till morning. V. Four times the sun had risen and set ; and now on the fifth day Cheerily called the cock to the sleeping maids of the farm-house. 525 Soon o'er the yellow fields, in silent and mournful pro- cession, Came from the neighboring hamlets and farms the Acadian women, Driving in ponderous wains their household goods to the sea-shore, Pausing and looking back to gaze once more on their dwellings. Ere they were shut from sight by the winding road and the woodland. 530 Close at their sides their children ran, and urged on the oxen, While in their little hands they clasped some frag- ments of playthings. Thus to the Gaspereau's mouth they hurried ; and there on the sea-beach Piled in confusion lay the household goods of the peasants. All day long between the shore and the ships did the boats ply ; 535 All day long the wains came laboring down from the village. Late in the afternoon, when the sun was near to his setting, EVANGELINE. 409 Echoed far o'er the fields came the roll of drums from the churchyard. Thither the women and children thronged. On a sud- den the church-doors Opened, and forth came the guard, and marching in gloomy procession 540 Followed the long-imprisoned, but patient, Acadian farmers. Even as pilgrims, who journey afar from their homes and their country, Sing as they go, and in singing forget they are weary and wayworn, So with songs on their lips the Acadian peasants de- scended Down from the church to the shore, amid their wives and their daughters. 545 Foremost the young men came ; and, raising together their voices, Sang with tremulous lips a chant of the Catholic Missions : — *' Sacred heart of the Saviour ! O inexhaustible foun- tain! Fill our hearts this day with strength and submission and patience ! " Then the old men, as they marched, and the women that stood by the wayside 550 Joined in the sacred psalm, and the birds in the sun- shine above them Mingled their notes therewith, like voices of spirits departed. Half-way down to the shore Evangeline waited in silence. Not overcome with grief, but strong in the hour of affliction, — 410 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Calmly and sadly she waited, until the procession ap- proached her, 555 And she beheld the face of Gabriel pale with emotion. Tears then filled her eyes, and, eagerly running to meet him. Clasped she his hands, and laid her head on his shoulder, and whispered, — " Gabriel ! be of good cheer ! for if we love one another Nothing, in truth, can harm us, whatever mischances may happen ! " seo Smiling she spake these words ; then suddenly paused, for her father Saw she, slowly advancing. Alas ! how changed was his aspect ! Gone was the glow from his cheek, and the fire from his eye, and his footstep Heavier seemed with the weight of the heavy heart in his bosom. But with a smile and a sigh, she clasped his neck and embraced him, 565 Speaking words of endearment where words of com- fort availed not. Thus to the Gaspereau's mouth moved on that mourn- ful procession. There disorder prevailed, and the tumult and stir of embarking. Busily plied the freighted boats ; and in the confusion Wives were torn from their husbands, and mothers, too late, saw their children 570 Left on the land, extending their arms, with wildest entreaties. So unto separate ships were Basil and Gabriel carried, EVANGELINE. 411 While in despair on the shore Evangeline stood with her father. Half the task was not done when the sun went down, and the twilight Deepened and darkened around; and in haste the refluent ocean 575 Fled away from the shore, and left the line of the sand-beach Covered with waifs of the tide, with kelp and the slip- pery sea-weed. Farther back in the midst of the household goods and the wagons, Like to a gypsy camp, or a leaguer after a battle. All escape cut off by the sea, and the sentinels near them, 580 Lay encamped for the night the houseless Acadian farmers. Back to its nethermost caves retreated the bellowing ocean. Dragging adown the beach the rattling pebbles, and leaving Inland and far up the shore the stranded boats of the sailors. Then, as the night descended, the herds returned from their pastures ; sss Sweet was the moist still air with the odor of milk from their udders ; Lowing they waited, and long, at the well-known bars of the farm-yard, — Waited and looked in vain for the voice and the hand of the milkmaid. Silence reigned in the streets ; from the church no Angelus sounded. Rose no smoke from the roofs, and gleamed no lights from the windows. 590 412 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. But on the shores meanwhile the evening fires had been kindled, Built of the drift-wood thrown on the sands from wrecks in the tempest. Round them shapes of gloom and sorrowful faces were gathered, Voices of women were heard, and of men, and the crying of children. Onward from fire to fire, as from hearth to hearth in his parish, 595 Wandered the faithful priest, consoling and blessing and cheering. Like unto shipwrecked Paul on Melita's desolate sea- shore. Thus he approached the place where Evangeline sat with her father. And in the flickering light beheld the face of the old man. Haggard and hollow and wan, and without either thought or emotion, eoo E'en as the face of a clock from which the hands have been taken. Vainly Evangeline strove with words and caresses to cheer him. Vainly offered him food ; yet he moved not, he looked not, he spake not. But, with a vacant stare, ever gazed at the flickering fire-light. " Benedicite ! " murmured the priest, in tones of com- passion. 605 More he fain would have said, but his heart was full, and his accents Faltered and paused on his lips, as the feet of a child on a threshold. EVANGELINE. 413 Hushed by the scene he beholds, and the awful pres- ence of sorrow. Silently, therefore, he laid his hand on the head of the maiden. Raising his tearful eyes to the silent stars that above them 610 Moved on their way, unperfurbed by the wrongs and sorrows of mortals. Then sat he down at her side, and they wept together in silence. Suddenly rose from the south a light, as in autumn the blood-red Moon climbs the crystal walls of heaven, and o'er the horizon Titan-like stretches its hundred hands upon mountain and meadow, eis Seizing the rocks and the rivers, and piling huge shadows together. Broader and ever broader it gleamed on the roofs of the village. Gleamed on the sky and the sea, and the ships that lay in the roadstead. Columns of shining smoke uprose, and flashes of flame were Thrust through their folds and withdrawn, like the quivering hands of a martyr. 620 615. The Titans were giant deities in Greek mythology who attempted to deprive Saturn of tlie sovereignty of heaven, and were driven down into Tartarus by Jupiter, the son of Saturn, who hurled thunderbolts at them. Briareus, the hundred-handed giant, was in mythology of the same parentage as the Titans, but was not classed with them. 414 HENRY WADS WORTH LONGFELLOW. Then as the wind seized the gleeds and the burning thatch, and, uj^lifting. Whirled tliem aloft through the air, at once from a hundred house-toj^s Started the sheeted smoke with flashes of flame inter- mingled. These things beheld in dismay the crowd on the shore and on shipboard. Speechless at first they stood, then cried aloud in their anguish, 625 " We shall behold no more our homes in the village of Grand-Pre ! " Loud on a sudden the cocks began to crow in the farm- yards, Thinking the day had dawned ; and anon the lowing of cattle Came on the evening breeze, by the barking of dogs interrupted. Then rose a sound of dread, such as startles the sleep- ing encampments gso Far in the western prairies of forests that skirt the Nebraska, When the wild horses affrighted sweep by with the speed of the whirlwind, 621. Gleeds. Hot, burning coals ; a Chaucerian word : — " And wafres piping hoot out of the gleede." Canterbury Tales, 1. 3379. The burning of the houses was in accordance with the instruc- tions of the Governor to Colonel Winslow, in case he should fail in collecting all the inhabitants : " You must proceed by the most vigorous measures possible, not only in compelling them to cm- bark, but in depriving those who shall escape of all means of shelter or support, by burning their houses and by destroying everything that may afford them the means of subsistence in the country." EVANGELINE. 415 Or the loud bellowing herds of buffaloes rush to the river. Such was the sound that arose on the night, as the herds and the horses Broke through their folds and fences, and madly rushed o'er the meadows. ess Overwhelmed with the sight, yet speechless, the priest and the maiden Gazed on the scene of terror that reddened and widened before them ; And as they turned at length to speak to their silent companion, Lo ! from his seat he had fallen, and stretched abroad on the seashore Motionless lay his form, from which the soul had de- parted. 640 Slowly the priest uplifted the lifeless head, and the maiden Knelt at her father's side, and wailed aloud in her terror. Then in a swoon she sank, and lay with her head on his bosom. Through the long night she lay in deep, oblivious slumber ; And when she woke from the trance, she beheld a multitude near her. 645 Faces of friends she beheld, that were mournfully gaz- ing upon her. Pallid, with tearful eyes, and looks of saddest com- passion. Still the blaze of the burning village illumined the landscape. 416 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Keddened the sky overhead, and gleamed on the faces around her, And like the day of doom it seemed to her wavering senses. 650 Then a familiar voice she heard, as it said to the peo- ple,— " Let us bury him here by the sea. When a happier season Brings us again to our homes from the unknown land of our exile, Then shall his sacred dust be piously laid in the churchyard." Such were the words of the priest. And there in haste by the sea-side, 655 Having the glare of the burning village for funeral torches. But without bell or book, they buried the farmer of Grand-Pre. And as the voice of the priest repeated the service of sorrow, Lo ! with a mournful sound like the voice of a vast congregation. Solemnly answered the sea, and mingled its roar with the dirges. eeo 'T was the returning tide, that afar from the waste of the ocean. With the first dawn of the day, came heaving and hur- rying landward. Then recommenced once more the stir and noise of embarking ; 657. The bell was tolled to mark the passage of the soul into the other world ; the book was the service book. The phrase " bell, book, or candle " was used in referring to excommunica- tion. EVANGELINE. 417 And with the ebb of the tide the ships sailed out of the harbor, Leaving behind them the dead on the shore, and the village in ruins. ees PART THE SECOND. I. Many a weary year had passed since the burning of Grand-Pre, When on the falling tide the freighted vessels de- parted, Bearing a nation, with all its household gods, into exile, Exile without an end, and without an example in story. Far asunder, on separate coasts, the Acadians landed ; 67o Scattered were they, like flakes of snow, when the wind from the northeast Strikes aslant through the fogs that darken the Banks of Newfoundland. Friendless, homeless, hopeless, they wandered from city to city. From the cold lakes of the North to sultry Southern savannas, — From the bleak shores of the sea to the lands where the Father of Waters 675 Seizes the hills in his hands, and drags them down to the ocean, Deep in their sands to bury the scattered bones of the mammoth. 677. Bones of the mastodon, or mammoth, have been found 418 HENRY WADS WORTH LONGFELLOW. Friends they sought and homes ; and many, despairing, heart-broken, Asked of the earth but a grave, and no longer a friend nor a fireside. Written their history stands on tablets of stone in the churchyards. 68o Long among them was seen a maiden who waited and wandered. Lowly and meek in spirit, and patiently suffering all things. Fair was she and young ; but, alas ! before her ex- tended. Dreary and vast and silent, the desert of life, with its pathway Marked by the graves of those who had sorrowed and suffered before her, ess Passions long extinguished, and hopes long dead and abandoned. As the emigrant's way o'er the Western desert is marked by Camp-fires long consumed, and bones that bleach in the sunshine. Something there was in her life incomplete, imperfect, unfinished ; As if a morning of June, with all its music and sun- shine, 690 Suddenly paused in the sky, and, fading, slowly de- scended Into the east again, from whence it late had arisen. Sometimes she lingered in towns, till, urged by the fever within her, scattered all over the territory of the United States and Canada, but the greatest number have been collected in the Salt Licks of Kentucky, and in the States of Ohio, Mississippi, Missouri, and Alabama. EVANGELINE. 419 Urged by a restless longing, the hunger and thirst of the spirit, She would commence again her endless search and en- deavor ; 695 Sometimes in churchyards strayed, and gazed on the crosses and tombstones, Sat by some nameless grave, and thought that perhaps in its bosom He was already at rest, and she longed to slumber be- side him. Sometimes a rumor, a hearsay, an inarticulate whis- per, Came with its airy hand to point and beckon her for- ward. 700 Sometimes she spake with those who had seen her be- loved and known him, But it was long ago, in some far-off place or forgot- ten. " Gabriel Lajeunesse ! " they said ; " Oh, yes ! we have seen him. He was with Basil the blacksmith, and both have gone to the prairies ; Coureurs-des-bois are they, and famous hunters and trappers." 705 699. Observe the diminution in this line, by which one is led to the airy hand in the next. 705. The coureurs-des-bois formed a class of men, very early in Canadian history, produced by the exigencies of the fur-trade. They were French by birth, but by long affiliation with the In- dians and adoption of their customs had become half-civilized vagrants, whose chief vocation was conducting the canoes of the traders along the lakes and rivers of the interior. Bushrangers is the English equivalent. They played an important part in the Indian wars, but were nearly as lawless as the Indians them- selves. The reader will find them frequently referred to in 420 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. " Gabriel Lajeiinesse ! " said others ; " Oh, yes ! we have seen him. He is a voyageur in the lowlands of Louisiana." Then would they say, " Dear child ! why dream and wait for him longer ? Are there not other youths as fair as Gabriel ? others Who have hearts as tender and true, and sj)irits as loyal ? 710 Here is Baptiste Leblanc, the notary's son, who has loved thee Many a tedious year ; come, give him thy hand and be happy ! Thou art too fair to be left to braid St. Catherine's tresses." Then would Evangeline answer, serenely but sadly, " I cannot ! Whither my heart has gone, there follows my hand, and not elsewhere. 715 For when the heart goes before, like a lamp, and illumines the pathway. Many things are made clear, that else lie hidden in darkness." Thereupon the priest, her friend and father confessor. Said, with a smile, " O daughter ! thy God thus speaketh within thee ! Talk not of wasted affection, affection never was wasted ; 720 Parkman's histories, especially in The Conspiracy of Pontiac, The Discovery of the Great West, and Frontenac and New France under Louis XI V. 707. A voyageur is a river boatman, and is a term applied usually to Canadians. 713. St. Catherine of Alexandria and St. Catherine of Siena were both celebrated for their vows of virginity. Hence the say- ing to braid St. Catherine's tresses, of one devoted to a single life. EVANGELINE. 421 If it enrich not the heart of another, its waters, re- turning Back to their springs, like the rain, shall fill them full of refreshment ; That which the fountain sends forth returns again to the fountain. Patience ; accomplish thy labor ; accomplish thy work of affection ! Sorrow and silence are strong, and patient endurance is godlike. 725 Therefore accomplish thy labor of love, till the heart is made godlike. Purified, strengthened, perfected, and rendered more worthy of heaven ! " Cheered by the good man's words, Evangeline labored and waited. Still in her heart she heard the funeral diro-e of the o ocean, But with its sound there was mingled a voice that whispered, " Despair not ! " 730 Thus did that poor soul wander in want and cheer- less discomfort. Bleeding, barefooted, over the shards and thorns of existence. Let me essay, O Muse! to follow the wanderer's foot- steps ; — Not through each devious path, each changeful year of existence ; But as a traveller follows a streamlet's course throu2:h the valley : 735 Far from its margin at times, and seeing the gleam of its water Here and there, in some open space, and at intervals only; 422 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Then drawing nearer its banks, through sylvan glooms that conceal it, Though he behold it not, he can hear its continuous murmur ; Happy, at length, if he find a spot where it reaches an outlet. 740 II. It was the month of May. Far down the Beautiful River, Past the Ohio shore and past the mouth of the Wa- bash, Into the golden stream of the broad and swift Mis- sissippi, Floated a cumbrous boat, that was rowed by Acadian boatmen. It was a band of exiles : a raft, as it were, from the shipwrecked 74-) Nation, scattered along the coast, now floating to- gether. Bound by the bonds of a common belief and a com- mon misfortune ; Men and women and children, who, guided by hope or by hearsa}^. Sought for their kith and their kin among the few- acred farmers On the Acadian coast, and the prairies of fair Ope- loUSaS. ^ 750 741. The Iroquois gave to this river the name of Ohio, or the Beautiful River, and La Salle, who was the first European to discover it, preserved the name, so that it was transferred to maps very early. 750. Between the 1st of January and the 13th of May, 1765, about six hundred and fifty Aeadians had arrived at New Or- EVANGELINE. 423 With them Evangeline went, and her guide, the Father Felician. Onward o'er sunken sands, through a wilderness sombre with forests. Day after day they glided adown the turbulent river ; Night after night, by their blazing fires, encamped on its borders. Now through rushing chutes, among green islands, where plumelike 755 Cotton-trees nodded their shadowy crests, they swept with the current. Then emerged into broad lagoons, where silvery sand- bars Lay in the stream, and along the wimpling waves of their margin, Shining with snow-white plumes, large flocks of pel- icans waded. Level the landscape grew, and along the shores of the river, 76o Shaded by china-trees, in the midst of luxuriant gar- dens. Stood the houses of planters, with negro cabins and dove-cots. They were approaching the region where reigns per- petual summer, leans. Louisiana had been ceded by France to Spain in 1762, but did not really pass under the control of the Spanish until 1769. The existence of a French population attracted the wan- dering Acadians, and they were sent by the authorities to form settlements in Attakapas and Opelousas. They afterward formed settlements on both sides of the Mississippi from the German Coast up to Baton Rouge, and even as high as Pointe Couple. Hence the name of Acadian Coast, which a portion of the banks of the river still bears. See Gayarr^'s History of Louisiana : The French Doyninion, vol. ii. 424 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Where through the Golden Coast, and groves of orange and citron, Sweeps with majestic curve the river away to the east- ward. 765 They, too, swerved from their course ; and, entering the Bayou of Plaquemine, Soon were lost in a maze of sluggish and devious waters. Which, like a network of steel, extended in every direction. Over their heads the towering and tenebrous boughs of the cypress Met in a dusky arch, and trailing mosses in mid- air 770 Waved like banners that hang on the walls of ancient cathedrals. Deathlike the silence seemed, and unbroken, save by the herons Home to their roosts in the cedar-trees returning at sunset, Or by the owl, as he greeted the moon with demoniac laughter. Lovely the moonlight was as it glanced and gleamed on the water, 775 Gleamed on the columns of cypress and cedar sustain- ing the arches, Down through whose broken vaults it fell as through chinks in a ruin. Dreamlike, and indistinct, and strange were all things around them ; And o'er their spirits there came a feeling of wonder and sadness, — Strange forebodings of ill, unseen and that cannot be compassed. 78o EVANGELINE. 425 As, at the tramp of a horse's hoof on the turf of the prairies, Far in advance are closed the leaves of the shrinking mimosa. So, at the hoof-beats of fate, with sad forebodings of evil. Shrinks and closes the heart, ere the stroke of doom has attained it. But Evangeline's heart was sustained by a vision, that faintly 785 Floated before her eyes, and beckoned her on through the moonlight. It was the thought of her brain that assumed the shape of a phantom. Through those shadowy aisles had Gabriel wandered before her. And every stroke of the oar now brought him nearer and nearer. Then in his place, at the prow of the boat, rose one of the oarsmen, 790 And, as a signal sound, if others like them peradven- ture Sailed on those gloomy and midnight streams, blew a blast on his bugle. Wild through the dark colonnades and corridors leafy the blast rang. Breaking the seal of silence and giving tongues to the forest. Soundless above them the banners of moss just stirred to the music. 795 Multitudinous echoes awoke and died in the distance, Over the watery floor, and beneath the reverberant branches ; 426 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. But not a voice replied ; no answer came from the darkness ; And when the echoes had ceased, like a sense of pain was the silence. Then Evangeline slept ; but the boatmen rowed through the midnight, soo Silent at times, then singing familiar Canadian boat- songs. Such as they sang of old on their own Acadian rivers, While through the night were heard the mysterious sounds of the desert, Far off, — indistinct, — as of wave or wind in the forest. Mixed with the whoop of the crane and the roar of the grim alligator. sos Thus ere another noon they emerged from the shades ; and before them Lay, in the golden sun, the lakes of the Atchafalaya. Water-lilies in myriads rocked on the slight undula- tions Made by the passing oars, and, resplendent in beauty, the lotus Lifted her golden crown above the heads of the boat- men. 810 Faint was the air with the odorous breath of magno- lia blossoms. And with the heat of noon ; and numberless sylvan islands. Fragrant and thicldy embowered with blossoming hedges of roses. Near to whose shores they glided along, invited to slumber. Soon by the fairest of these their weary oars were sus- pended. 815 EVANGELINE. 427 Under the boughs of Wachita willows, that grew by the margin, Safely their boat was moored ; and scattered about on the greensward, Tired with their midnight toil, the weary travellers slumbered. Over them vast and high extended the cope of a cedar. Swinging from its great arms, the trumpet-flower and the grapevine 820 Hung their ladder of ropes aloft like the ladder of Jacob, On whose pendulous stairs the angels ascending, de- scending, Were the swift humming-birds, that flitted from blos- som to blossom. Such was the vision Evangeline saw as she slumbered beneath it. Filled was her heart with love, and the dawn of an opening heaven 825 Lighted her soul in sleep with the glory of regions celestial. Nearer, ever nearer, among the numberless islands, Darted a light, swift boat, that sped away o'er the water. Urged on its course by the sinewy arms of hunters and trappers. Northward its prow was turned, to the land of the bison and beaver. m At the helm sat a youth, with countenance thoughtful and careworn. Dark and neglected locks overshadowed his brow, and a sadness 428 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Somewhat beyond his years on his face was legibly written. Gabriel was it, who, weary with waiting, unhappy and restless, Sought in the Western wilds oblivion of self and of sorrow. 835 Swiftly they glided along, close under the lee of the island. But by the opposite bank, and behind a screen of pal- mettos ; So that they saw not the boat, where it lay concealed in the willows ; All undisturbed by the dash of their oars, and unseen, were the sleepers ; Angel of God was there none to awaken the slumber- ing maiden. 84o Swiftly they glided away, like the shade of a cloud on the prairie. After the sound of their oars on the tholes had died in the distance. As from a magic trance the sleepers awoke, and the maiden Said with a sigh to the friendly priest, "O Father Felician ! Something says in my heart that near me Gabriel wanders. 845 Is it a foolish dream, an idle and vague superstition ? Or has an angel passed, and revealed the truth to my spirit ? " Then, with a blush, she added, "Alas for my credu- lous fancy ! Unto ears like thine such words as these have no meaning." But made answer the reverend man, and he smiled as he answered, — 85o EVANGELINE. 429 " Daughter, thy words are not idle ; nor are they to me without meaning, Feeling is deep and still ; and the word that floats on the surface Is as the tossing buoy, that betrays where the anchor is hidden. Therefore trust to thy heart, and to what the world calls illusions. Gabriel truly is near thee ; for not far away to the southward, 855 On the banks of the Teche, are the towns of St. Maur and St. Martin. There the long-wandering bride shall be given again to her bridegroom. There the long-absent pastor regain his flock and his sheepfold. Beautiful is the land, with its prairies and forests of fruit-trees ; Under the feet a garden of flowers, and the bluest of heavens seo Bending above, and resting its dome on the walls of the forest. They who dwell there have named it the Eden of Louisiana." With these words of cheer they arose and continued their journey. Softly the evening came. The sun from the western horizon Like a magician extended his golden wand o'er the landscape ; 865 Twinkling vapors arose ; and sky and water and forest Seemed all on fire at the touch, and melted and min- gled together. 430 HENRY WADS WORTH LONGFELLOW. Hanging between two skies, a cloud with edges of silver, Floated the boat, with its dripping oars, on the mo- tionless water. Filled was Evangeline's heart with inexpressible sweet- ness. 870 Touched by the magic spell, the sacred fountains of feeling Glowed with the light of love, as the skies and waters around her. Then from a neighboring thicket the mocking-bird, wildest of singers. Swinging aloft on a willow spray that hung o'er the water. Shook from his little throat such floods of delirious music, 875 That the whole air and the woods and tlie waves seemed silent to listen. Plaintive at first were the tones and sad ; then soaring to madness Seemed they to follow or guide the revel of frenzied Bacchantes. Single notes were then heard, in sorrowful, low lam- entation ; Till, having gathered them all, he flung them abroad in derision, sso As when, after a storm, a gust of wind through the tree-tops Shakes down the rattling rain in a crystal shower on the branches. 878. The Bacchantes were worshippers of the god Bacchus, who in Greek mythology presided over the vine and its fruits. They gave themselves up to all manner of excess, and their songs and dances were to wild, intoxicating measures. EVANGELINE. 431 With such a prelude as this, and hearts that throbbed with emotion, Slowly they entered the Teche, where it flows through the green Opelousas, And, through the amber air, above the crest of the woodland, 885 Saw the column of smoke that arose from a neighbor- ing dwelling ; — Sounds of a horn they heard, and the distant lowing of cattle. III. Near to the bank of the river, o'ershadowed by oaks from whose branches Garlands of Spanish moss and of mystic mistletoe flaunted. Such as the Druids cut down with golden hatchets at Yule-tide, 89o Stood, secluded and still, the house of the herdsman. A garden Girded it round about with a belt of luxuriant blos- soms. Filling the air with fragrance. The house itself was of timbers Hewn from the cypress-tree, and carefully fitted to- gether. Large and low was the roof ; and on slender columns supported, 895 Rose-wreathed, vine-encircled, a broad and spacious veranda. Haunt of the humming-bird and the bee, extended around it. At each end of the house, amid the flowers of the garden. 432 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW, Stationed the dove-cots were, as love's perpetual sym- bol, Scenes of endless wooing, and endless contentions of rivals. 900 Silence reigned o'er the place. The line of shadow and sunshine Ran near the tops of the trees ; but the house itself was in shadow. And from its chimney-top, ascending and slowly ex- panding Into the evening air, a thin blue column of smoke rose. In the rear of the house, from the garden gate, ran a pathway m Through the great groves of oak to the skirts of the limitless prairie, Into whose sea of flowers the sun was slowly descend- ing- Full in his track of light, like ships with shadowy canvas Hanging loose from their spars in a motionless calm in the tropics, Stood a cluster of trees, with tangled cordage of grapevines. 910 Just where the woodlands met the flowery surf of the prairie. Mounted upon his horse, with Spanish saddle and stirrups. Sat a herdsman, arrayed in gaiters and doublet of deerskin. Broad and brown was the face that from under the Spanish sombrero Gazed on the peaceful scene, with the lordly look of its master. 915 EVANGELINE. 433 Roirnd about liiin were numberless herds of kine that were grazing * Quietly in the meadows, and breathing the vapory freshness That uprose from the river, and spread itself over the landscape. Slowly lifting the horn that hung at his side, and ex- panding Fully his broad, deep chest, he blew a blast, that re- sounded 920 Wildly and sweet and far, through the still damp air of the evening. Suddenly out of the grass the long white horns of the cattle Rose like flakes of foam on the adverse currents of ocean. Silent a moment they gazed, then bellowing rushed o'er the prairie. And the whole mass became a cloud, a shade in the distance. 925 Then, as the herdsman turned to the house, through the gate of the garden Saw he the forms of the priest and the maiden ad- vancing to meet him. Suddenly down from his horse he sprang in amaze- ment, and forward Pushed with extended arms and exclamations of won- der; When they beheld his face, they recognized Basil the blacksmith. 930 Hearty his welcome was, as he led his guests to the garden. There in an arbor of roses with endless question and answer 434 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Gave they vent to their hearts, and renewed their friendly embraces, Laughing and weeping by turns, or sitting silent and thoughtful. Thoughtful, for Gabriel came not; and now dark doubts and misgivings 935 Stole o'er the maiden's heart ; and Basil, somewhat embarrassed, Broke the silence and said, "If you came by the Atchafalaya, How have you nowhere encountered my Gabriel's boat on the bayous ? " Over Evangeline's face at the words of Basil a shade passed. Tears came into her eyes, and she said, with a trem- ulous accent, 940 " Gone ? is Gabriel gone ? " and, concealing her face on his shoulder. All her o'erburdened heart gave way, and she wept and lamented. Then the good Basil said, — and his voice grew blithe as he said it, — " Be of good cheer, my child ; it is only to-day he departed. Foolish boy ! he has left me alone with my herds and my horses. 945 Moody and restless growH, and tried and troubled, his spirit Could no longer endure the calm of this quiet exis- tence. Thinking ever of thee, uncertain and sorrowful ever, Ever silent, or speaking only of thee and his troubles, He at length had become so tedious to men and to maidens, 950 EVANGELINE. 435 Tedious even to me, that at length I bethought me, and sent him Unto the town of Adayes to trade for mules with the Spaniards. Thence he will follow the Indian trails to the Ozark Mountains, Hunting for furs in the forests, on rivers trapping the beaver. Therefore be of good cheer ; we will follow the fugi- tive lover ; 955 He is not far on his way, and the Fates and the streams are against him. Up and away to-morrow, and through the red dew of the morning. We will follow him fast, and bring him back to his prison." Then glad voices were heard, and up from the banks of the river, Borne aloft on his comrades' arms, came Michael the fiddler. seo Long under Basil's roof had he lived, like a god on Olympus, Having no other care than dispensing music to mor- tals. Far renowned was he for his silver locks and his fiddle. " Long live Michael," they cried, " our brave Acadian minstrel ! " As they bore him aloft in triumphal procession ; and straightway ^es Father Felician advanced with Evangeline, greeting the old man Kindly and oft, and recalling the past, while Basil, enraptured. 436 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Hailed with hilarious joy his old companions and gos- sips, Laughing loud and long, and embracing mothers and daughters. Much they marvelled to see the wealth of the ci-devant blacksmith, . 97i All his domains and his herds, and his patriarchal demeanor ; Much they marvelled to hear his tales of the soil and the climate. And of the prairies, whose numberless herds were his who would take them ; Each one thought in his heart, that he, too, would go and do likewise. Thus they ascended the steps, and, crossing the breezy veranda, 975 Entered the hall of the house, where already the sup- per of Basil Waited his late return ; and they rested and feasted together. Over the joyous feast the sudden darkness de- scended. All was silent without, and, illuming the landscape with silver, Fair rose the dewy moon and the myriad stars ; but within doors, 980 Brighter than these, shone the faces of friends in the glimmering lamplight. Then from his station aloft, at the head of the table, the herdsman Poured forth his heart and his wine together in endless profusion. Lighting his pipe, that was filled with sweet Natchi- toches tobacco, EVANGELINE. 437 Thus he spake to his guests, who listened, and smiled as they listened : — 985 " Welcome once more, my friends, who long have been friendless and homeless. Welcome once more to a home, that is better per- chance than the old one ! Here no hungry winter congeals our blood like the rivers ; Here no stony ground provokes the wrath of the farmer ; Smoothly the ploughshare runs through the soil, as a keel through the water. 990 All the year round the orange-groves are in blossom ; and grass grows More in a single night than a whole Canadian summer. Here, too, numberless herds run wild and unclaimed in the prairies ; Here, too, lands may be had for the asking, and forests of timber With a few blows of the axe are hewn and framed into houses. 995 After your houses are built, and your fields are yellow with harvests. No King George of England shall drive you away from your homesteads. Burning your dwellings and barns, and stealing your farms and your cattle." Speaking these words, he blew a wrathful cloud from his nostrils. While his huge, brown hand came thundering down on the table, 1000 So that the guests all started; and Father Felician, astounded, Suddenly paused, with a pinch of snuff half-way to his nostrils. 438 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. But the brave Basil resumed, and his words were milder and gayer : — " Only beware of the fever, my friends, beware of the fever ! For it is not like that of our cold Acadian climate, 1005 Cured by wearing a spider hung round one's neck in a nutshell ! " Then there were voices heard at the door, and foot- steps approaching Sounded upon the stairs and the floor of the breezy veranda. It was the neighboring Creoles and small Acadian planters. Who had been summoned all to the house of Basil the herdsman. 1010 Merry the meeting was of ancient comrades and neighbors : Friend clasped friend in his arms ; and they who before were as strangers, Meeting in exile, became straightway as friends to each other, Drawn by the gentle bond of a common country together. But in the neighboring hall a strain of music, pro- ceeding 1015 From the accordant strings of Michael's melodious fiddle. Broke np all further speech. Away, like children delighted. All things forgotten beside, they gave themselves to the maddening Whirl of the dizzy dance, as it swept and swayed to the music. Dreamlike, with beaming eyes and the rush of flutter- ing garments. 1020 EVANGELINE. 439 Meanwhile, apart, at the head of the hall, the priest and the herdsman Sat, conversing together of past and present and future ; While Evangeline stood like one entranced, for within her Olden memories rose, and loud in the midst of the music Heard she the sound of the sea, and an irrepres- sible sadness 1025 Came o'er her heart, and unseen she stole forth into the garden. Beautiful was the night. Behind the black wall of the forest, Tipping its summit with silver, arose the moon. On the river Fell here and there through the branches a tremulous gleam of the moonlight. Like the sweet thoughts of love on a darkened and devious spirit. 1030 Nearer and round about her, the manifold flowers of the garden Poured out their souls in odors, that were their prayers and confessions Unto the night, as it went its way, like a silent Carthusian. 1033. The Carthusians are a monastic order founded in the twelfth century, perhaps the most severe in its rules of all reli- gious societies. Almost perpetual silence is one of the vows; the monks can talk together but once a week ; the labor required of them is unremitting and the discipline exceedingly rigid. The first monastery was established at Chartreux near Grenoble in France, and the Latinized form of the name has given us the word Carthusian. 440 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Fuller of fragrance than they, and as heavy with shadows and night-dews, Hung the heart of the maiden. The calm and the magical moonlight 1035 Seemed to inundate her soul with indefinable long- ings, As, through the garden gate, and beneath the shade of the oak-trees. Passed she along the path to the edge of the measure- less prairie. Silent it lay, with a silvery haze upon it, and fire-flies Gleaming and floating away in mingled and infinite numbers. io4o Over her head the stars, the thoughts of God in the heavens. Shone on the eyes of man, who had ceased to marvel and worship. Save when a blazing comet was seen on the walls of that temple, As if a hand had appeared and written upon them, " Upharsin." And the soul of the maiden, between the stars and the fire-flies, 1045 Wandered alone, and she cried, "O Gabriel! O my beloved ! Art thou so near unto me, and yet I cannot behold thee? Art thou so near unto me, and yet thy voice does not reach me ? Ah ! how often thy feet have trod this path to the prairie ! Ah ! how often thine eyes have looked on the wood- lands around me ! lo^n Ah ! how often beneath this oak, returning from labor. EVANGELINE. 441 Thou hast lain down to rest, and to dream of me in thy slumbers ! When shall these eyes behold, these arms be folded about thee ? " Loud and sudden and near the note of a whippoor- will sounded Like a flute in the woods ; and anon, through the neighboring thickets, 1055 Farther and farther away it floated and dropped into silence. " Patience ! " whispered the oaks from oracular cav- erns of darkness ; And, from the moonlit meadow, a sigh responded, " To-morrow ! " Bright rose the sun next day ; and all the flowers of the garden Bathed his shining feet with their tears, and anointed his tresses loeo With the delicious balm that they bore in their vases of crystal. "Farewell!" said the priest, as he stood at the shadowy threshold ; " See that you bring us the Prodigal Son from his fasting and famine, And, too, the Foolish Virgin, who slept when the bridegroom was coming." *' Farewell! " answered the maiden, and, smiling, with Basil descended io65 Down to the river's brink, where the boatmen already were waiting. Thus beginning their journey with morning, and sun- shine, and gladness, Swiftly they followed the flight of him who was speed- ing before them, 442 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Blown by the blast of fate like a dead leaf over the desert. Not that day, nor the next, nor yet the day that suc- ceeded, 1070 Found they trace of his course, in lake or forest or river. Nor, after many days, had they found him ; but vague and uncertain Rumors alone were their guides through a wild and desolate country ; Till, at the little inn of the Spanish town of Adayes, Weary and worn, they alighted, and learned from the garrulous landlord 1075 That on the day before, with horses and guides and companions, Gabriel left the village, and took the road of the prairies. IV. Far in the West there lies a desert land, where the . mountains Lift, through perpetual snows, their lofty and lumi- nous summits. Down from their jagged, deep ravines, where the gorge, like a gateway, loso Opens a passage rude to the wheels of the emigrant's wagon. Westward the Oregon flows and the Walleway and Owyhee. Eastward, with devious course, among the Wind-river Mountains, Through the Sweet-water Valley precipitate leaps the Nebraska ; And to the south, from Fontaine-qui-bout and the Spanish sierras, 1085 EVANGELINE. 443 Fretted with sands and rocks, and swept by the wind of the desert, Numberless torrents, with ceaseless sound, descend to the ocean. Like the great chords of a harp, in loud and solemn vibrations. Spreading between these streams are the wondrous, beautiful prairies, Billowy bays of grass ever rolling in shadow and sun- shine, 1090 Bright with luxuriant clusters of roses and purple amorphas. Over them wandered the buffalo herds, and the elk and the roebuck ; Over them wandered the wolves, and herds of rider- less horses ; Fires that blast and blight, and winds that are weary with travel ; Over them wander the scattered tribes of Ishmael's children, > 1095 Staining the desert with blood ; and above their terri- ble war-trails Circles and sails aloft, on pinions majestic, the vul- ture, Like the implacable soul of a chieftain slaughtered in battle, By invisible stairs ascending and scaling the heav- ens. Here and there rise smokes from the camps of these savage marauders ; 1100 Here and there rise groves from the margins of swift- running rivers ; And the gTim, taciturn bear, the anchorite monk of the desert, 444 HENRY WADS WORTH LONGFELLOW. Climbs down their dark ravines to dig for roots by the brook-side, And over all is the sky, the clear and crystalline heaven, Like the protecting hand of God inverted above them. no5 Into this wonderful land, at the base of the Ozark Mountains, Gabriel far had entered, with hunters and trappers behind him. Day after day, with their Indian guides, the maiden and Basil Followed his flying steps, and thought each day to o'ertake him. Sometimes they saw, or thought they saw, the smoke of his camj)-fire mo Rise in the morning air from the distant plain ; but at nightfall. When they had reached the place, they found only embers and ashes. And, though their hearts were sad at times and their bodies were weary, Hope still guided them on, as the magic Fata Morgana Showed them her lakes of light, that retreated and vanished before them. ms 1114. The Italian name for a meteoric phenomenon nearly allied to a mirage, witnessed in the Straits of Messina, and less frequently elsewhere, and consisting in the appearance in the air over the sea of the objects which are upon the neighboring coasts. In the southwest of our own country, the mirage is very common, of lakes which stretch before the tired traveller, and the deception is so great that parties have sometimes beckoned to other travellers, who seemed to be wading knee-deep, to come over to them where dry land was. EVANGELINE. 445 Once, as they sat by their evening fire, there silently entered Into the little camp an Indian woman, whose features Wore deep traces of sorrow, and patience as great as her sorrow. She was a Shawnee woman returning home to her people. From the far-off hunting-grounds of the cruel Ca- manches, n2o Where her Canadian husband, a coureur-des-bois, had been murdered. Touched were their hearts at her story, and warmest and friendliest welcome Gave they, with words of cheer, and she sat and feasted among them On the buffalo-meat and the venison cooked on the embers. But when their meal was done, and Basil and all his companions, 1125 Worn with the long day's march and the chase of the deer and the bison, Stretched themselves on the ground, and slept where the quivering fire-light Flashed on their swarthy cheeks, and their forms wrapped up in their blankets. Then at the door of Evangeline's tent she sat and re- peated Slowly, with soft, low voice, and the charm of her In- dian accent, 1130 All the tale of her love, with its pleasures, and pains, and reverses. Much Evangeline wept at the tale, and to know that another Hapless heart like her own had loved and had been disappointed. 446 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Moved to the depths of her soul by pity and woman's compassion, Yet in her sorrow pleased that one who had suffered was near her, n^s She in turn related her love and all its disasters. Mute with wonder the Shawnee sat, and when she had ended Still was mute ; but at length, as if a mysterious hor- ror Passed through her brain, she spake, and repeated the tale of the Mowis ; Mowis, the bridegroom of snow, who won and wedded a maiden, iwo But, when the morning came, arose and passed from the wigwam, Fading and melting away and dissolving into the sun- shine. Till she beheld him no more, though she followed far into the forest. Then, in those sweet, low tones, that seemed like a weird incantation. Told she the tale of the fair Lilinau, who was wooed by a phantom, iws That, through the pines o'er her father's lodge, in the hush of the twilight, Breathed like the evening wind, and whispered love to the maiden, Till she followed his green and waving plume through the forest. And nevermore returned, nor was seen again by her people. 1145. The story of Lilinau and other Indian legends will be found in H. R. Schoolcraft's Algic Researches. EVANGELINE. 447 Silent with wonder and strange surprise, Evangeline listened 1150 To the soft flow of her magical words, till the region around her Seemed like enchanted ground, and her swarthy guest the enchantress. Slowly over the tops of the Ozark Mountains the moon rose, Lighting the little tent, and with a mysterious splen- dor Touching the sombre leaves, and embracing and filling the woodland. nsi With a delicious sound the brook rushed by, and the branches Swayed and sighed overhead in scarcely audible whis- pers. Filled with the thoughts of love was Evangeline's heart, but a secret. Subtile sense crept in of pain and indefinite terror. As the cold, poisonous snake creeps into the nest of the swallow. neo It was no earthly fear. A breath from the region of spirits Seemed to float in the air of night ; and she felt for a moment That, like the Indian maid, she, too, was pursuing a phantom. With this thought she slept, and the fear and the phantom had vanished. Early upon the morrow the march was resumed, and the Shawnee iies Said, as they journeyed along, — " On the western slope of these mountains 448 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Dwells in his little village the Black Robe chief of the Mission. Much he teaches the people, and tells them of Mary and Jesus ; Loud laugh their hearts with joy, and weep with pain, as they hear him." Then, with a sudden and secret emotion, Evangeline answered, hto " Let us go to the Mission, for there good tidings await us ! " Thither they turned their steeds ; and behind a spur of the mountains, Just as the sun went down, they heard a murmur of voices, And in a meadow green and broad, by the bank of a river. Saw the tents of the Christians, the tents of the Jesuit Mission. n7r) Under a towering oak, that stood in the midst of the village. Knelt the Black Robe chief with his children. A crucifix fastened High on the trunk of the tree, and overshadowed by grapevines, Looked with its agonized face on the multitude kneel- ing beneath it. This was their rural chapel. Aloft, through the intri- cate arches iiso Of its aerial roof, arose the chant of their vespers, Mingling its notes with the soft susurrus and sighs of the branches. Silent, with heads uncovered, the travellers, nearer approaching. Knelt on the swarded floor, and joined in the evening devotions. EVANGELINE. 449 But when the service was done, and the benediction had fallen uss Forth from the hands of the priest, like seed from the hands of the sower. Slowly the reverend man advanced to the strangers, and bade them Welcome ; and when they replied, he smiled with be- nignant expression. Hearing the homelike sounds of his mother-tongue in the forest, And, with words of kindness, conducted them into his wigwam. ii9o There upon mats and skins they reposed, and on cakes of the maize-ear Feasted, and slaked their thirst from the water-gourd of the teacher. Soon was their story told ; and the priest with solem- nity answered : — " Not six suns have risen and set since Gabriel, seated On this mat by my side, where now the maiden re- poses, 1195 Told me this same sad tale ; then arose and continued his journey ! " Soft was the voice of the priest, and he spake with an accent of kindness ; But on Evangeline's heart fell his words as in winter the snow-flakes Fall into some lone nest from which the birds have departed. " Far to the north he has gone," continued the priest ; " but in autumn, 1200 When the chase is done, will return again to the Mis- sion." Then Evangeline said, and her voice was meek and submissive, 450 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. " Let me remain with thee, for my soul is sad and af- flicted." So seemed it wise and well unto all ; and betimes on the morrow, Mounting his Mexican steed, with his Indian guides and companions, 1205 Homeward Basil returned, and Evangeline stayed at the Mission. Slowly, slowly, slowly the days succeeded each other, — Days and weeks and months ; and the fields of maize that were springing Green from the ground when a stranger she came, now waving about her. Lifted their slender shafts, with leaves interlacing, and forming 1210 Cloisters for mendicant crows and granaries pillaged by squirrels. Then in the golden weather the maize was husked, and the maidens Blushed at each blood-red ear, for that betokened a lover, But at. the crooked laughed, and called it a thief in the corn-field. Even the blood-red ear to Evangeline brought not her lover. 1215 " Patience ! " the priest would say ; " have faith, and thy prayer will be answered ! Look at this vigorous plant that lifts its head from the meadow, See how its leaves are turned to the north, as true as the magnet ; EVANGELINE. 451 It is the compass-flower, that the finger of God has planted Here in the houseless wild, to direct the traveller's journey 1220 Over the sea-like, pathless, limitless waste of the desert. Such in the soul of man is faith. The blossoms of passion, Gay and luxuriant flowers, are brighter and fuller of fragrance, But they beguile us, and lead us astray, and their odor is deadly. Only this humble plant can guide us here, and here- after 1225 Crown us with asphodel flowers, that are wet with the dews of nepenthe." So came the autumn, and passed, and the winter — yet Gabriel came not ; Blossomed the opening spring, and the notes of the robin and bluebird Sounded sweet upon wold and in wood, yet Gabriel came not. But on the breath of the summer winds a rumor was wafted 1230 1219. Silphium laciniatum or compass-plant is found on the prairies of Michigan and Wisconsin and to the south and west, and is said to present the edges of the lower leaves due north and south. 1226. In early Greek poetry the asphodel meadows were haunted by the shades of heroes. See Homer's Odyssey, xxiv. 13, where Pope translates : — " In ever flowering meads of Asphodel." The asphodel is of the lily family, and is known also by the name king's spear. 452 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Sweeter than song of bird, or hue or odor of blos- som. Far to the north and east, it said, in the Michigan forests, Gabriel had his lodge by the banks of the Saginaw Kiver. And, with returning guides, that sought the lakes of St. Lawrence, Saying a sad farewell, Evangeline went from the Mis- sion. 1235 When over weary ways, by long and perilous marches, She had attained at length the depths of the Michigan forests. Found she the hunter's lodge deserted and fallen to ruin ! Thus did the long sad years glide on, and in sea- sons and places Divers and distant far was seen the wandering maiden ; — 1240 Now in the Tents of Grace of the meek Moravian Missions, Now in the noisy camps and the battle-fields of the army, Now in secluded hamlets, in towns and populous cities. Like a phantom she came, and passed away unremem- bered. Fair was she and young, when in hope began the long journey ; 1245 Faded was she and old, when in disappointment it ended. 1241. A rendering of the Moravian Gnadenhiitten. EVANGELINE. 453 Each succeediDg year stole something away from her beauty, Leaving behind it, broader and deeper, the gloom and the shadow. Then there appeared and spread faint streaks of gray o'er her forehead, Dawn of another life, that broke o'er her earthly hor- izon, 1250 As in the eastern sky the first faint streaks of the morning. V. In that delightful land which is washed by the Dela- ware's waters. Guarding in sylvan shades the name of Penn the apostle, Stands on the banks of its beautiful stream the city he founded. There all the air is balm, and the peach is the emblem of beauty, 1255 And the streets still reecho the names of the trees of the forest. As if they fain would appease the Dryads whose haunts they molested. There from the troubled sea had Evangeline landed, an exile. Finding among the children of Penn a home and a country. There old Rene Leblanc had died; and when he departed, 1260 Saw at his side only one of all his hundred descend- ants. 1256. The streets of Philadelphia, as is well known, are many of them, especially those running east and west, named for trees, as Chestnut, Walnut, Locust, Spruce, Pine, etc. 454 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Something at least there was in the friendly streets of the city, Something that spake to her heart, and made her no longer a stranger ; And her ear was pleased with the Thee and Thou of the Quakers, For it recalled the past, the old Acadian country, 1265 Where all men were equal, and all were brothers and sisters. So, when the fruitless search, the disappointed en- deavor, Ended, to recommence no more upon earth, uncom- plaining. Thither, as leaves to the light, were turned her thoughts and her footsteps. As from a mountain's top the rainy mists of the morn- ing 1270 Roll away, and afar we behold the landscape below us. Sun-illumined, with shining rivers and cities and ham- lets, So fell the mists from her mind, and she saw the world far below her, Dark no longer, but all illumined with love ; and the pathway Which she had climbed so far, lying smooth and fair in the distance. 1275 Gabriel was not forgotten. Within her heart was his image. Clothed in the beauty of love and youth, as last she beheld him, Only more beautiful made by his deathlike silence and absence. Into her thoughts of him time entered not, for it was not. EVANGELINE. 455 Over him years had no power ; he was not changed, but transfigured ; 1280 He had become to her heart as one who is dead, and not absent ; Patience and abnegation of self, and devotion to others. This was the lesson a life of trial and sorrow had taught her. So was her love diffused, but, like to some odorous spices, Suffered no waste nor loss, though filling the air with aroma. 1285 Other hope had she none, nor wish in life, but to Meekly follow, with reverent steps, the sacred feet of her Saviour. Thus many years she lived as a Sister of Mercy ; fre- quenting Lonely and wretched roofs in the crowded lanes of the city. Where distress and want concealed themselves from the sunlight, 1290 Where disease and sorrow in garrets languished neg- lected. Night after night when the world was asleep, as the watchman repeated Loud, through the dusty streets, that all was well in the city. High at some lonely window he saw the light of her taper. Day after day, in the gray of the dawn, as slow through the suburbs 1295 Plodded the German farmer, with flowers and fruits for the market, Met he that meek, pale face, returning home from its watchings. 456 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Then it came to pass that a pestilence fell on the city, Presaged by wondrous signs, and mostly by flocks of wild pigeons, Darkening the sun in their flight, with naught in their craws but an acorn. 1300 And, as the tides of the sea arise in the month of Sep- tember, Flooding some silver stream, till it spreads to a lake in the meadow. So death flooded life, and, o'erflowing its natural mar- gin, Spread to a brackish lake the silver stream of ex- istence. Wealth had no power to bribe, nor beauty to charm, the oppressor ; 1305 But all perished alike beneath the scourge of his anger ; — Only, alas ! the poor, who had neither friends nor at- tendants, Crept away to die in the almshouse, home of the homeless. Then in the suburbs it stood, in the midst of meadows and woodlands ; — 1298. The year 1793 was long remembered as the year when yellow fever was a terrible pestilence in Philadelphia. Charles Brockden Brown made his novel of A rtliur Mervyn turn largely upon the incidents of the plague, which drove Brown away from home for a time. 1308. Philadelphians have identified the old Friends' alms- house on Walnut Street, now no longer standing, as that in which Evangeline ministered to Gabriel, and so real was the story that some even ventured to point out the graves of the two lovers. See Westcott's The Historic Mansions of Philadelphia, pp. 101, 102. EVANGELINE. 457 Now the city surrounds it ; but still, with its gateway and wicket isio Meek, in the midst of splendor, its humble walls seem to echo Softly the words of the Lord : — " The poor ye al- ways have with you." Thither, by night and by day, came the Sister of Mercy. The dying Looked up into her face, and thought, indeed, to be- hold there Gleams of celestial light encircle her forehead with splendor, 1315 Such as the artist paints o'er the brows of saints and apostles. Or such as hangs by night o'er a city seen at a distance. Unto their eyes it seemed the lamps of the city celes- tial. Into whose shining gates erelong their spirits would enter. Thus, on a Sabbath morn, through the streets, de- serted and silent, 1320 Wending her quiet way, she entered the door of the almshouse. Sweet on the summer air was the odor of flowers in the garden. And she paused on her way to gather the fairest among them. That the dying once more might rejoice in their fra- grance and beauty. Then, as she mounted the stairs to the corridors, cooled by the east-wind, 1325 Distant and soft on her ear fell the chimes from the belfry of Christ Church, 458 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW, While, intermingled with these, across the meadows were wafted Sounds of psalms, that were sung by the Swedes in their church at Wicaco. Soft as descending wings fell the calm of the hour on her spirit ; Something within her said, " At length thy trials are ended ; " 1330 And, with light in her looks, she entered the cham- bers of sickness. Noiselessly moved about the assiduous, careful attend- ants. Moistening the feverish lip, and the aching brow, and in silence Closing the sightless eyes of the dead, and concealing their faces, Where on their pallets they lay, like drifts of snow by the roadside. 1335 Many a languid head, upraised as Evangeline entered, Turned on its pillow of pain to gaze while she passed, for her presence Fell on their hearts like a ray of the sun on the walls of a prison. And, as she looked around, she saw how Death, the consoler. Laying his hand upon many a heart, had healed it forever. 1340 1328. The Swedes' church at Wicaco is still standing", the oldest in the city of Philadelphia, having been begun in 1698. Wicaco is within the city, on the banks of the Delaware River. An interesting account of the old church and its historic associa- tions will be found in Westcott's book just mentioned, pp. 56-67. Wilson the ornithologist lies buried in the churchyard adjoining the church. EVANGELINE. 459 Many familiar forms had disappeared in the night time ; Vacant their places were, or filled already by strangers. Suddenly, as if arrested by fear or a feeling of wonder, Still she stood, with her colorless lips apart, while a shudder Ran through her frame, arfd, forgotten, the flowerets dropped from her fingers, 1345 And from her eyes and cheeks the light and bloom of the morning. Then there escaped from her lips a cry of such terri- ble anguish, That the dying heard it, and started up from their pillows. On the pallet before her was stretched the form of an old man. Long, and thin, and gray were the locks that shaded his temples ; 1350 But, as he lay in the morning light, his face for a moment Seemed to assume once more the forms of its earlier manhood ; So are wont to be changed the faces of those who are dying. Hot and red on his lips still burned the flush of the fever, As if life, like the Hebrew, with blood had besprinkled its portals, 1355 That the Angel of Death might see the sign, and pass over. Motionless, senseless, dying, he lay, and his spirit exhausted 460 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Seemed to be sinking down through infinite depths in the darkness, Darkness of slumber and death, forever sinking and sinking. Then through those realms of shade, in multiplied reverberations, iseo Heard he that cry of pain, and through the hush that succeeded Whispered a gentle voice, in accents tender and saint- like, " Gabriel ! O my beloved ! " and died away into si- lence. Then he beheld, in a dream, once more the home of his childhood ; Green Acadian meadows, with sylvan rivers among them, 1365 Village, and mountain, and woodlands ; and, walking under their shadow. As in the days of her youth, Evangeline rose in his vision. Tears came into his eyes ; and as slowly he lifted his eyelids. Vanished the vision away, but Evangeline knelt by his bedside. Vainly he strove to whisper her name, for the accents un uttered 1370 Died on his lips, and their motion revealed what his tongue would have spoken. Vainly he strove to rise; and Evangeline, kneeling beside him, Kissed his dying lips, and laid his head on her bosom. Sweet was the light of his eyes ; but it suddenly sank into darkness. As when a lamp is blown out by a gust of wind at a casement. 1375 EVANGELINE. 461 All was ended now, the hope, and the fear, and the sorrow, All the aching of heart, the restless, unsatisfied longing. All the dull, deep pain, and constant anguish of patience ! And, as she pressed once more the lifeless head to her bosom. Meekly she bowed her own, and murmured, " Father, I thank thee ! " laso Still stands the forest primeval ; but far away from its shadow. Side by side, in their nameless graves, the lovers are sleeping. Under the humble walls of the little Catholic church- yard. In the heart of the city, they lie, unknown and un- noticed. Daily the tides of life go ebbing and flowing beside them, 1385 Thousands of throbbing hearts, where theirs are at rest and forever. Thousands of aching brains, where theirs no longer are busy. Thousands of toiling hands, where theirs have ceased from their labors. Thousands of weary feet, where theirs have completed their journey ! Still stands the forest primeval; but under the shade of its branches 1390 Dwells another race, with other customs and language. 462 HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW. Only along the shore of the mournful and misty Atlantic Linger a few Acadian peasants, whose fathers from exile Wandered back to their native land to die in its bosom. In the fisherman's cot the wheel and the loom are still busy ; 1395 Maidens still wear their Norman caps and their kirtles of homespun, And by the evening fire repeat Evangeline's story, While from its rocky caverns the deep-voiced, neigh- boring ocean Speaks, and in accents disconsolate answers the wail of the forest. ^ LIBRARY OF CONGRESS L*>f$S^J$t$!$J$f>i1v^$f^^ 017 196 716 8